Selected quad for the lemma: kingdom_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
kingdom_n king_n law_n prerogative_n 2,656 5 10.1872 5 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A07768 The mysterie of iniquitie: that is to say, The historie of the papacie Declaring by what degrees it is now mounted to this height, and what oppositions the better sort from time to time haue made against it. Where is also defended the right of emperours, kings, and Christian princes, against the assertions of the cardinals, Bellarmine and Baronius. By Philip Morney, knight, Lord du Plessis, &c. Englished by Samson Lennard.; Mystère d'iniquité. English Mornay, Philippe de, seigneur du Plessis-Marly, 1549-1623.; Lennard, Samson, d. 1633. 1612 (1612) STC 18147; ESTC S115092 954,645 704

There are 67 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

help_n make_v no_o such_o great_a account_n of_o we_o nor_o we_o of_o he_o but_o that_o these_o amity_n burst_v forth_o many_o time_n into_o open_a war_n and_o contention_n those_o of_o the_o king_n council_n and_o of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o parliament_n show_v he_o how_o diverse_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o adherent_n seek_v to_o infringe_v and_o cut_v off_o his_o prerogative_n the_o king_n officer_n complain_v that_o all_o jurisdiction_n be_v transfer_v from_o the_o royal_a tribunal_n to_o sacred_a decision_n that_o many_o more_o temporal_a cause_n and_o controversy_n between_o temporal_a man_n be_v hear_v and_o adjudge_v by_o the_o bishop_n and_o other_o priest_n than_o by_o the_o king_n officer_n and_o judge_n whosoever_o in_o any_o thing_n stand_v not_o to_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o prelate_n he_o be_v expel_v the_o church_n remove_v from_o communicate_v with_o the_o godly_a and_o it_o be_v come_v to_o that_o pass_n as_o even_o for_o debt_n when_o the_o party_n be_v altogether_o unable_a he_o be_v interdict_v water_n &_o fire_n wherefore_o the_o deputy_n of_o the_o prelate_n and_o clergy_n be_v command_v to_o appear_v in_o the_o month_n of_o december_n at_o bois_n de_fw-fr vincennes_n near_o paris_n there_o master_n peter_n de_fw-fr cugnieres_n the_o king_n attorney_n defend_v his_o sovereign_n cause_n and_o produce_v those_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o saint_n matthew_n give_v to_o caesar_n that_o which_o be_v caesar_n and_o to_o god_n that_o which_o be_v god_n he_o argue_v the_o distinction_n betwixt_o the_o jurisdiction_n spiritual_a and_o temporal_a very_o worthy_a of_o observation_n of_o which_o the_o one_o belong_v to_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n the_o other_o to_o the_o church_n which_o can_v not_o interpose_v herself_o in_o matter_n temporal_a without_o mingle_v heaven_n and_o earth_n together_o and_o entangle_v the_o whole_a earth_n in_o a_o utter_a confusion_n his_o speech_n he_o also_o confirm_v by_o many_o apt_a and_o well_o apply_v place_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o sacred_a canon_n and_o insist_v much_o upon_o that_o text_n of_o the_o 22_o of_o the_o proverbe_n exceed_v not_o the_o ancient_a bound_n and_o limit_n which_o thy_o father_n lay_v because_o say_v he_o if_o any_o custom_n be_v introduce_v contrary_a to_o the_o same_o they_o can_v be_v of_o no_o worth_n nay_o rather_o they_o shall_v be_v corruption_n and_o prescription_n can_v take_v no_o place_n against_o the_o king_n royal_a prerogative_n neither_o can_v the_o king_n himself_o renounce_v these_o law_n and_o jurisdiction_n as_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o many_o chapter_n which_o be_v in_o the_o ten_o distinction_n if_o therefore_o say_v he_o the_o king_n be_v swear_v at_o his_o coronation_n no_o way_n to_o alienate_v the_o law_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o to_o revoke_v again_o those_o alienate_v so_o if_o they_o shall_v be_v suppress_v or_o usurp_v by_o the_o church_n or_o any_o other_o he_o be_v bind_v to_o renew_v and_o revive_v they_o again_o and_o with_o that_o he_o bring_v forth_o a_o schedule_n comprehend_v sixty_o six_o particular_n wherein_o be_v express_v such_o aggravation_n and_o oppression_n for_o which_o the_o clergy_n be_v to_o make_v satisfaction_n bertram_z then_o bishop_n of_o hutum_n be_v to_o speak_v in_o behalf_n of_o the_o clergy_n he_o rip_v up_o the_o memory_n of_o charles_n the_o great_a lewis_n the_o godly_a and_o s._n lewis_n and_o other_o pinces_n who_o in_o time_n past_a have_v endow_v and_o immunify_v the_o church_n advance_v high_o their_o glory_n who_o have_v augment_v church_n liberty_n and_o so_o by_o many_o example_n exaggerate_v their_o reproach_n and_o infamy_n who_o have_v prejudice_v and_o impair_v the_o same_o and_o this_o cause_n be_v refer_v for_o a_o day_n of_o hear_v even_o to_o the_o very_a festival_n of_o s._n thomas_n of_o canturburie_n may_v fit_o put_v the_o king_n in_o mind_n that_o this_o thomas_n as_o on_o that_o day_n shed_v his_o blood_n for_o the_o liberty_n and_o immunity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o we_o former_o observe_v that_o the_o divine_n of_o paris_n dispute_v how_o this_o thomas_n be_v more_o probable_o to_o be_v suppose_v condemn_v because_o he_o suffer_v death_n for_o his_o rebellion_n but_o the_o king_n plain_o make_v answer_v that_o he_o will_v have_v a_o special_a care_n of_o all_o thing_n to_o come_v bertram_z urge_v further_a for_o the_o better_a explication_n of_o himself_o when_o the_o king_n reply_v i_o will_v rather_o have_v the_o liberty_n of_o the_o church_n augment_v than_o diminish_v i_o mean_v the_o true_a immunity_n and_o liberty_n but_o not_o usurpation_n and_o therefore_o he_o consult_v with_o they_o about_o the_o preservation_n of_o royal_a right_n and_o jurisdiction_n in_o hatred_n of_o which_o fact_n they_o endeavour_v to_o deprave_v the_o memory_n of_o peter_n de_fw-fr cognieres_n this_o be_v he_o who_o in_o a_o corner_n of_o our_o lady_n church_n in_o paris_n be_v common_o call_v master_n peter_n de_fw-fr cogniet_fw-la a_o epistle_n of_o lucifer_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o roman_a church_n fall_v fit_a with_o these_o time_n papam_fw-la epist_n luciferi_fw-la ad_fw-la papam_fw-la some_o think_v it_o be_v write_v under_o philip_n the_o fair_a but_o because_o in_o some_o exemplary_n it_o be_v say_v to_o be_v date_v in_o the_o year_n of_o his_o palace_n overthrow_v 1351_o year_n here_o seem_v in_o the_o original_a to_o be_v some_o error_n in_o computation_n of_o the_o year_n about_o the_o year_n from_o christ_n birth_n 1318_o it_o be_v refer_v to_o that_o year_n lucifer_n be_v in_o it_o bring_v in_o discourse_v how_o in_o time_n past_o christ_n vicar_n preach_v the_o word_n in_o poverty_n of_o life_n the_o world_n be_v so_o convert_v that_o erebus_n be_v turn_v into_o eremum_fw-la hell_n into_o hermitage_n but_o he_o have_v carry_v the_o matter_n so_o wise_o as_o to_o suborn_v in_o their_o place_n those_o that_o shall_v with_o both_o their_o clooke_n lay_v hold_v of_o worldly_a kingdom_n which_o christ_n heretofore_o refuse_v be_v offer_v he_o &_o that_o therefore_o they_o shall_v not_o now_o teach_v as_o he_o and_o his_o apostle_n do_v reddite_fw-la caesari_n quae_fw-la sunt_fw-la caesaris_fw-la etc._n etc._n subiecti_fw-la estote_fw-la principibus_fw-la but_o seize_v both_o on_o spiritual_a and_o temporal_a thing_n they_o shall_v assume_v unto_o themselves_o both_o sword_n endevor_v proud_o to_o bear_v rule_n over_o prince_n themselves_o and_o hereupon_o come_v in_o all_o excess_n pride_n wantonness_n wicked_a devise_n and_o simony_n which_o carry_v that_o sway_n as_o he_o plentiful_o lay_v open_a that_o what_o ancient_o in_o time_n past_a have_v be_v forspeak_v by_o the_o prophet_n be_v complete_o fulfil_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v become_v the_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n the_o purple_a harlot_n have_v commit_v fornication_n with_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n of_o a_o mother_n she_o be_v become_v a_o stepmother_n and_o of_o a_o bride_n a_o adulteress_n forget_v her_o original_a charity_n and_o chastity_n and_o principal_o ruinate_v the_o christian_a faith_n which_o before_o she_o build_v up_o and_o erect_v then_o he_o exhort_v the_o pope_n vehement_o to_o persevere_v in_o these_o office_n because_o say_v he_o we_o be_v about_o to_o send_v forth_o antichrist_n for_o who_o all_o these_o treasure_n be_v to_o be_v reserve_v in_o the_o mean_a while_o we_o will_v have_v you_o to_o be_v our_o vicar_n etc._n etc._n they_o that_o speak_v so_o broad_o in_o general_a of_o the_o roman_a church_n what_o think_v they_o suppose_v you_o of_o many_o her_o particular_a abuse_n hereunto_o we_o may_v add_v that_o john_n mandevil_n a_o english_a man_n a_o writer_n very_o near_o to_o those_o time_n say_v pope_n john_n send_v to_o the_o grecian_n exhort_v they_o to_o be_v unite_v to_o he_o and_o the_o roman_a church_n for_o the_o know_v and_o accustom_a reason_n of_o that_o plenary_a power_n grant_v unto_o he_o over_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o person_n of_o saint_n peter_n but_o they_o answer_v he_o laconical_o we_o undoubted_o believe_v thy_o sovereign_a power_n over_o those_o that_o be_v subject_a to_o thou_o but_o we_o can_v endure_v thy_o extreme_a pride_n nor_o be_v we_o able_a to_o satisfy_v thy_o greedy_a avarice_n the_o devil_n be_v with_o thou_o for_o god_n be_v with_o us._n 58._o progression_n benedict_n the_o twelve_o succeed_v john_n he_o hold_v the_o see_v while_o the_o year_n 1342_o when_o as_o clement_n the_o sixth_o come_v to_o the_o chair_n after_o he_o lewis_n the_o emperor_n die_v and_o after_o some_o opposition_n charles_n son_n to_o the_o king_n of_o bohemia_n obtain_v the_o diadem_n imperiall_n benedict_n the_o twelve_o succeed_v john_n the_o cardinal_n have_v be_v sixteen_o day_n in_o the_o conclave_n before_o they_o can_v agree_v upon_o a_o election_n at_o last_o they_o resolve_v either_o for_o envy_n or_o in_o despite_n one_o of_o another_o to_o
bring_v he_o to_o naples_n ●4_n lib._n 1._o c._n ●3_n ●4_n that_o pregnan_n be_v a_o man_n give_v to_o all_o vice_n and_o of_o who_o notwithstanding_o he_o be_v so_o exceed_o fond_a that_o when_o his_o petulant_a looseness_n be_v tell_v he_o he_o be_v wont_v to_o answer_v he_o be_v young_a and_o yet_o be_v he_o then_o forty_o year_n old_a it_o happen_v among_o other_o thing_n that_o he_o violate_v and_o ravish_v by_o force_n a_o certain_a profess_a nun_n and_o recluse_n of_o the_o order_n of_o s._n clare_n of_o the_o monastery_n of_o s._n saviour_n at_o naples_n and_o descend_v from_o a_o noble_a house_n she_o he_o keep_v certain_a day_n with_o he_o the_o people_n be_v move_v with_o that_o wicked_a fact_n whereupon_o the_o guilty_a person_n sudden_o save_v himself_o in_o a_o church_n under_o the_o protection_n of_o his_o uncle_n the_o king_n according_a to_o law_n have_v convict_v he_o condemn_v he_o to_o die_v the_o pope_n conte_v against_o it_o that_o he_o be_v a_o superior_a lord_n in_o who_o presence_n the_o king_n can_v punish_v a_o nobleman_n of_o his_o kingdom_n thereupon_o he_o fortify_v the_o gate_n of_o his_o palace_n and_o gather_v his_o partaker_n about_o he_o so_o that_o this_o so_o infamous_a a_o crime_n remain_v unpunished_a because_o it_o so_o please_v the_o pope_n yea_o which_o be_v worse_o that_o peace_n may_v be_v make_v between_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o king_n it_o be_v agree_v upon_o by_o the_o cardinal_n procurement_n that_o pregnan_n shall_v marry_v the_o daughter_n of_o the_o lord_n chief_a justice_n of_o the_o realm_n the_o king_n kinswoman_n and_o that_o the_o king_n for_o so_o long_a time_n as_o the_o duke_n of_o anjou_n shall_v remain_v in_o the_o country_n shall_v pay_v unto_o pregnan_n every_o year_n in_o stead_n of_o the_o revenue_n of_o those_o dukedom_n seventie_o thousand_o florin_n of_o his_o own_o accord_n he_o give_v he_o also_o the_o castle_n of_o lucera_n with_o the_o appurtenance_n be_v between_o naples_n and_o salerne_n 40._o idem_fw-la c._n 40._o whither_o he_o with_o the_o pope_n his_o uncle_n retire_v himself_o a_o place_n very_o pleasant_a and_o safe_a for_o their_o person_n be_v lodge_v in_o the_o castle_n but_o the_o town_n be_v not_o so_o which_o be_v appoint_v for_o the_o cardinal_n and_o courtier_n who_o in_o a_o state_n so_o trouble_v between_o two_o prince_n in_o war_n together_o have_v many_o great_a alarm_n 42._o l._n 1._o c._n 42._o and_o yet_o can_v not_o make_v he_o resolve_v to_o depart_v thence_o wherefore_o at_o the_o instance_n of_o cardinal_n reatine_n it_o be_v treat_v among_o they_o out_o of_o the_o opinion_n of_o many_o doctor_n if_o a_o pope_n be_v too_o negligent_a or_o unfit_a to_o govern_v and_o lean_v so_o much_o to_o his_o own_o wit_n that_o he_o bring_v thereby_o the_o whole_a church_n into_o danger_n or_o be_v so_o unbridled_a that_o without_o the_o advice_n of_o the_o cardinal_n he_o will_v do_v thing_n after_o his_o own_o fantasy_n and_o pleasure_n whether_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o substitute_n by_o the_o election_n of_o the_o cardinal_n a_o curator_n or_o some_o fit_a curator_n by_o who_o counsel_n and_o advice_n the_o pope_n shall_v be_v hold_v to_o dispatch_v all_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v conclude_v to_o be_v lawful_a but_o vrban_n be_v advertise_v hereof_o by_o the_o cardinal_n of_o manupello_n when_o the_o cardinal_n of_o duty_n come_v to_o visit_v he_o he_o keep_v six_o of_o they_o who_o he_o most_o fear_v prisoner_n who_o good_n without_o any_o order_n of_o law_n he_o present_o confiscate_v and_o by_o that_o mean_v terrify_v all_o the_o rest_n yea_o a_o few_o day_n after_o he_o give_v their_o hat_n to_o certain_a unworthy_a person_n of_o naples_n who_o know_v their_o own_o unworthiness_n be_v ashamed_a to_o wear_v they_o in_o public_a 45._o idem_fw-la l._n 1._o c._n 45._o his_o cruelty_n be_v such_o that_o he_o cast_v they_o into_o a_o dungeon_n common_o call_v the_o old_a cistern_n and_o without_o any_o respect_n of_o age_n infirmity_n or_o quality_n put_v they_o to_o the_o rack_n and_o all_o manner_n of_o torture_n his_o nephew_n pregnan_n be_v present_a and_o urge_v the_o tormentor_n so_o that_o here_o theodorick_n move_v all_o to_o compassion_n neither_o yet_o whatsoever_o these_o do_v testify_v and_o protest_v can_v he_o ever_o be_v mollify_v not_o towards_o the_o cardinal_n sangr●_n a_o man_n break_v with_o old_a age_n and_o before_o his_o legate_n in_o the_o realm_n who_o to_o please_v he_o have_v exercise_v so_o many_o cruelty_n and_o now_o acknowledge_v that_o he_o be_v just_o punish_v by_o himself_o but_o when_o pregnan_n be_v so_o proud_a and_o audacious_a as_o to_o seize_v upon_o the_o castle_n of_o scifatti_n three_o league_n distant_a from_o lucera_n and_o be_v present_o besiege_v by_o the_o king_n servant_n and_o force_v to_o yield_v charles_n resolve_v to_o besiege_v vrban_n himself_o within_o lucera_n who_o feel_v himself_o extreme_o press_v 56._o idem_fw-la l._n 2._o c._n 45._o 50._o 51._o 52._o 53._o 54._o 55._o 56._o lead_v by_o a_o german_a call_v loter_n of_o swe●e_n flee_v through_o byway_n of_o the_o mountain_n and_o so_o save_v himself_o at_o salerne_n where_o he_o be_v receive_v of_o certain_a galley_n of_o genua_n prepare_v for_o he_o and_o cause_v the_o captive_a cardinal_n through_o these_o incommodity_n to_o accompany_v he_o ever_o by_o his_o side_n ga●ded_v with_o halberdier_n and_o when_o the_o bishop_n of_o aquila_n break_v with_o torture_n be_v not_o able_a to_o follow_v he_o he_o command_v his_o hangman_n to_o kill_v he_o and_o leave_v his_o body_n in_o the_o field_n without_o burial_n then_o direct_v his_o course_n into_o sicily_n which_o be_v under_o his_o obedience_n he_o arrive_v at_o palermo_n where_o have_v make_v provision_n of_o thing_n necessary_a he_o put_v to_o sea_n again_o and_o come_v to_o genua_n where_o he_o continual_o keep_v with_o he_o those_o cardinal_n in_o bond_n all_o except_o one_o cardinal_n adam_n a_o poor_a monk_n who_o he_o give_v to_o richard_n king_n of_o england_n on_o condition_n that_o he_o shall_v ever_o have_v a_o certain_a clerk_n of_o his_o chamber_n watch_v over_o his_o action_n at_o genua_n he_o receive_v great_a gift_n from_o john_n duke_n of_o milan_n perhaps_o say_v the_o author_n that_o he_o shall_v absolve_v he_o from_o the_o fault_n he_o have_v commit_v for_o that_o while_o vrban_n remain_v at_o naples_n the_o duke_n have_v take_v his_o uncle_n lord_n barnabo_n the_o daughter_n of_o who_o cousin_n german_a he_o marry_v by_o dispensation_n from_o the_o pope_n and_o strangle_v she_o in_o a_o castle_n near_o milan_n and_o a_o while_n after_o he_o empoison_a barnabo_n himself_o in_o the_o end_n be_v ready_a to_o depart_v from_o genua_n to_o rid_v himself_o from_o the_o cumber_v of_o those_o five_o cardinal_n he_o make_v they_o all_o in_o one_o night_n be_v behead_v other_o say_v cast_v into_o the_o sea_n and_o other_o burn_v in_o his_o stable_n collenucius_fw-la say_v distinct_o 5._o collenuc_fw-la l._n 5._o that_o four_o be_v sow_v up_o in_o a_o sack_n and_o cast_v into_o the_o water_n and_o three_o behead_v who_o head_n dry_v in_o a_o oven_n be_v lay_v and_o carry_v upon_o his_o sumpter_n moile_n and_o so_o by_o his_o reckon_n there_o shall_v have_v be_v seven_o but_o out_o of_o theodorick_n his_o secretary_n this_o at_o least_o be_v clear_a that_o they_o be_v never_o see_v more_o and_o yet_o this_o be_v he_o who_o before_o his_o popedom_n he_o describe_v unto_o we_o to_o be_v zealous_a of_o justice_n in_o the_o last_o year_n of_o his_o popedom_n be_v mindful_a of_o the_o great_a gain_n that_o the_o jubilee_n have_v bring_v to_o clement_n the_o sixth_o in_o the_o year_n 1350_o against_o all_o reason_n he_o abreviate_v the_o same_o namely_o to_o every_o thirty_o three_o year_n 69._o an._n 1350._o theodor._n à_fw-fr nyem_n l._n 1._o c._n 68_o &_o 69._o yet_o so_o as_o that_o it_o shall_v begin_v at_o christmas_n in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1388_o and_o shall_v continue_v a_o year_n inclusive_o but_o be_v prevent_v by_o death_n he_o see_v it_o not_o and_o so_o leave_v that_o fruitful_a field_n to_o be_v reap_v by_o his_o successor_n boniface_n 1388._o an._n 1388._o for_o be_v depart_v from_o genua_n to_o go_v to_o perouse_a by_o the_o fall_n of_o his_o mule_n under_o he_o he_o be_v bruise_v in_o many_o part_n of_o his_o body_n and_o nevertheless_o have_v still_o a_o intention_n to_o return_v into_o sicily_n he_o be_v carry_v to_o rome_n where_o after_o some_o few_o day_n he_o die_v some_o say_v of_o poison_n it_o be_v here_o worth_a the_o note_n that_o when_o elizabeth_n queen_n of_o hungary_n have_v cause_v the_o head_n of_o charles_n duras_n king_n of_o naples_n to_o be_v cut_v off_o as_o he_o
53._o &_o 54._o there_o a_o certain_a bishop_n of_o arragon_n a_o great_a doctor_n of_o divinity_n in_o a_o solemn_a sermon_n choose_v for_o his_o text_n that_o of_o the_o apostle_n purge_v the_o old_a leaven_n etc._n etc._n wherein_o he_o fear_v not_o to_o say_v that_o they_o be_v no_o more_o pope_n than_o his_o old_a shoe_n worse_o than_o anna_n and_o carphas_n yea_o to_o be_v compare_v to_o the_o devil_n of_o hell_n whereby_o let_v the_o reader_n judge_v of_o those_o archbishop_n &_o prelate_n that_o he_o ordain_v and_o of_o those_o thing_n that_o by_o they_o be_v do_v who_o he_o ordain_v the_o selfsame_o be_v to_o be_v read_v in_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o university_n of_o paris_n to_o their_o lord_n and_o master_n that_o the_o neutrallitie_n and_o subtraction_n of_o obedience_n be_v good_a and_o lawful_a and_o the_o process_n and_o sentence_n of_o the_o competitor_n against_o those_o that_o have_v withdraw_v themselves_o just_o pronounce_v to_o be_v of_o no_o force_n approve_v in_o all_o respect_v the_o sentence_n of_o the_o university_n as_o there_o be_v likewise_o extant_a the_o definitive_a sentence_n against_o both_o the_o contendant_o for_o their_o horrible_a sin_n and_o a_o revocation_n of_o all_o their_o act_n in_o the_o year_n last_o pass_v with_o the_o epistle_n of_o alexander_n the_o five_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o paris_n 67._o cap._n 67._o who_o express_o pronounce_v they_o the_o enemy_n of_o god_n and_o his_o church_n for_o their_o grievous_a and_o horrible_a notorious_a sin_n john_n the_o four_o and_o twenty_o alias_o the_o three_o and_o twenty_o the_o successor_n of_o alexander_n in_o the_o year_n 1410_o send_v his_o legate_n namely_o the_o archbishop_n of_o pisa_n to_o demand_v the_o tenthes_o due_a in_o the_o vacancy_n procuration_n and_o mortuary_n ijsdem_fw-la an._n 1410._o bochell_n l._n 2._o decret_n eccles_n gallicanae_n p._n 323.324_o jdem_fw-la l._n 4_o p._n 51.52.53_o 54.55.56_o ex_fw-la ijsdem_fw-la the_o university_n assemble_v at_o the_o bernerdin_n the_o three_o and_o twenty_o of_o november_n and_o call_v unto_o they_o such_o prelate_n as_o be_v then_o at_o paris_n conclude_v that_o those_o law_n and_o ordinance_n above_o mention_v make_v in_o the_o year_n 1406_o be_v to_o be_v defend_v that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o the_o church_n of_o france_n be_v free_v from_o all_o tenthes_o procuration_n and_o other_o subsidy_n and_o annuity_n whatsoever_o and_o if_o the_o pope_n or_o his_o legate_n shall_v constrain_v any_o man_n by_o ecclesiastical_a censure_n to_o pay_v they_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v lawful_a to_o appeal_v from_o they_o to_o a_o general_a council_n and_o if_o any_o of_o the_o collector_n shall_v go_v about_o to_o exact_v they_o they_o be_v to_o be_v punish_v with_o the_o loss_n of_o their_o good_n if_o they_o have_v any_o if_o not_o with_o imprisonment_n they_o humble_o beseech_v the_o king_n and_o the_o council_n thus_o to_o determine_v the_o matter_n and_o his_o proctor_n general_a to_o join_v with_o the_o say_a university_n but_o if_o the_o pope_n shall_v allege_v some_o manifest_a necessity_n of_o the_o church_n that_o a_o council_n shall_v be_v call_v wherein_o some_o charitable_a subsidy_n shall_v be_v determine_v of_o which_o honest_a man_n choose_v by_o the_o council_n shall_v gather_v and_o be_v gather_v by_o the_o authority_n thereof_o distribute_v it_o the_o monday_n follow_v there_o be_v call_v a_o royal_a council_n where_o the_o archbishop_n deliver_v unto_o they_o that_o what_o he_o demand_v be_v due_a to_o the_o apostolic_a chamber_n by_o law_n divine_a canon_n civil_a and_o natural_a which_o whosoever_o shall_v deny_v to_o pay_v be_v no_o christian_a let_v the_o reader_n here_o note_n the_o definition_n of_o a_o christian_n the_o rector_n interrupt_v he_o affirm_v that_o these_o word_n be_v pronounce_v to_o the_o dishonour_n of_o the_o king_n and_o the_o university_n and_o consequent_o of_o the_o whole_a realm_n wherefore_o the_o thirty_o of_o november_n he_o call_v a_o general_a congregation_n wherein_o it_o be_v agree_v to_o send_v orator_n to_o the_o king_n to_o request_v that_o the_o legate_n may_v be_v command_v to_o revoke_v his_o word_n and_o if_o he_o shall_v refuse_v to_o do_v it_o that_o then_o the_o professor_n graduate_n of_o divinity_n and_o law_n shall_v write_v against_o he_o upon_o the_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n that_o both_o he_o and_o his_o colleague_n may_v according_a to_o their_o desert_n be_v punish_v that_o they_o will_v likewise_o write_v to_o all_o other_o university_n and_o prelate_n to_o join_v with_o they_o in_o this_o controversy_n and_o to_o the_o archbishop_n of_o rheimes_n likewise_o and_o other_o of_o the_o king_n grand_a council_n to_o that_o purpose_n who_o have_v be_v swear_v to_o the_o say_a university_n otherwise_o to_o be_v deprive_v that_o dignity_n whereupon_o the_o pope_n legate_n depart_v without_o take_v their_o leave_n nevertheless_o the_o pope_n be_v nothing_o at_o all_o herewith_o discomfit_v but_o send_v his_o legate_n again_o to_o the_o king_n to_o require_v the_o ten_o impose_v upon_o france_n who_o pronounce_v in_o the_o king_n council_n the_o duke_n of_o aquitan_n be_v present_a that_o not_o only_o the_o church_n of_o france_n but_o all_o other_o whatsoever_o be_v bind_v to_o this_o subsidy_n not_o only_o by_o the_o positive_a law_n but_o also_o by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n the_o university_n withstand_v it_o and_o in_o a_o congregation_n conclude_v that_o the_o manner_n in_o demand_v this_o subsidy_n be_v to_o be_v reprove_v as_o unjust_a and_o contrary_a to_o the_o law_n before_o make_v in_o the_o year_n 1406_o which_o they_o be_v resolve_v to_o defend_v and_o if_o the_o pope_n or_o his_o legate_n shall_v proceed_v any_o far_a that_o they_o will_v then_o appeal_v to_o the_o general_a council_n of_o the_o church_n and_o if_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o new_a king_n and_o kingdom_n shall_v attempt_v any_o thing_n against_o the_o say_a law_n they_o will_v appeal_v to_o the_o king_n and_o the_o lord_n of_o his_o council_n and_o if_o any_o of_o the_o university_n itself_o shall_v go_v about_o to_o gather_v these_o tenthes_o he_o be_v to_o lose_v his_o right_n and_o privilege_n if_o other_o his_o temporalty_n if_o he_o have_v any_o if_o not_o to_o suffer_v imprisonment_n but_o if_o the_o pope_n by_o way_n of_o charity_n will_v gather_v this_o money_n than_o the_o university_n will_v beseech_v his_o majesty_n that_o the_o prelate_n of_o the_o kingdom_n may_v be_v call_v to_o deliberat_fw-la first_o what_o be_v to_o be_v handle_v in_o the_o next_o general_a council_n second_o what_o answer_n be_v to_o be_v make_v to_o the_o supplication_n of_o the_o pope_n legate_n 67._o monstrelet_n vol._n 1._o c._n 67._o so_o that_o if_o a_o subsidy_n shall_v be_v grant_v that_o it_o may_v be_v gather_v by_o some_o choose_a honest_a man_n of_o the_o kingdom_n for_o the_o union_n of_o the_o greek_n and_o latin_n the_o peace_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o england_n the_o recovery_n of_o palestina_n and_o for_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o all_o creature_n since_o these_o be_v the_o end_n for_o which_o the_o pope_n as_o his_o own_o legate_n do_v affirm_v do_v levy_v this_o subsidy_n in_o all_o which_o they_o humble_o beseech_v the_o lord_n of_o the_o parliament_n and_o the_o king_n proctor_n to_o yield_v they_o their_o help_a hand_n and_o to_o join_v with_o they_o whereupon_o the_o archbishop_n of_o pisa_n carry_v himself_o more_o humble_o towards_o the_o university_n and_o begin_v to_o flatter_v the_o principal_a among_o they_o that_o he_o may_v win_v they_o to_o deal_v more_o mild_o with_o he_o but_o it_o be_v to_o small_a purpose_n for_o the_o university_n continue_v still_o constant_a though_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o noble_n yea_o the_o prince_n themselves_o begin_v to_o faint_v in_o their_o resolution_n 1416._o an._n 1416._o here_o be_v fit_a place_n to_o speak_v of_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n wherein_o in_o the_o year_n 1416_o a_o bill_n be_v exhibit_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n of_o france_n and_o the_o university_n of_o paris_n call_v apostoli_fw-la because_o charles_n the_o sixth_o by_o a_o decree_n of_o the_o court_n of_o parliament_n and_o a_o edict_n follow_v thereupon_o have_v forbid_v annuity_n to_o be_v pay_v it_o be_v otherwise_o call_v de_fw-fr annatis_fw-la non_fw-la soluendis_fw-la which_o bill_n be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o necessary_a because_o the_o cardinal_n go_v about_o to_o put_v down_o the_o antipope_n endeavour_v nevertheless_o to_o retain_v their_o gaineful_a art_n and_o invention_n especial_o these_o annuity_n which_o their_o promoter_n with_o their_o reason_n likewise_o defend_v there_o it_o be_v dispute_v by_o our_o divine_n that_o those_o annuity_n be_v not_o due_a either_o by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n or_o man_n that_o they_o be_v extraordinary_o grant_v to_o
satisfy_v thou_o herein_o if_o i_o can_v thou_o will_v know_v when_o antichrist_n invade_v this_o chair_n which_o for_o a_o long_a time_n he_o covet_v and_o now_o possess_v it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o palladium_n le_fw-fr garde_n corpse_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v first_o be_v steal_v before_o he_o can_v be_v receive_v before_o that_o fatal_a horse_n can_v be_v admit_v the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o candlestick_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n must_v first_o be_v hide_v under_o a_o bushel_n before_o the_o thief_n dare_v creep_v in_o or_o make_v any_o assault_n upon_o the_o church_n which_o still_o continue_v in_o force_n in_o vain_a can_v that_o sink_v of_o superstition_n besiege_v it_o but_o we_o keep_v it_o far_o off_o from_o our_o troy_n our_o rampier_n our_o territory_n much_o more_o from_o the_o porch_n the_o temple_n the_o sanctuary_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o old_a dragon_n under_o the_o colour_n of_o a_o not_o write_v word_n cunning_o and_o close_o bring_v in_o tradition_n to_o betray_v the_o church_n which_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o flesh_n their_o near_a alliance_n better_a agree_v with_o carnal_a reason_n do_v willing_o and_o with_o good_a countenance_n receive_v equal_v they_o with_o the_o write_a word_n the_o sacred_a oracle_n make_v they_o sit_v cheek_n by_o cheek_n with_o they_o this_o law_n of_o equality_n be_v often_o attempt_v in_o the_o seven_o age_n and_o seven_o idolatrous_a synod_n it_o be_v establish_v yea_o and_o by_o virtue_n thereof_o tradition_n prefer_v before_o the_o word_n oppose_v against_o it_o then_o simon_n rather_o under_o the_o name_n than_o shape_n of_o simon_n begin_v to_o appear_v by_o diverse_a cunning_a device_n cover_v his_o treachery_n persuade_v we_o to_o receive_v that_o dangerous_a engine_n that_o trojan_a horse_n that_o epitome_n as_o it_o be_v of_o all_o the_o painim_n impiety_n into_o the_o place_n of_o our_o palladium_n the_o word_n of_o god_n capis_fw-la then_o and_o diverse_a other_o who_o be_v of_o a_o sound_a judgement_n fear_v their_o subtlety_n and_o find_v they_o cry_v out_o to_o have_v it_o burn_v the_o most_o famous_a father_n of_o the_o church_n throughout_o the_o world_n foretell_v threaten_v the_o evil_a to_o come_v resist_v band_v themselves_o against_o it_o but_o you_o unaduised_a or_o rather_o ill_o advise_v ita_fw-la ferentibus_fw-la fatis_fw-la be_v necessary_a that_o the_o prophecy_n shall_v be_v fulfil_v in_o their_o due_a time_n dividitis_fw-la muros_fw-la &_o moenia_fw-la panditis_fw-la vrbis_fw-la et_fw-la licet_fw-la vtero_fw-la sonitum_fw-la quater_fw-la arma_fw-la dedêre_fw-la divide_v your_o wall_n and_o make_v they_o plain_a even_o with_o the_o ground_n though_o four_o time_n the_o armour_n in_o his_o belly_n do_v sound_a nothing_o regard_v either_o the_o advertisement_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o counsel_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o church_n or_o the_o suspicion_n that_o it_o give_v of_o itself_o but_o instantes_fw-la operi_fw-la immemores_fw-la caecique_fw-la furore_fw-la hoc_fw-la monstram_fw-la infoelix_fw-la sacrata_fw-la sistitis_fw-la arce_n blind_a with_o fury_n the_o more_o be_v the_o pity_n you_o place_v this_o monster_n within_o your_o city_n from_o thence_o forward_o he_o put_v all_o to_o fire_n and_o sword_n in_o the_o city_n ransack_v the_o church_n pollute_v the_o holy_a thing_n leave_v nothing_o untouched_a with_o the_o infectious_a hand_n of_o his_o harpy_n pour_v out_o of_o that_o fatal_a horse_n all_o manner_n of_o superstitious_a service_n in_o the_o church_n call_v this_o horse_n although_o a_o mark_n of_o the_o greek_n the_o trojan_a horse_n these_o superstition_n catholic_a orthodoxal_a because_o consecrate_v and_o hallow_a these_o be_v their_o own_o word_n by_o the_o pope_n though_o from_o their_o beginning_n they_o be_v heathenish_a and_o idolatrous_a now_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o this_o fire_n this_o universal_a confusion_n thy_o neighbour_n house_n be_v on_o fire_n nay_o thy_o own_o nay_o thy_o beard_n be_v singe_v thou_o gape_v &_o stretche_v thyself_o as_o if_o thou_o be_v half_o asleep_a thou_o caville_v and_o dispute_a where_o it_o first_o take_v fire_n where_o it_o begin_v and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n thou_o burn_v thyself_o wise_a antenor_n devout_a aeneas_n do_v not_o so_o but_o break_v through_o the_o grecian_a troop_n get_v themselves_o out_o of_o the_o city_n with_o their_o fellow_n gather_v together_o what_o they_o can_v and_o to_o sea_n they_o go_v and_o put_v themselves_o into_o the_o first_o ship_n they_o meet_v with_o hoist_v up_o sail_n to_o seek_v a_o new_a country_n and_o find_v it_o and_o there_o they_o settle_v be_v still_o trojan_n whether_o soever_o they_o go_v in_o what_o place_n soever_o they_o rest_v carry_v with_o they_o their_o household_n god_n and_o the_o ensign_n of_o their_o country_n be_v still_a christian_n professor_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n carry_v with_o they_o the_o word_n of_o god_n untouched_a by_o the_o fire_n of_o the_o greek_n keep_v the_o sacrament_n of_o our_o lord_n sound_a and_o pure_a the_o grecian_n be_v no_o trojan_n though_o they_o hold_v the_o place_n and_o possess_v it_o whatsoever_o title_n they_o allege_v neither_o art_n thou_o that_o have_v yield_v thyself_o forsake_v thy_o country_n a_o true_a christian_a since_o the_o enemy_n be_v where_o troy_n be_v antichrist_n where_o christ_n be_v furious_a in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o temple_n as_o once_o antiochus_n be_v sacrilegious_a even_o between_o the_o altar_n the_o sacrifice_n do_v you_o yet_o doubt_v my_o brethren_n hear_v what_o s._n john_n say_v 4._o apocal._n 13._o v._o 5._o 2._o thess_n 2._o v._n 4._o and_o there_o be_v give_v unto_o he_o a_o mouth_n that_o speak_v great_a thing_n and_o blasphemy_n s._n paul_n likewise_o he_o do_v sit_v as_o god_n in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n show_v himself_o that_o he_o be_v god_n harken_v now_o and_o behold_v paul_n 5_o your_o pope_n at_o this_o day_n 1609._o lib._n benedicti_fw-la de_fw-la benedictis_fw-la bononiae_fw-la excusus_fw-la anno_fw-la 16●8_n jtem_fw-la thes_n caraffae_fw-la neapoli_n excusae_fw-la 1609._o he_o be_v place_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o book_n late_o print_v counterfeit_v as_o it_o be_v in_o a_o table_n even_o to_o the_o life_n with_o this_o inscription_n paulo_n v._o vicedeo_fw-la to_o paul_n the_o 5_o god_n vicegerent_n the_o invincible_a monarch_n of_o the_o christian_a commonwealth_n and_o the_o most_o valiant_a protector_n of_o the_o pontifical_a power_n and_o in_o the_o same_o stile_n we_o read_v at_o tolentine_n to_o paul_n 3_o the_o most_o great_a and_o excellent_a god_n on_o earth_n the_o sceptre_n and_o diadem_n of_o prince_n king_n and_o emperor_n be_v his_o trophy_n who_o stand_v about_o he_o behold_v he_o with_o astonishment_n bow_v downward_o strike_v with_o his_o lightning_n adore_v he_o with_o this_o inscription_n over_o his_o head_n his_o countenance_n presage_v a_o empire_n the_o word_n of_o god_n sound_v on_o every_o side_n but_o god_n know_v strange_o wrest_v and_o apply_v the_o nation_n and_o kingdom_n which_o will_v not_o serve_v he_o i_o will_v visit_v say_v the_o lord_n with_o the_o sword_n and_o with_o the_o famine_n and_o with_o the_o pestilence_n jerem_n 27._o that_o which_o be_v once_o foretell_v of_o nabuchadnezzar_n the_o destroyer_n of_o the_o church_n he_o like_v another_o caiphas_n appli_v to_o himself_o and_o will_v have_v it_o fulfil_v in_o he_o the_o alastor_n and_o usurper_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n again_o he_o give_v he_o dominion_n and_o honour_n and_o a_o kingdom_n and_o all_o the_o people_n shall_v serve_v he_o his_o dominion_n be_v a_o everlasting_a dominion_n which_o shall_v never_o be_v take_v away_o and_o his_o kingdom_n shall_v never_o be_v destroy_v dan._n 7_o with_o their_o face_n towards_o the_o earth_n they_o shall_v lick_v the_o dust_n of_o thy_o foot_n esay_n 49.23_o that_o which_o be_v speak_v of_o christ_n only_o the_o eternal_a son_n of_o god_n govern_v his_o church_n and_o to_o be_v apply_v to_o no_o man_n else_o be_v without_o blasphemy_n communicate_v to_o other_o these_o thing_n be_v do_v by_o the_o command_n of_o the_o superior_n and_o print_v at_o bononia_n and_o at_o naples_n and_o that_o not_o rash_o or_o by_o the_o private_a endeavour_n and_o inconsiderate_a zeal_n of_o some_o private_a man_n but_o by_o a_o decree_n of_o the_o pope_n senate_n the_o matter_n solemn_o deliberate_v and_o in_o loco_fw-la maiorum_fw-la in_o the_o presence_n of_o paul_n himself_o in_o a_o famous_a assembly_n of_o cardinal_n and_o a_o great_a concourse_n of_o people_n dispute_v and_o determine_v here_o reader_n thou_o begin_v to_o bend_v thy_o brow_n but_o they_o be_v not_o secret_n that_o i_o utter_v rome_n know_v these_o thing_n and_o these_o monster_n be_v set_v out_o to_o the_o view_n of_o every_o man_n and_o thou_o be_v a_o great_a stranger_n in_o thy_o own_o church_n if_o thou_o know_v they_o not_o a_o traitor_n to_o thyself_o if_o know_v they_o
paul_n and_o borrow_v as_o saint_n john_n speak_v the_o horn_n of_o a_o lamb_n that_o be_v as_o a_o servant_n of_o god_n and_o under_o colour_n of_o his_o service_n for_o otherwise_o every_o man_n will_v have_v shut_v gate_n against_o he_o and_o this_o be_v that_o which_o all_o the_o father_n aim_v at_o 27._o origen_n in_o matt._n tract_n 27._o origen_n say_v antichrist_n have_v nothing_o of_o christ_n but_o the_o very_a ●ame_n he_o neither_o do_v his_o deed_n neither_o teach_v his_o doctrine_n christ_n be_v truth_n itself_o 24._o idem_fw-la in_o matt._n tract_n 24._o and_o antichrist_n a_o counterfeit_n and_o to_o the_o end_n say_v he_o that_o he_o may_v have_v some_o colour_n to_o exalt_v himself_o above_o god_n he_o take_v the_o testimony_n of_o his_o false_a doctrine_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n to_o deceive_v those_o who_o will_v not_o otherwise_o be_v satisfy_v he_o take_v possession_n of_o the_o chair_n of_o the_o scripture_n he_o build_v upon_o they_o and_o from_o thence_o show_v himself_o as_o god_n which_o when_o and_o so_o often_o as_o i_o read_v i_o think_v i_o hear_v he_o come_v in_o with_o his_o tibi_fw-la dabo_fw-la with_o his_o pasce_fw-la oves_fw-la meas_fw-la with_o oram_n pro_fw-la te_fw-la petre_n and_o the_o like_a saint_n cyprian_n also_o he_o shall_v teach_v say_v he_o infidelity_n under_o a_o show_n of_o faith_n 7._o cypr._n epist_n 7._o the_o night_n for_o the_o day_n destruction_n for_o salvation_n and_o antichrist_n under_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n 11._o august_n in_o apocal_a hom._n 11._o and_o we_o read_v say_v saint_n augustine_n in_o the_o apocalips_n that_o the_o beast_n have_v two_o horn_n like_o a_o lamb_n that_o be_v two_o testament_n like_o the_o church_n thereby_o the_o more_o easy_o to_o shed_v out_o the_o poison_n of_o antichrist_n under_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n and_o saint_n jerome_n yet_o more_o particular_o 13._o hieron_n in_o dan._n c._n 13._o according_a to_o the_o interpretation_n of_o symmachus_n say_v that_o antichrist_n shall_v speak_v as_o god_n he_o shall_v attribute_v to_o himself_o as_o well_o the_o word_n as_o the_o power_n of_o his_o majesty_n he_o shall_v go_v about_o to_o change_v the_o law_n and_o ceremony_n institute_v by_o god_n to_o enthrall_v all_o religion_n to_o his_o own_o authority_n and_o in_o another_o place_n he_o shall_v change_v say_v he_o 2._o idem_fw-la in_o 2._o ad_fw-la thessaly_n c._n 2._o and_o seek_v to_o increase_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o church_n now_o therefore_o see_v that_o the_o pope_n make_v himself_o to_o be_v call_v the_o most_o holy_a father_n see_v he_o depose_v king_n new_a mould_n at_o his_o pleasure_n all_o religion_n all_o commandment_n all_o sacrament_n institute_v by_o god_n may_v we_o not_o say_v that_o saint_n jerome_n prophesy_v and_o thus_o you_o see_v how_o these_o prediction_n of_o saint_n paul_n and_o of_o saint_n john_n be_v understand_v by_o the_o ancient_a holy_a father_n of_o the_o church_n this_o mystery_n therefore_o of_o iniquity_n which_o our_o age_n now_o behold_v in_o her_o height_n and_o exaltation_n begin_v to_o work_v and_o to_o set_v itself_o forward_o even_o in_o s._n paul_n time_n this_o monster_n of_o pride_n be_v already_o conceive_v in_o the_o mind_n of_o satan_n show_v itself_o in_o man_n ambition_n from_o hence_o proceed_v those_o siding_n in_o the_o church_n i_o be_o of_o paul_n i_o be_o of_o apollo_n i_o be_o of_o cephas_n and_o i_o be_o of_o christ_n and_o what_o 13._o 1_o cor._n c._n 1._o v._n 12._o &_o 13._o say_v paul_n be_v christ_n divide_v or_o be_v paul_n crucify_v for_o you_o the_o like_a will_v he_o have_v say_v of_o cephas_n and_o cephas_n of_o himself_o but_o paul_n to_o reserve_v all_o entire_o unto_o christ_n speak_v clear_o and_o say_v he_o that_o plant_v be_v nothing_o and_o he_o which_o water_v be_v nothing_o 8._o ib._n c._n 3._o v._n 7._o &_o 8._o but_o god_n which_o give_v the_o increase_n as_o for_o those_o other_o they_o be_v all_o one_o and_o servant_n in_o the_o same_o degree_n and_o far_o to_o cut_v off_o all_o pretence_n of_o inequality_n 6._o gal._n 2._o v._n 6._o i_o be_v nothing_o different_a say_v he_o from_o those_o which_o seem_v to_o be_v some_o body_n they_o which_o seem_v to_o be_v great_a add_v nothing_o to_o i_o above_o that_o which_o i_o have_v before_o and_o who_o be_v they_o but_o james_n and_o cephas_n and_o john_n which_o be_v account_v pillar_n of_o the_o church_n who_o also_o acknowledge_v say_v he_o that_o the_o gospel_n of_o the_o uncircumcision_n be_v commit_v unto_o i_o as_o the_o gospel_n of_o the_o circumcision_n be_v unto_o peter_n and_o therefore_o give_v unto_o i_o and_o unto_o barnabas_n the_o right_a hand_n of_o fellowship_n in_o all_o which_o no_o one_o jot_n of_o superiority_n be_v to_o be_v find_v and_o far_o in_o another_o place_n he_o say_v from_o jerusalem_n to_o illiricum_n 20._o rom._n c._n 15._o v._n 19_o &_o 20._o i_o have_v make_v to_o abound_v the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o there_o where_o he_o have_v be_v already_o preach_v that_o i_o may_v not_o seem_v to_o have_v build_v upon_o another_o man_n foundation_n much_o less_o therefore_o do_v he_o preach_v by_o another_o man_n commission_n and_o cephas_n himself_o that_o be_v saint_z peter_n put_v off_o from_o himself_o and_o other_o this_o claim_n of_o superiority_n where_o he_o say_v i_o beseech_v the_o elder_n which_o be_v among_o you_o 〈◊〉_d 1._o pet._n 5._o five_o 1.2.3_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i_o that_o be_o a_o fellow_n priest_n or_o elder_n with_o you_o and_o again_o feed_v say_v he_o the_o flock_n commit_v to_o your_o charge_n etc._n etc._n not_o domineer_a over_o the_o heritage_n of_o the_o lord_n but_o that_o you_o may_v be_v ensample_n to_o the_o flock_n deck_v as_o he_o speak_v afterward_o with_o humility_n because_o god_n resist_v the_o proud_a and_o give_v grace_n to_o the_o humble_a 39_o math._n cap._n 20._o vers_fw-la 25._o &_o 26._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d baron_fw-fr annal._n to_o 1._o a_o 34._o art_n 275._o idem_fw-la a_o 57_o to_o 1._o art_n 39_o as_o well_o remember_v the_o lesson_n of_o his_o lord_n who_o term_n he_o use_v you_o know_v say_v christ_n that_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o earth_n lord_n it_o over_o they_o but_o say_v he_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o with_o you_o you_o shall_v not_o do_v so_o over_o my_o church_n over_o my_o inheritance_n far_o and_o wide_o be_v this_o from_o that_o claim_n which_o baronius_n make_v in_o the_o pope_n behalf_n where_o he_o say_v that_o christ_n after_o his_o resurrection_n translate_v upon_o the_o pope_n both_o priesthood_n and_o kingdom_n and_o that_o this_o be_v signify_v by_o that_o shadow_n of_o saint_n peter_n whereby_o the_o sick_a be_v heal_v namely_o that_o the_o pope_n shall_v always_o have_v the_o same_o power_n which_o saint_n peter_n have_v though_o never_o so_o far_o different_a from_o he_o in_o life_n and_o conversation_n because_o they_o shall_v ever_o retain_v the_o shadow_n and_o what_o be_v it_o now_o that_o they_o will_v conclude_v out_o of_o this_o shadow_n no_o power_n to_o heal_v the_o sick_a but_o to_o destroy_v king_n and_o kingdom_n for_o what_o other_o miracle_n have_v they_o wrought_v these_o thousand_o year_n but_o short_o after_o the_o death_n of_o the_o apostle_n this_o ambition_n begin_v to_o sway_v more_o violent_o in_o the_o church_n and_o true_a in_o this_o point_n as_o also_o in_o many_o other_o be_v that_o say_n of_o hegesippus_n 21._o euseb_n lib._n 3._o c._n 26._o &_o lib._n 4._o c._n 21._o as_o eusebius_n report_v he_o that_o to_o the_o time_n of_o trajan_n or_o thereabouts_o the_o church_n continue_v clean_a and_o undefiled_a as_o a_o virgin_n but_o since_o that_o sacred_a company_n be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o world_n the_o conspiracy_n of_o iniquity_n begin_v to_o work_v with_o open_a face_n and_o this_o fall_v out_o about_o the_o year_n one_o hundred_o since_o which_o time_n what_o progression_n this_o iniquity_n have_v make_v until_o these_o our_o day_n we_o will_v here_o set_v down_o as_o we_o find_v record_v in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o time_n 1._o progression_n of_o the_o difference_n which_o fall_v between_o the_o church_n of_o the_o east_n and_o of_o the_o west_n concern_v the_o observation_n of_o easter_n day_n about_o the_o year_n 195_o touch_v the_o feast_n of_o easter_n whether_o it_o shall_v be_v hold_v upon_o the_o fourteen_o day_n of_o the_o moon_n after_o the_o jewish_a manner_n or_o rather_o upon_o the_o sunday_n follow_v diverse_a synod_n be_v assemble_v and_o different_a decision_n make_v those_o of_o palestina_n rome_n corinth_n france_n osroene_n and_o pontus_n hold_v for_o the_o sunday_n and_o those_o of_o the_o lesser_a asia_n for_o the_o fourteen_o day_n of_o the_o moon_n the_o first_o pretend_v
do_v otherwise_o than_o this_o be_v to_o thrust_v thy_o sickle_n into_o another_o man_n corn_n wherefore_o what_o ever_o be_v to_o be_v do_v by_o authority_n leave_v unto_o the_o bishop_n of_o arles_n who_o jurisdiction_n reach_v as_o far_o as_o to_o lion_n the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v of_o that_o pall_n which_o they_o say_v be_v send_v to_o siagrius_n bishop_n of_o authun_n and_o many_o such_o forgery_n may_v we_o find_v in_o those_o epistle_n as_o we_o may_v guess_v by_o the_o privilege_n there_o grant_v to_o s._n medard_n bishop_n of_o soissons_fw-fr bear_v date_n the_o year_n 593_o indictione_n 2_o whereunto_o theodoric_n his_o hand_n be_v set_v as_o if_o he_o have_v be_v then_o reign_v in_o soissons_fw-fr who_o yet_o be_v never_o there_o and_o be_v scarce_o of_o age_n to_o speak_v at_o what_o time_n that_o privilege_n bear_v date_n neither_o do_v the_o pope_n of_o that_o time_n date_n after_o the_o manner_n which_o be_v there_o express_v but_o this_o i_o say_v that_o gregory_n have_v that_o name_n of_o universal_a bishop_n in_o such_o abomination_n that_o as_o he_o condemn_v it_o in_o another_o so_o he_o will_v never_o accept_v thereof_o in_o himself_o be_v very_o persuade_v that_o whensoever_o it_o come_v to_o be_v accept_v the_o morrow_n after_o antichrist_n shall_v set_v foot_n into_o the_o church_n it_o remain_v now_o that_o we_o see_v what_o baronius_n repli_v to_o all_o this_o 27._o baron_fw-fr vol._n 8._o a_o 595._o art_n 27._o saint_n gregory_n say_v he_o imitate_v our_o saviour_n who_o strive_v not_o with_o satan_n in_o his_o divine_a majesty_n but_o in_o the_o humble_a and_o low_a estate_n of_o his_o flesh_n a_o weak_a ward_n to_o bear_v off_o so_o great_a a_o blow_n for_o do_v christ_n to_o overthrow_n satan_n play_n satan_n himself_o for_o what_o else_o do_v gregory_n when_o he_o call_v every_o man_n the_o forerunner_n of_o antichrist_n and_o satan_n himself_o if_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n he_o reserve_v this_o high_a title_n and_o prerogative_n to_o himself_o second_o he_o say_v that_o gregory_n will_v not_o indeed_o be_v call_v universal_a 34_o ib._n art_n 32_o 33_o 34_o as_o father_n of_o all_o the_o world_n because_o the_o other_o bishop_n be_v not_o his_o child_n but_o his_o brethren_n but_o in_o another_o sense_n say_v he_o he_o do_v not_o refuse_v it_o namely_o that_o they_o remain_v his_o brethren_n and_o fellow_n bishop_n he_o may_v yet_o be_v repute_v and_o take_v as_o superior_a unto_o all_o in_o which_o sense_n he_o call_v himself_o by_o that_o title_n in_o his_o epistle_n of_o the_o privilege_n of_o saint_n medard_n to_o all_o bishop_n but_o i_o will_v learn_v where_o they_o can_v find_v a_o ground_n for_o this_o distinction_n in_o saint_n gregory_n own_o word_n see_v that_o he_o so_o often_o repeat_v these_o and_o the_o like_a word_n that_o none_o will_v ever_o be_v call_v by_o that_o name_n and_o take_v offence_n that_o his_o brethren_n the_o patriarch_n call_v he_o so_o and_o reckon_v thereof_o as_o of_o a_o great_a wrong_n do_v unto_o he_o i_o think_v so_o great_a a_o annalist_n shall_v have_v bring_v some_o better_a proof_n than_o that_o privilege_n of_o s._n medard_n which_o who_o so_o do_v but_o see_v it_o condemn_v present_o as_o a_o fable_n and_o which_o himself_o confess_v to_o be_v subscribe_v by_o those_o bishop_n which_o be_v not_o at_o that_o time_n create_v bishop_n namely_o by_o augustine_n bishop_n of_o canterbury_n and_o mellitus_n bishop_n of_o london_n whereas_o they_o be_v not_o yet_o pass_v over_o into_o england_n and_o how_o come_v eulogius_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n to_o subscribe_v this_o privilege_n neither_o do_v theodoric_n at_o that_o time_n reign_v in_o france_n as_o baronius_n himself_o confess_v 593._o ib._n art_n 81._o a_o 593._o but_o childebert_n and_o gontran_n and_o who_o can_v warrant_v we_o that_o there_o be_v more_o truth_n in_o the_o privilege_n itself_o than_o there_o be_v in_o the_o subscription_n or_o be_v not_o the_o falsehood_n of_o the_o subscription_n enough_o to_o overthrow_v the_o instrument_n itself_o and_o yet_o be_v he_o not_o ashamed_a of_o this_o false_a coin_n clip_v by_o himself_o and_o round_v at_o his_o pleasure_n but_o use_v this_o forge_a instrument_n not_o only_o as_o a_o law_n to_o bind_v we_o poor_a man_n withal_o but_o even_o as_o a_o definitive_a sentence_n against_o the_o life_n and_o crown_n of_o prince_n for_o say_v he_o gregory_n pronounce_v that_o sedes_fw-la roma_fw-la speculationem_fw-la svam_fw-la toti_fw-la orbi_fw-la indicit_fw-la i._n the_o see_v of_o rome_n enjoin_v her_o speculation_n to_o all_o the_o world_n and_o send_v out_o her_o new_a constitution_n unto_o all_o perfect_a good_a latin_a no_o doubt_n but_o he_o go_v on_o if_o any_o king_n bishop_n or_o judge_n violate_v or_o infringe_v the_o decree_n of_o our_o apostolic_a authority_n and_o of_o this_o our_o commandment_n of_o what_o degree_n or_o estate_n soever_o he_o be_v let_v he_o be_v deprive_v of_o his_o honour_n and_o cut_v off_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v say_v baronius_n king_n from_o their_o kingdom_n for_o violate_v the_o privilege_n of_o one_o poor_a hospital_n 23._o greg._n 7._o li._n 8._o epist_n 21._o &_o li._n 4._o epist_n 2._o &_o 23._o and_o so_o do_v gregory_n the_o seven_o understand_v and_o extend_v these_o word_n and_o be_v it_o then_o possible_a that_o have_v himself_o cry_v down_o this_o epistle_n he_o will_v now_o so_o much_o enhance_v the_o price_n of_o this_o base_a coin_n three_o say_v he_o when_o pelagius_n predecessor_n unto_o gregory_n say_v in_o his_o first_o epistle_n that_o no_o patriarch_n may_v presume_v to_o use_v this_o profane_a name_n his_o meaning_n be_v that_o none_o of_o the_o four_o patriarch_n of_o the_o east_n shall_v use_v it_o to_o the_o exclusion_n of_o he_o of_o rome_n that_o be_v in_o effect_n to_o take_v it_o from_o they_o and_o to_o appropriate_v it_o to_o himself_o and_o for_o proof_n he_o allege_v a_o certain_a epistle_n of_o gregory_n to_o natalis_n where_o indeed_o he_o speak_v of_o four_o patriarch_n 2._o epist_n 37._o li._n 2._o but_o not_o a_o word_n to_o this_o purpose_n but_o not_o to_o go_v far_o a_o man_n that_o read_v the_o text_n itself_o have_v need_n to_o blush_v for_o he_o which_o can_v blush_v for_o himself_o for_o these_o word_n follow_v immediate_o upon_o the_o former_a epise_v pela_n 2._o epist_n 1._o ad_fw-la univer_n epise_v if_o say_v he_o the_o sovereign_n and_o chief_a patriarch_n such_o as_o he_o suppose_v himself_o to_o be_v in_o all_o that_o epistle_n be_v call_v universal_a then_o be_v the_o name_n of_o patriarch_n take_v from_o all_o other_o but_o far_o be_v this_o from_o the_o thought_n of_o a_o christian_n which_o then_o of_o these_o two_o do_v he_o do_v he_o give_v the_o title_n of_o sovereign_a patriarch_n to_o any_o one_o of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o the_o east_n or_o do_v he_o deny_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o christian_a or_o when_o he_o forbid_v they_o to_o give_v this_o title_n of_o universal_a to_o any_o man_n do_v he_o exclude_v himself_o out_o of_o the_o number_n of_o man_n four_o he_o say_v that_o this_o very_a john_n of_o constantinople_n 34._o baron_fw-fr vol._n 8._o a_o 565._o art_n 34._o who_o challenge_v this_o title_n yet_o still_o acknowledge_v gregory_n as_o head_n or_o chief_a above_o he_o as_o appeareth_z say_v he_o in_o the_o case_n of_o john_n of_o chalcedon_n which_o stand_v condemn_v of_o heresy_n and_o yet_o john_n of_o constantinople_n suffer_v he_o to_o carry_v his_o cause_n by_o appeal_v to_o rome_n and_o for_o proof_n hereof_o allege_v the_o epistle_n of_o gregory_n to_o john_n of_o constantinople_n 2._o greg._n epist_n 52._o &_o 64._o li._n 2._o and_o unto_o narses_n it_o be_v true_a that_o in_o the_o former_a of_o those_o epistle_n he_o complain_v that_o whereas_o he_o have_v write_v to_o he_o concern_v certain_a wrong_n do_v to_o john_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o to_o other_o monk_n of_o isauria_n he_o make_v he_o answer_v that_o he_o know_v of_o no_o such_o matter_n whereupon_o he_o storm_v and_o write_v to_o he_o again_o that_o if_o he_o have_v make_v he_o a_o more_o direct_a answer_n he_o will_v have_v send_v they_o back_o to_o he_o again_o without_o more_o ado_n and_o will_v never_o have_v speak_v of_o that_o which_o of_o right_n belong_v to_o he_o by_o the_o canon_n which_o also_o he_o repeat_v unto_o narses_n now_o no_o man_n ever_o doubt_v of_o their_o protection_n but_o what_o be_v all_o this_o to_o a_o appeal_v to_o rome_n see_v that_o there_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o the_o name_n either_o of_o a_o appeallant_a or_o of_o a_o appeal_v to_o be_v find_v in_o all_o those_o epistle_n and_o as_o for_o those_o 15_o 16_o 17_o epistle_n of_o gregory_n which_o he_o cit_v out_o of_o his_o
to_o pass_v so_o long_o as_o he_o stand_v upright_o yet_o zonaras_n 718._o an._n 718._o though_o a_o monk_n and_o a_o great_a maintainer_n of_o image_n say_v no_o such_o matter_n no_o more_o do_v cedrenus_n but_o the_o pope_n must_v have_v some_o colour_n for_o so_o hau●_n a_o enterprise_n gregory_n hereupon_o call_v in_o the_o lombard_n against_o the_o exarch_n who_o post_v to_o rome_n in_o all_o haste_n but_o be_v repulse_v by_o the_o lombard_n and_o fain_o to_o return_v unto_o ravenna_n and_o there_o break_v off_o the_o peace_n between_o the_o exarche_n and_o the_o lombard_n which_o have_v continue_v ever_o since_o rhotharis_n his_o time_n to_o the_o final_a ruin_n of_o both_o estate_n and_o first_o of_o that_o of_o the_o exarche_n who_o chief_a seat_n and_o city_n ravenna_n luitprand_a king_n of_o the_o lombard_n take_v and_o sack_v but_o gregory_n like_v not_o this_o sudden_a increase_n of_o the_o lombard_n power_n and_o therefore_o alter_v his_o course_n and_z carrying_z the_o matter_n very_o close_o get_v aid_n of_o the_o venetian_n and_o thereby_o sudden_o reestablish_v paul_n in_o the_o exarchat_n of_o ravenna_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o emperor_n leo_n cease_v not_o to_o exhort_v gregory_n to_o forbear_v the_o maintenance_n and_o support_v of_o image_n in_o the_o church_n gregory_n reply_v that_o it_o belong_v not_o to_o the_o emperor_n to_o innovat_fw-la any_o thing_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n for_o so_o he_o term_v the_o use_n of_o image_n neither_o stay_v he_o here_o but_o far_o as_o the_o history_n report_n he_o solicit_v the_o venetian_n and_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o ravenna_n to_o rise_v in_o arm_n against_o the_o emperor_n and_o his_o exarch_n cause_v city_n and_o town_n to_o thrust_v out_o their_o lawful_a magistrate_n 3._o blond_n dec._n 1._o li._n 10._o sigon_n de_fw-fr reg._n ital._n li._n 3._o and_o to_o put_v other_o of_o their_o own_o choice_n in_o their_o room_n persuade_v the_o citizen_n of_o rome_n to_o abandon_v he_o as_o a_o heretic_n if_o he_o persist_v in_o those_o his_o opinion_n and_o in_o the_o end_n absolve_v the_o people_n of_o italy_n from_o their_o oath_n and_o allegiance_n to_o he_o free_v their_o conscience_n forbid_v they_o to_o pay_v their_o tribute_n or_o to_o yield_v he_o obedience_n in_o any_o kind_n the_o people_n feel_v the_o reins_n to_o lie_v lose_v upon_o their_o neck_n present_o murder_v paul_n exarch_v of_o ravenna_n pull_v out_o peter_n eye_n who_o be_v duke_n of_o rome_n kill_v exhilarate_v duke_n of_o campania_n and_o his_o son_n 1_o zonar_n p._n 8._o 85._o to_o 3._o cedren_n p._n 373._o 1_o fill_v every_o corner_n of_o italy_n with_o sedition_n and_o blood_n and_o in_o conclusion_n find_v themselves_o so_o far_o engage_v in_o these_o disorder_n that_o they_o see_v no_o hope_n of_o reconciliation_n leave_v they_o with_o the_o emperor_n they_o shake_v off_o and_o first_o of_o all_o the_o citizen_n of_o rome_n the_o yoke_n of_o the_o emperor_n take_v a_o solemn_a oath_n to_o become_v liege_n servant_n obedient_a in_o all_o point_n and_o to_o all_o purpose_n 34._o baron_fw-fr 9_o a_o 726_o art_n 34._o to_o the_o pope_n and_o here_o say_v baronius_n be_v a_o end_n of_o those_o duke_n and_o governor_n which_o the_o emperor_n be_v wont_a to_o send_v to_o command_v in_o rome_n and_o place_n near_o adjoin_v this_o revolt_n will_v he_o fain_o justify_v constant_a onuphr_n in_o annot_n ad_fw-la plat._n in_o constant_a under_o colour_n of_o conspiracy_n make_v against_o the_o pope_n which_o no_o author_n report_v but_o anastasius_n a_o domestic_a of_o the_o pope_n and_o therefore_o sigonius_n say_v also_o that_o rome_n and_o the_o dukedom_n of_o rome_n be_v translate_v from_o the_o grecian_n to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o wicked_a heresy_n and_o impiety_n what_o impiety_n save_v only_o that_o pretend_a sin_n against_o the_o use_n of_o image_n but_o he_o go_v on_o and_o set_v down_o a_o beadroll_n of_o place_n which_o come_v to_o the_o pope_n by_o this_o new_a conquest_n rome_n with_o her_o castle_n and_o borough_n town_n in_o tuscanie_n 85._o zonar_n to_o 3._o in_o leo._n 3._o p._n 85._o port_n centocella_n cere_fw-la bleda_n matuta_n sutri_n nepet_n castelgalesi_n orta_fw-la polimarte_n ameria_n tuderta_n perusia_n narni_n oricoli_n and_o in_o campania_n di_fw-it roma_fw-it signia_n 373._o cedren_n pa._n 373._o anagnia_n ferentino_n alatrio_fw-la patrico_fw-it frusigno_fw-la tivoli_n and_o in_o terra_fw-la di_fw-it lavoro_fw-mi sora_n arces_fw-la aquino_n teano_n and_o capua_n whereunto_o we_o may_v add_v that_o luitprand_a king_n of_o lombard_n who_o at_o his_o entry_n unto_o his_o kingdom_n redemanded_a the_o cottian_a alps_n as_o a_o part_n of_o his_o domain_n restore_v they_o again_o and_o confirm_v the_o grant_n of_o aripert_a have_v as_o good_a right_a the_o one_o as_o the_o other_o to_o grant_v away_o that_o which_o belong_v to_o neither_o of_o they_o and_o thus_o by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o emperor_n thrust_v out_o of_o italy_n whither_o they_o never_o after_o look_v but_o with_o a_o sigh_n onuphrius_n speak_v of_o gregory_n and_o this_o his_o fact_n say_v in_o plain_a term_n that_o he_o be_v more_o hardy_a than_o his_o predecessor_n constantine_n and_o that_o he_o lawful_o rest_v out_o of_o leo_n the_o three_o his_o hand_n all_o the_o empire_n of_o italy_n which_o be_v not_o possess_v by_o the_o lombard_n in_o the_o year_n 729._o thus_o have_v we_o see_v the_o ruin_n of_o the_o exarche_n it_o remain_v now_o that_o we_o show_v how_o they_o suppress_v the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o lombard_n of_o who_o gregory_n stand_v in_o bodily_a fear_n because_o luitprand_v their_o king_n come_v with_o his_o army_n before_o rome_n gate_n 3._o sigon_n de_fw-fr reg._n ital._n li._n 3._o have_v already_o force_v he_o to_o entreat_v for_o peace_n moreover_o gregory_n see_v that_o he_o be_v link_v with_o charles_n martell_n at_o that_o time_n maior_n of_o the_o king_n house_n in_o france_n 10._o blond_n dec._n 1._o li._n 10._o who_o have_v send_v unto_o he_o his_o son_n pepin_n with_o request_n that_o he_o will_v adopt_v he_o as_o his_o own_o and_o in_o token_n thereof_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o lombard_n to_o cut_v off_o his_o lock_n 57_o aimon_n li._n 4._o ca._n 57_o which_o luitprand_v according_o have_v do_v though_o aimonius_n say_v he_o do_v it_o as_o his_o godfather_n and_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o christian_n wherefore_o to_o prevent_v a_o mischief_n he_o send_v unto_o charles_n a_o solemn_a embassage_n the_o key_n of_o the_o holy_a sepulchre_n and_o saint_n peter_n chain_n with_o other_o rich_a present_n which_o as_o aimonius_n say_v have_v never_o be_v hear_v of_o nor_o see_v before_o upon_o condition_n that_o he_o shall_v free_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n from_o the_o present_a tyranny_n of_o the_o lombard_n and_o prefer_v heavenly_a reward_n before_o earthly_a and_o transitory_a respect_n shall_v break_v off_o all_o alliance_n and_o confederacy_n which_o he_o have_v with_o they_o charles_n hereupon_o dispatch_v another_o embassage_n to_o rome_n to_o ratify_v a_o accord_n with_o the_o pope_n whereof_o ensue_v the_o deliverance_n of_o the_o pope_n out_o of_o that_o imminent_a danger_n wherein_o he_o be_v 110._o appendix_n greg._n turman_n 1._o c._n 110._o and_o the_o utter_a ruin_n of_o the_o lombard_n state_n in_o italy_n gregory_n in_o his_o epistle_n unto_o charles_n bring_v in_o the_o lombard_n speak_v in_o this_o wise_a let_v charles_n now_o come_v with_o his_o french_a man_n and_o help_v thou_o if_o he_o can_v etc._n etc._n and_o again_o saint_n peter_n can_v do_v well_o enough_o of_o himself_o but_o his_o purpose_n be_v to_o try_v the_o courage_n of_o his_o child_n etc._n etc._n howbeit_o baronius_n will_v attribute_v this_o epistle_n to_o gregory_n the_o three_o his_o successor_n gregory_n the_o second_o die_v in_o the_o year_n 731_o and_o after_o he_o succeed_v gregory_n the_o three_o 731._o an._n 731._o both_o in_o place_n and_o also_o in_o purpose_n concern_v image_n he_o decree_v in_o a_o synod_n of_o 93_o bishop_n that_o whosoever_o will_v not_o do_v they_o religious_a honour_n shall_v be_v cut_v off_o from_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o from_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n thereby_o put_v leo_n and_o his_o son_n out_o of_o all_o hope_n ever_o to_o reenter_v again_o upon_o italy_n as_o for_o the_o lombard_n it_o happen_v that_o thrasamond_n duke_n of_o spoleto_n intend_v to_o rebel_v against_o luitprand_n and_o for_o that_o purpose_n make_v alliance_n with_o gregory_n and_o to_o oblige_v he_o the_o more_o because_o his_o power_n be_v great_a in_o italy_n he_o surrender_v unto_o gregory_n certain_a place_n which_o have_v be_v former_o litigious_a between_o they_o and_o thereupon_o rise_v in_o open_a rebellion_n luitprand_n present_o come_v down_o upon_o he_o
and_o force_v to_o cry_v to_o gregory_n for_o help_v gregory_n according_a to_o their_o article_n receive_v and_o defend_v he_o luitprand_a summon_v gregory_n to_o deliver_v he_o into_o his_o hand_n 739._o an._n 739._o if_o not_o threaten_v to_o take_v he_o for_o a_o open_a enemy_n and_o when_o gregory_n refuse_v to_o do_v according_a to_o his_o summons_n luitprand_v move_v from_o spoletum_n where_o he_o lay_v take_v by_o the_o way_n sundry_a place_n of_o the_o pope_n dominion_n and_o at_o length_n come_v and_o encamp_v before_o rome_n gate_n sundry_a gentleman_n of_o the_o city_n grow_v weary_a and_o scorn_v this_o new_a church_n government_n come_v over_o to_o luitprand_n and_o offer_v he_o their_o service_n france_n be_v too_o far_o off_o to_o help_v in_o time_n yet_o charles_n entreat_v luitprand_a by_o a_o ambassador_n send_v unto_o he_o to_o raise_v his_o siege_n which_o he_o do_v hold_v only_o in_o his_o hand_n what_o he_o have_v already_o take_v luitprand_n be_v no_o soon_o return_v to_o pavia_n but_o thrasamond_n support_v by_o gregory_n take_v the_o field_n again_o surprise_v many_o of_o those_o city_n and_o place_n which_o he_o have_v lose_v but_o short_o after_o all_o in_o one_o year_n die_v the_o emperor_n leo_n charles_n martel_n and_o gregory_n the_o pope_n 741._o an._n 741._o after_o gregory_n succeed_v zacharie_n who_o redemaund_v his_o place_n of_o luitprand_n and_o take_v part_n as_o his_o predecessor_n have_v do_v with_o the_o rebel_n but_o see_v himself_o in_o danger_n entreat_v a_o parley_n and_o there_o get_v of_o this_o virtuous_a prince_n for_o so_o they_o term_v he_o what_o ever_o he_o desire_v who_o be_v content_v at_o the_o pope_n entreaty_n to_o give_v over_o the_o action_n which_o he_o intend_v against_o the_o exarch_n of_o ravenna_n in_o like_a sort_n deal_v he_o with_o rachis_n successor_n unto_o luitprand_n sometime_o try_v his_o patience_n and_o otherwhiles_o fly_v to_o his_o mercy_n but_o still_o abuse_v his_o devotion_n until_o at_o length_n build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n which_o his_o predecessor_n have_v lay_v he_o resolve_v to_o ruin_v this_o over_o powerful_a neighbour_a estate_n of_o the_o lombard_n by_o a_o foreign_a power_n which_o though_o great_a in_o itself_o yet_o be_v less_o dangerous_a to_o he_o and_o of_o less_o annoyance_n to_o his_o proceed_n and_o the_o ambition_n of_o the_o french_a easy_o hearken_v to_o such_o a_o motion_n pepin_n succeed_v his_o father_n martel_n in_o his_o mairaltie_n of_o the_o household_n and_o under_o this_o name_n in_o the_o royal_a authority_n but_o not_o content_a with_o the_o thing_n unless_o he_o may_v also_o have_v the_o title_n send_v to_o consult_v zacharie_n whether_o it_o be_v not_o reason_n that_o he_o which_o take_v all_o the_o pain_n in_o administration_n of_o all_o affair_n of_o the_o kingdom_n shall_v be_v king_n rather_o than_o he_o 1._o aimon_n l._n 4._o c._n 61._o sigon_n li._n 3._o blond_n dec._n 2._o li._n 1._o who_o content_v himself_o with_o the_o title_n take_v care_n of_o nothing_o but_o only_o in_o pleasure_n and_o pastime_n point_v at_o chilperic_n his_o lord_n and_o sovereign_n who_o he_o will_v fain_o have_v pull_v from_o his_o throne_n by_o force_n only_o he_o want_v authority_n cloak_v with_o devotion_n zacharis_n who_o understoood_a by_o the_o half_n what_o the_o whole_a mean_v present_o command_v as_o say_v a●monius_n by_o his_o authority_n that_o pepin_n shall_v be_v create_v king_n who_o be_v according_o that_o same_o year_n sacred_a by_o the_o archbishop_n boniface_n the_o subject_n discharge_v of_o their_o allegiance_n and_o chilperic_n degrade_v pope_n zacharie_n say_v sigonius_n ante●posing_v his_o decree_n out_o of_o the_o greatness_n of_o his_o authority_n what_o authority_n but_o that_o which_o be_v foretell_v we_o by_o the_o apostle_n of_o that_o son_n of_o perdition_n place_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n 8.4_o 2._o thessaly_n 8.4_o exalt_v himself_o above_o all_o that_o be_v call_v god_n and_o carry_v himself_o as_o if_o be_v be_v god_n god_n say_v the_o prophet_n to_o who_o alone_o it_o appertain_v to_o set_v up_o and_o to_o pull_v down_o king_n to_o continue_v kingdom_n or_o to_o translate_v they_o from_o one_o stock_n unto_o another_o and_o sigonius_n can_v hold_v but_o must_v needs_o say_v that_o he_o die_v have_v carry_v matter_n more_o for_o the_o behoof_n of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o the_o apostolic_a see_v than_o according_a to_o rule_n of_o true_a piety_n and_o religion_n and_o this_o fall_v out_o in_o the_o year_n 750._o 750._o an._n 750._o pepin_n now_o owe_v zacharie_n a_o good_a turn_n and_o quick_o have_v occasion_n to_o requite_v his_o kindness_n rachis_n king_n of_o the_o lombard_n enter_v into_o religion_n aistulphus_n his_o brother_n who_o succeed_v in_o the_o kingdom_n set_v upon_o the_o exarch_n of_o ravenna_n take_v the_o city_n &_o make_v he_o save_v himself_o in_o greece_n and_o this_o be_v the_o period_n of_o the_o exarchat_n after_o two_o hundred_o year_n space_n that_o they_o have_v bear_v sway_n in_o italy_n this_o do_v whether_o aistulph_n grow_v more_o insolent_a than_o before_o or_o whether_o a_o fright_n take_v the_o pope_n to_o see_v such_o proceed_n stephen_n who_o have_v now_o succeed_v zacharie_n resolve_v for_o prevention_n to_o fly_v to_o pepin_n and_o aistulph_n by_o his_o predecessor_n example_n grow_v wise_a and_o will_v not_o be_v lead_v with_o word_n stephen_n know_v not_o who_o to_o trust_v and_o to_o pass_v himself_o in_o person_n over_o the_o alps_n have_v be_v to_o run_v into_o the_o devil_n mouth_n wherefore_o he_o use_v the_o credit_n of_o pepin_n to_o make_v fair_a weather_n with_o he_o to_o win_v he_o to_o withdraw_v his_o force_n and_o to_o grant_v he_o safeconduct_n through_o his_o country_n towards_o france_n which_o he_o do_v and_o receive_v he_o in_o his_o journey_n with_o all_o honour_n at_o his_o court_n whence_o he_o pass_v into_o france_n where_o meet_v with_o pepin_n at_o pontigon_n 754._o an._n 754._o in_o the_o year_n 754_o exhort_v he_o in_o remembrance_n of_o the_o kindness_n which_o he_o have_v receive_v of_o zacharie_n to_o stand_v saint_n peter_n good_a friend_n nothing_o come_v amiss_o under_o so_o plausible_a a_o name_n and_o pepin_n desire_v no_o better_a office_n both_o in_o regard_n say_v sigonius_n of_o the_o kindness_n of_o zacharie_n in_o degrade_n chilperic_n make_v that_o just_a and_o lawful_a by_o his_o sacred_a authority_n which_o otherwise_o seem_v utter_o unlawful_a as_o also_o because_o he_o desire_v to_o have_v this_o right_n of_o succession_n establish_v by_o stephen_n upon_o his_o two_o son_n charles_n and_o carloman_n the_o conclusion_n of_o all_o be_v that_o the_o next_o summer_n pepin_n shall_v pass_v with_o his_o army_n into_o italy_n and_o force_n aistolph_n to_o surrender_v the_o exarchat_n and_o all_o other_o place_n which_o he_o have_v take_v and_o that_o the_o pope_n shall_v spend_v the_o winter_n in_o france_n to_o anoint_v and_o sacre_v his_o two_o child_n but_o upon_o the_o hold_n of_o the_o parliament_n in_o france_n when_o he_o see_v all_o matter_n sort_n after_o his_o desire_n he_o go_v a_o step_n far_o and_o draw_v a_o promise_n from_o pepin_n that_o he_o will_v not_o restore_v either_o the_o exarchat_n or_o pentapolis_n unto_o the_o emperor_n of_o greece_n who_o have_v make_v himself_o unworthy_a thereof_o by_o his_o cowardice_n and_o heresy_n but_o that_o he_o will_v bestow_v they_o upon_o saint_n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n for_o ever_o for_o the_o good_a of_o his_o soul_n and_o for_o the_o remission_n of_o his_o sin_n which_o pepin_n swear_v unto_o he_o to_o perform_v and_o make_v his_o two_o child_n take_v the_o same_o oath_n and_o he_o present_o deliver_v he_o a_o patent_n thereof_o sign_v with_o his_o own_o hand_n pepin_n have_v no_o soon_o set_v foot_n in_o italy_n but_o aistulph_n present_o promise_v to_o yield_v up_o the_o exarchat_n and_o what_o ever_o else_o he_o have_v take_v for_o performance_n whereof_o he_o give_v forty_o hostage_n which_o be_v present_o convey_v into_o france_n pepin_n have_v no_o soon_o turn_v his_o back_n but_o aistulph_n immediate_o repent_v he_o of_o his_o surrender_n draw_v his_o force_n into_o the_o field_n and_o pepin_n be_v fain_o to_o repass_v the_o mountain_n and_o to_o hasten_v back_o into_o italy_n again_o then_o be_v aistulph_n fain_o to_o personne_fw-fr he_o promise_n with_o effect_n and_o when_o the_o emperor_n of_o greece_n require_v he_o to_o restore_v to_o he_o the_o exarchat_n and_o pentapolis_n as_o to_o he_o proper_o appertain_v and_o not_o unto_o the_o pope_n his_o answer_n be_v that_o he_o have_v bestow_v it_o upon_o the_o church_n for_o his_o soul_n health_n and_o for_o the_o remission_n of_o his_o sin_n and_o thereupon_o renew_v his_o grant_n to_o stephen_n give_v he_o livery_n and_o seisin_n for_o he_o and_o his_o
bishop_n much_o renown_a for_o his_o piety_n and_o learning_n in_o bavaria_n for_o affirm_v that_o there_o be_v antipode_n as_o he_o be_v indeed_o a_o man_n seem_v in_o all_o science_n especial_o in_o the_o mathematics_n which_o boniface_n persuade_v zacharie_n a_o couple_n of_o scholar_n well_o meet_v to_o condemn_v in_o he_o as_o heresy_n and_o irreligion_n and_o thereupon_o be_v letter_n dispatch_v to_o vtilo_n king_n of_o baviere_n to_o depose_v he_o from_o his_o charge_n to_o conclude_v this_o section_n we_o may_v not_o forget_v that_o this_o adrian_n be_v the_o first_o that_o be_v say_v to_o have_v seal_v in_o lead_n as_o also_o that_o he_o lay_v the_o first_o stone_n of_o that_o doctrine_n which_o since_o that_o time_n have_v be_v so_o well_o practise_v by_o his_o successor_n to_o the_o cost_n of_o so_o many_o king_n and_o prince_n synod_n adrian_n in_o epist_n ad_fw-la charo_fw-la make_fw-mi de_fw-fr nicae_n synod_n that_o if_o any_o man_n hold_v any_o church_n good_n if_o he_o refuse_v to_o restore_v they_o he_o be_v a_o heretic_n the_o very_a seed_n of_o so_o many_o excommunication_n spoil_n and_o revolt_v of_o subject_n from_o their_o lawful_a lord_n and_o sovereign_n and_o under_o this_o colour_n do_v he_o animat_fw-la charlemagne_n against_o the_o emperor_n of_o the_o east_n and_o hereupon_o also_o leo_n the_o three_o take_v occasion_n to_o crown_v he_o emperor_n of_o the_o west_n and_o if_o we_o will_v believe_v baronius_n to_o translate_v the_o empire_n upon_o he_o now_o from_o this_o coronation_n of_o charlemagne_n at_o rome_n by_o pope_n leo_n baronius_n after_o his_o accustom_a boldness_n in_o this_o kind_n draw_v in_o consequence_n a_o cruel_a and_o a_o bloody_a doctrine_n wherein_o all_o christian_a prince_n have_v their_o interest_n namely_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v authority_n and_o power_n to_o translate_v empire_n and_o kingdom_n sequent_a baron_fw-fr vol._n 9_o ●●_o 800._o art_n 6_o 7_o 8_o &_o sequent_a fill_v with_o this_o argument_n six_o or_o eight_o page_n leo_n set_v the_o crown_n upon_o charlemaine_n head_n we_o grant_v what_o follow_v ergo_fw-la say_v he_o leo_n collate_v the_o empire_n upon_o he_o translate_v it_o from_o the_o greek_n to_o the_o french_a do_v it_o and_o have_v right_o so_o to_o do_v what_o reader_n can_v endure_v such_o a_o non_fw-la sequitur_fw-la as_o this_o for_o when_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n be_v wont_a to_o crown_v the_o emperor_n or_o when_o archbishop_n in_o other_o place_n crown_v their_o king_n do_v they_o bestow_v the_o empire_n or_o kingdom_n on_o they_o or_o because_o they_o be_v instrument_n use_v for_o the_o performance_n of_o this_o ceremony_n do_v it_o imply_v a_o power_n or_o right_v in_o they_o of_o confer_v kingdom_n whether_o hereditary_a or_o elective_a no_o doubt_n neither_o he_o that_o do_v consecrate_v nor_o he_o that_o be_v consecrate_v have_v ever_o any_o such_o opinion_n and_o therefore_o the_o emperor_n crown_v by_o the_o patriarch_n and_o charlemagne_n by_o the_o pope_n be_v nevertheless_o teerm_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i._o crown_v of_o god_n as_o appear_v in_o charles_n by_o the_o acclamation_n before_o mention_v of_o the_o people_n make_v at_o his_o coronation_n charolo_n à_fw-la deo_fw-la coronato_fw-la etc._n etc._n but_o peradventure_o his_o authority_n be_v better_a than_o his_o reason_n all_o this_o say_v he_o be_v according_a as_o it_o be_v write_v 4._o dan._n 4._o the_o most_o high_a rule_v over_o the_o kingdom_n of_o man_n and_o he_o give_v it_o to_o who_o it_o please_v he_o true_a but_o how_o do_v he_o prove_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v god_n or_o that_o the_o most_o high_a have_v surrender_v his_o place_n to_o he_o and_o again_o by_o i_o king_n reign_v and_o by_o i_o prince_n bear_v rule_v 8._o proverb_n 8._o which_o word_n solomon_n speak_v of_o the_o eternal_a wisdom_n of_o god_n and_o where_o do_v he_o prove_v that_o this_o wisdom_n be_v hypostatical_o and_o essential_o reside_v in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o yet_o as_o if_o he_o have_v deliver_v some_o high_a point_n of_o doctrine_n reader_n say_v he_o consider_v well_o this_o matter_n etc._n etc._n and_o what_o i_o pray_v you_o follow_v of_o this_o wide_a gape_n but_o mere_a gallery_n and_o cog_a second_o who_o doubt_v say_v he_o but_o god_n have_v give_v as_o great_a authority_n to_o his_o church_n as_o heretofore_o he_o give_v to_o the_o jewish_a synagogue_n and_o do_v we_o not_o for_o how_o samuel_n translate_v the_o kingdom_n of_o saul_n to_o david_n elias_n and_o eliseus_n from_o the_o house_n of_o achab_n to_o the_o stock_n of_o jehu_n nothing_o but_o trick_n again_o for_o where_o read_v he_o that_o the_o synagogue_n have_v ever_o right_a to_o translate_v the_o kingdom_n that_o ever_o it_o do_v it_o or_o meddle_v with_o it_o and_o if_o the_o pope_n for_o this_o purpose_n will_v needs_o be_v master_n of_o the_o synagogue_n and_o circumcise_v himself_o yet_o how_o will_v he_o prove_v unto_o we_o that_o unto_o this_o decay_a synagogue_n of_o the_o jew_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v now_o succeed_v rather_o than_o that_o of_o jerusalem_n of_o alexandria_n or_o of_o antioch_n or_o which_o be_v more_o where_o will_v he_o show_v we_o that_o god_n have_v speak_v to_o he_o and_o give_v he_o any_o special_a command_n either_o by_o oracle_n or_o by_o miracle_n or_o by_o any_o other_o way_n do_v he_o not_o see_v that_o this_o work_n be_v altogether_o extraordinary_a wherein_o the_o high_a priest_n be_v not_o use_v but_o a_o prophet_n and_o vessel_n elect_v of_o god_n for_o this_o special_a purpose_n which_o shall_v not_o have_v be_v if_o the_o office_n have_v be_v proper_o affect_v to_o the_o synagogue_n and_o shall_v these_o man_n be_v over_o suffer_v thus_o to_o abuse_v the_o world_n three_o say_v he_o it_o be_v say_v to_o jeremie_n 1_o jerem._n 1_o i_o have_v set_v thou_o this_o day_n over_o nation_n and_o kingdom_n to_o pluck_v up_o and_o to_o destroy_v to_o plant_v and_o to_o build_v and_o it_o be_v also_o say_v by_o the_o prophet_n haggei_n the_o glory_n of_o this_o house_n i._o of_o the_o second_o temple_n shall_v be_v great_a than_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o first_o and_o saint_n paul_n say_v if_o the_o ministration_n of_o condemnation_n i._o the_o law_n be_v glorious_a much_o more_o shall_v the_o ministry_n of_o righteousness_n exceed_v in_o glory_n mean_v the_o ministry_n of_o justification_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n ergo_fw-la say_v baronius_n much_o more_o have_v the_o pope_n power_n to_o pluck_v up_o and_o to_o pull_v down_o to_o collate_n and_o to_o translate_v kingdom_n who_o can_v but_o grind_v his_o tooth_n to_o hear_v such_o profane_a abuse_n and_o blasphemy_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o be_v jeremie_n either_o synogogue_n or_o high_a priest_n or_o be_v he_o to_o denounce_v and_o threaten_v the_o ruin_n of_o the_o jewish_a estate_n by_o the_o babylonian_n as_o a_o priest_n of_o anatoh_n or_o as_o a_o prophet_n and_o be_v it_o not_o say_v unto_o he_o when_o he_o will_v have_v excuse_v himself_o 9_o jerem._n ●_o 6_o &_o 9_o before_o thou_o come_v out_o of_o the_o womb_n i_o sanctify_v thou_o and_o ordain_v thou_o a_o prophet_n for_o the_o nation_n and_o do_v nor_o the_o lord_n put_v forth_o his_o hand_n and_o touch_v his_o mouth_n say_v behold_v i_o have_v put_v my_o word_n into_o thy_o mouth_n what_o can_v leo_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o such_o companion_n allege_v for_o themselves_o like_a unto_o this_o and_o last_o of_o all_o do_v he_o make_v no_o difference_n between_o denounce_v the_o judgement_n of_o god_n as_o they_o be_v reveal_v unto_o he_o by_o special_a command_n from_o he_o and_o the_o intrude_a himself_o without_o commission_n to_o the_o depose_n of_o one_o king_n and_o installing_n of_o another_o jeremie_n though_o found_v as_o you_o see_v upon_o a_o great_a power_n yet_o do_v he_o presume_v to_o depose_v sedechias_n or_o to_o anoint_v nabuchadnezzer_n in_o his_o room_n saint_n jerome_n true_o be_v of_o another_o mind_n concern_v this_o place_n of_o scripture_n who_o expound_v it_o by_o another_o in_o the_o five_o &_o twenty_o of_o the_o same_o prophet_n where_o god_n deliver_v to_o the_o prophet_n a_o cup_n to_o make_v drink_v all_o nation_n with_o the_o wine_n of_o his_o wrath_n all_o which_o be_v there_o specify_v by_o their_o name_n that_o be_v to_o forewarn_v they_o of_o the_o plague_n which_o god_n be_v ready_a to_o pour_v out_o upon_o they_o and_o yet_o do_v we_o any_o where_n find_v that_o the_o prophet_n intermeddle_v with_o the_o affair_n of_o those_o several_a nation_n and_o when_o saint_n jerome_n will_v go_v a_o little_a far_o and_o allegorise_v this_o piece_n of_o scripture_n he_o expound_v these_o word_n of_o plant_v and_o pull_v up_o the_o one_o of_o bad_a doctrine_n which_o
be_v pluck_v up_o the_o other_o of_o good_a which_o be_v plant_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o also_o those_o other_o of_o pull_v down_o and_o set_v up_o of_o the_o efficacy_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o his_o mouth_n yea_o but_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o second_o temple_n shall_v be_v great_a than_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o first_o what_o second_v temple_n caitiff_a divine_a as_o he_o be_v but_o the_o temple_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o what_o be_v that_o great_a glory_n according_a to_o all_o interpreter_n both_o jew_n and_o christian_n old_a and_o modern_a but_o the_o redemption_n of_o mankind_n by_o christ_n crucify_v for_o our_o sin_n under_o the_o second_o temple_n or_o if_o by_o the_o second_o temple_n he_o will_v needs_o understand_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n what_o follow_v thereof_o but_o this_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v either_o caiphas_n or_o herod_n or_o because_o he_o challenge_v both_o jurisdiction_n caiphas_n and_o herod_n all_o in_o one_o and_o what_o be_v mean_v by_o that_o glory_n of_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o 3._o 2._o cor._n 3._o but_o christ_n reign_v powerful_o in_o we_o by_o his_o spirit_n which_o the_o apostle_n also_o in_o that_o same_o place_n term_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o spirit_n not_o of_o the_o letter_n oppose_v that_o law_n grave_v in_o stone_n unto_o condemnation_n against_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n write_v in_o out_o heart_n unto_o salvation_n and_o what_o fellowship_n i_o will_v know_v have_v this_o ministry_n with_o the_o other_o pretend_a magisterie_n this_o ministyer_n i_o say_v of_o the_o spirit_n with_o that_o magisterie_n which_o be_v simple_o carnal_a and_o worldly_a breathe_v out_o ambition_n and_o conspire_v nought_o but_o tyranny_n saint_n chrysostome_n upon_o this_o place_n the_o glory_n say_v he_o 7._o in_o 2._o corinth_n c._n 3._o hamil_n 7._o of_o moses_n be_v outward_a to_o the_o sense_n for_o they_o see_v it_o with_o their_o eye_n but_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v not_o to_o be_v discern_v but_o by_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o spirit_n wherefore_o they_o that_o seek_v for_o glory_n in_o temporal_a and_o carnal_a thing_n do_v not_o they_o renounce_v this_o other_o glory_n and_o again_o he_o have_v oppose_v say_v he_o the_o stone_n to_o the_o heart_n and_o the_o letter_n to_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o new_a testament_n give_v not_o only_a life_n but_o also_o spirit_n from_o whence_o proceed_v life_n how_o far_o be_v this_o construction_n from_o that_o of_o baronius_n which_o savour_v naught_o but_o flesh_n and_o blood_n saint_n ambrose_n also_o upon_o this_o place_n ambros_n ambros_n it_o be_v manifest_a say_v he_o that_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o law_n of_o faith_n be_v great_a than_o that_o of_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n this_o holy_a father_n expound_v this_o glory_n to_o consist_v in_o grace_n in_o stead_n of_o baronius_n his_o tyranny_n and_o oppression_n and_o again_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n by_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n be_v great_a than_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o old_a law_n and_o now_o see_v how_o these_o man_n always_o follow_v the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o father_n too_o much_o already_o say_v i_o confess_v but_o the_o reader_n will_v pardon_v i_o in_o a_o case_n of_o such_o absurd_a position_n which_o yet_o to_o deny_v or_o doubt_v of_o be_v no_o less_o with_o they_o than_o open_a heresy_n four_o baronius_n affirm_v electiwm_fw-la baron_fw-fr to_o 9_o a_o 806._o art_n 26._o arbitrio_fw-la romani_fw-la pontificis_fw-la electiwm_fw-la that_o charlemagne_n when_o he_o part_v his_o kingdom_n among_o his_o child_n dispose_v not_o of_o the_o empire_n as_o know_v say_v he_o that_o it_o depend_v of_o the_o election_n of_o the_o pope_n but_o the_o very_a testament_n which_o he_o produce_v for_o his_o proof_n gain_n say_v his_o assertion_n which_o yet_o be_v a_o uncertain_a writing_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o peter_n pytheus_n from_o who_o he_o have_v it_o for_o in_o the_o very_a instep_n thereof_o it_o be_v thus_o write_v we_o desire_v say_v he_o with_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o god_n nostri_fw-la regnivel_n imperij_fw-la nostri_fw-la to_o leave_v our_o child_n heir_n of_o this_o our_o realm_n or_o empire_n and_o again_o such_o partage_n we_o have_v think_v fit_a to_o make_v of_o our_o realm_n or_o empire_n and_o indeed_o he_o divide_v among_o they_o his_o whole_a estate_n namely_o italy_n even_o unto_o rome_n on_o the_o right_a hand_n and_o on_o the_o left_a save_v only_o that_o which_o we_o call_v at_o this_o day_n the_o kingdom_n of_o naples_n which_o be_v yet_o possess_v by_o the_o emperor_n of_o greece_n the_o cause_n why_o he_o make_v none_o of_o his_o son_n emperor_n be_v to_o leave_v no_o occasion_n of_o discord_n among_o the_o brethren_n mean_v that_o each_o of_o they_o shall_v hold_v his_o part_n without_o prerogative_n of_o the_o one_o above_o the_o other_o for_o have_v part_v his_o whole_a estate_n among_o his_o child_n if_o he_o have_v leave_v the_o title_n of_o the_o empire_n to_o be_v dispose_v of_o at_o the_o pope_n pleasure_n what_o have_v the_o pope_n but_o so_o much_o smoke_n to_o give_v in_o case_n he_o will_v have_v place_v it_o upon_o a_o stranger_n 28._o progression_n how_o the_o pope_n encroach_v upon_o lewis_n the_o son_n of_o charlemagne_n and_o of_o his_o pretend_a donation_n charlemaine_n keep_v his_o temporal_a power_n safe_a enough_o from_o the_o intrusion_n of_o the_o pope_n leave_v sometime_o the_o spiritual_a as_o a_o prey_n unto_o they_o for_o by_o his_o law_n it_o be_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o france_n find_v themselves_o aggrieve_v with_o the_o judgement_n of_o their_o metropolitan_o or_o comprovinciall_a bishop_n be_v permit_v to_o run_v to_o rome_n yet_o his_o word_n be_v careful_o to_o be_v note_v when_o a_o bishop_n say_v he_o have_v have_v sentence_n against_o he_o it_o shall_v be_v lawful_a for_o he_o to_o demand_v a_o review_v and_o if_o need_v be_v to_o go_v free_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n where_o this_o word_n liceat_fw-la as_o also_o in_o another_o place_n placuit_fw-la import_v a_o novel_a grace_n and_o favour_n grant_v by_o the_o prince_n not_o that_o the_o church_n of_o france_n be_v ancient_o tie_v to_o any_o such_o observation_n and_o yet_o be_v it_o set_v also_o with_o a_o alternative_a let_v he_o say_v he_o be_v judge_v either_o by_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o diocese_n or_o by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o this_o be_v term_v a_o proclamation_n or_o a_o appellation_n the_o source_n of_o so_o many_o debate_n and_o quarrel_n which_o ensue_v between_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o france_n charles_n have_v treat_v with_o the_o emperor_n of_o the_o east_n 816._o an._n 816._o and_o particular_o agree_v about_o the_o partage_n of_o italy_n between_o they_o two_o each_o of_o they_o retain_v the_o title_n of_o emperor_n the_o one_o of_o the_o east_n the_o other_o of_o the_o west_n which_o he_o do_v the_o rather_o to_o set_v himself_o safe_a from_o that_o rage_a ambition_n of_o the_o pope_n but_o when_o charles_n be_v dead_a though_o he_o use_v his_o power_n with_o such_o moderation_n as_o they_o in_o discretion_n have_v no_o reason_n to_o complain_v yet_o they_o present_o set_v themselves_o to_o work_v on_o the_o good_a nature_n of_o lewis_n son_n and_o successor_n unto_o charles_n after_o leo_n succeed_v stephen_n the_o five_o ordinatus_fw-la electus_n &_o ordinatus_fw-la contrary_a to_o the_o law_n be_v after_o his_o election_n present_o consecrate_v without_o expect_v the_o emperor_n command_n as_o say_v aimonius_n 18._o aimoni._n lib._n 4._o c._n 103._o thega_n de_fw-fr gestis_fw-la ludovi_fw-la c._n 16_o 17_o 18._o yet_o to_o daub_v this_o fault_n commit_v he_o command_v say_v theganus_fw-la all_o the_o people_n of_o rome_n to_o take_v the_o oath_n of_o fealty_n unto_o lewis_n and_o come_v himself_o in_o post_n have_v into_o france_n send_v two_o ambassador_n before_o he_o as_o it_o be_v to_o demand_v consecration_n at_o the_o emperor_n hand_n all_o which_o be_v nothing_o but_o to_o try_v his_o patience_n and_o after_o a_o while_n when_o he_o have_v crown_v he_o he_o return_v home_o lade_v with_o rich_a gift_n and_o present_n yet_o it_o shall_v seem_v that_o he_o be_v teach_v his_o duty_n while_o he_o be_v in_o france_n for_o we_o find_v a_o ordinance_n of_o he_o in_o the_o decrete_a c._n quia_fw-la sancta_fw-la in_o these_o word_n for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o holy_a church_n of_o rome_n over_o which_o autore_fw-la d._n 53._o c._n 28._o deo_fw-la autore_fw-la by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n we_o be_v now_o place_v upon_o the_o death_n of_o the_o pope_n many_o time_n suffer_v violence_n because_o the_o election_n and_o consecration_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v make_v without_o the_o advice_n and_o knowledge_n of_o the_o
himself_o as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o saint_n peter_n privilege_n take_v place_n only_o where_o man_n judge_v according_a to_o the_o equity_n of_o saint_n peter_n and_o be_v of_o force_n wheresoever_o that_o equity_n be_v use_v no_o more_o at_o rome_n than_o at_o rheims_n no_o less_o at_o rheims_n than_o at_o rome_n in_o every_o place_n alike_o according_a as_o the_o bishop_n do_v or_o do_v not_o their_o duty_n so_o likewise_o when_o this_o leo_n presume_v upon_o the_o pretend_a apostleship_n of_o boniface_n encroach_v upon_o the_o church_n of_o germany_n more_o than_o reason_n be_v he_o shall_v luithpert_a archbishop_n of_o mence_n write_v to_o lewis_n king_n of_o germany_n moguntinens_fw-la luithpertus_n episc_n moguntinens_fw-la spare_v he_o not_o the_o cause_n say_v he_o will_v not_o suffer_v i_o to_o keep_v silence_n for_o i_o be_v inexcusable_a before_o god_n and_o your_o highness_n if_o see_v with_o my_o eye_n the_o imminent_a danger_n of_o the_o church_n i_o shall_v dissemble_v my_o knowledge_n as_o a_o hire_a servant_n and_o no_o long_o a_o true_a pastor_n of_o my_o sheep_n the_o primacy_n therefore_o and_o the_o dignity_n thereof_o now_o shake_v and_o be_v grow_v infamous_a in_o the_o very_a chair_n of_o saint_n peter_n for_o after_o a_o secret_a and_o unheard_a kind_n of_o persecution_n she_o be_v wrong_v not_o by_o those_o who_o know_v not_o god_n but_o by_o such_o as_o ought_v to_o be_v conductor_n and_o leader_n of_o the_o people_n of_o god_n which_o make_v more_o account_n of_o earthly_a trash_n than_o they_o do_v of_o heavenly_a treasure_n and_o this_o ache_n of_o the_o head_n if_o speedy_a remedy_n be_v not_o apply_v capite_fw-la in_o capite_fw-la will_v quick_o distil_v upon_o the_o member_n etc._n etc._n you_o know_v the_o danger_n wherein_o the_o people_n of_o god_n stand_v every_o man_n see_v it_o and_o the_o very_a element_n tremble_v at_o it_o to_o see_v how_o the_o governor_n and_o conductor_n thereof_o who_o duty_n be_v to_o seek_v to_o save_v the_o weak_a forsake_v themselves_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n and_o run_v headlong_o to_o their_o downfall_n draw_v those_o which_o follow_v they_o into_o the_o like_a pit_n of_o perdition_n wherefore_o i_o exhort_v your_o wisdom_n which_o love_v verity_n and_o justice_n that_o according_a to_o the_o knowledge_n give_v you_o by_o god_n you_o will_v advise_v with_o such_o as_o know_v the_o law_n and_o be_v lover_n of_o equity_n and_o justice_n how_o peace_n and_o unity_n may_v be_v restore_v to_o the_o church_n etc._n etc._n for_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o hurt_v though_o the_o head_n be_v wound_v all_o the_o member_n be_v weaken_v thereby_o wherefore_o the_o sound_a part_n must_v help_v the_o sick_a at_o least_o if_o they_o will_v take_v the_o medicine_n if_o not_o then_o cut_v they_o off_o according_a to_o the_o precept_n of_o that_o true_a physician_n lest_o all_o the_o body_n perish_v with_o they_o wherefore_o i_o think_v it_o necessary_a that_o charles_n your_o brother_n and_o a_o religious_a prince_n shall_v be_v request_v by_o your_o letter_n and_o ambassador_n to_o come_v to_o a_o conference_n with_o you_o concern_v this_o matter_n as_o soon_o as_o may_v be_v to_o the_o end_n that_o he_o and_o the_o bishop_n of_o his_o kingdom_n who_o be_v yet_o clean_o from_o those_o pollution_n may_v join_v with_o you_o and_o your_o bishop_n and_o all_o together_o take_v upon_o you_o this_o common_a care_n to_o reform_v by_o the_o assistance_n of_o god_n the_o peace_n and_o concord_n of_o the_o catholic_a and_o apostolic_a church_n this_o luitpert_a be_v a_o man_n much_o esteem_v for_o his_o integrity_n wisdom_n and_o sanctity_n of_o life_n and_o conversation_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n of_o so_o great_a authority_n in_o the_o world_n that_o the_o two_o king_n of_o germany_n and_o france_n make_v he_o arbitrator_n between_o they_o in_o difference_n of_o their_o kingdom_n and_o yet_o see_v he_o even_o then_o corruption_n so_o far_o grow_v in_o that_o pretend_a head_n that_o he_o can_v hope_v for_o redress_n and_o remedy_n from_o none_o but_o from_o these_o two_o great_a prince_n for_o that_o he_o mean_v the_o pope_n no_o man_n can_v doubt_v who_o know_v the_o history_n of_o the_o time_n and_o the_o contention_n which_o they_o have_v at_o that_o time_n with_o germany_n and_o france_n neither_o may_v we_o here_o forget_v before_o we_o pass_v any_o far_a that_o we_o have_v a_o certain_a canon_n of_o this_o leo_n his_o make_n britan._n leo._n 4._o ad_fw-la epist_n britan._n by_o which_o he_o take_v away_o all_o authority_n from_o all_o decretal_a epistle_n of_o pope_n until_o the_o time_n of_o sylvester_n and_o syricius_n and_o so_o blot_v out_o with_o one_o dash_n of_o a_o pen_n all_o those_o which_o be_v attribute_v to_o they_o libellis_fw-la d._n 2._o ca._n de_fw-fr libellis_fw-la during_o the_o three_o or_o four_o first_o age_n which_o yet_o our_o adversary_n at_o this_o day_n use_v as_o good_a authority_n against_o us._n and_o the_o roman_a code_n seem_v to_o point_v hereat_o see_v that_o it_o never_o use_v any_o before_o that_o time_n here_o now_o be_v we_o to_o observe_v shall_v i_o say_v a_o proceed_v or_o rather_o a_o headlong_o stumble_v of_o this_o mystery_n of_o rome_n that_o prodigious_a accident_n and_o monster_n of_o this_o time_n a_o stumble_v indeed_o and_o a_o fall_n withal_o it_o shall_v have_v be_v if_o either_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v have_v any_o forehead_n or_o the_o people_n eye_n i_o mean_v that_o which_o fall_v out_o in_o the_o year_n 854_o after_o the_o death_n of_o leo_n the_o four_o 854._o an._n 854._o which_o yet_o i_o have_v rather_o set_v down_o in_o platina_n his_o word_n 8._o plat._n in_o johan._n 8._o as_o we_o find_v they_o in_o his_o history_n which_o he_o dedicate_v to_o pope_n sixtus_n the_o four_o a_o woman_n or_o rather_o a_o wench_n sit_v in_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n say_v mass_n create_v bishop_n offer_v her_o foot_n to_o be_v kiss_v by_o prince_n and_o people_n as_o if_o god_n purpose_v to_o expose_v to_o the_o view_n of_o the_o world_n in_o this_o live_a picture_n that_o mother_n of_o fornication_n foretell_v in_o the_o apocalyps_n johannes_n anglicus_n therefore_o say_v platina_n bear_v at_o mence_n aspire_v to_o the_o papacy_n as_o it_o be_v say_v by_o evil_a practice_n for_o be_v a_o female_a and_o dissemble_v her_o sex_n she_o go_v with_o her_o paramour_n a_o learned_a man_n to_o athens_n and_o there_o grow_v so_o expert_a in_o the_o liberal_a science_n that_o come_v afterward_o to_o rome_n she_o find_v there_o few_o equal_a none_o superior_a to_o herself_o and_o what_o by_o lecture_v what_o with_o dispute_v both_o witty_o and_o learned_o withal_o grow_v so_o far_o in_o grace_n and_o favour_n with_o all_o man_n that_o upon_o the_o death_n of_o leo_n as_o say_v martinus_n by_o a_o general_a consent_n she_o be_v choose_v pope_n in_o his_o room_n but_o not_o long_o after_o be_v great_a with_o child_n by_o her_o servant_n have_v for_o a_o while_o hide_v her_o great_a belly_n in_o the_o end_n go_v to_o latran_n between_o the_o theatre_n which_o they_o call_v the_o colosse_n of_o nero_n and_o s._n clement_n fall_v into_o her_o throw_n she_o be_v there_o deliver_v and_o die_v in_o the_o place_n have_v sit_v pope_n two_o year_n one_o month_n and_o four_o day_n and_o be_v bury_v without_o honour_n some_o write_v that_o upon_o this_o occasion_n the_o pope_n when_o he_o go_v to_o latran_n shun_v this_o street_n of_o purpose_n and_o that_o to_o prevent_v the_o like_a inconvenience_n in_o time_n to_o come_v when_o the_o pope_n first_o sit_v in_o s._n peter_n chair_n wherein_o be_v a_o hole_n make_v for_o this_o purpose_n the_o puny_a deacon_n be_v to_o handle_v his_o privity_n i_o will_v not_o deny_v the_o first_o to_o be_v true_a for_o the_o second_o i_o suppose_v that_o the_o chair_n be_v so_o pierce_v to_o the_o end_n that_o he_o which_o shall_v be_v set_v in_o so_o high_a a_o place_n may_v know_v that_o he_o be_v a_o man_n and_o no_o god_n and_o subject_a to_o like_a necessity_n of_o nature_n as_o other_o man_n be_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v call_v sedes_fw-la stercoraria_fw-la we_o in_o english_a may_v call_v it_o by_o a_o more_o clean_o name_n a_o close-stool_n but_o platina_n for_o fear_n no_o doubt_n of_o the_o hole_n or_o dungeon_n where_o he_o have_v long_o lyen_fw-we in_o the_o time_n of_o paul_n the_o second_o after_o all_o this_o add_v that_o which_o follow_v that_o say_v he_o which_o i_o have_v say_v be_v a_o common_a bruit_n the_o author_n thereof_o uncertain_a and_o of_o no_o great_a name_n which_o yet_o i_o think_v good_a brief_o and_o naked_o to_o set_v down_o that_o i_o may_v not_o seem_v wilful_o to_o omit_v a_o
we_o have_v already_o say_v quiet_o swallow_v the_o election_n of_o adrian_n make_v without_o call_v his_o lieutenant_n to_o it_o make_v the_o pope_n to_o like_v well_o of_o he_o and_o give_v he_o a_o appetite_n to_o try_v his_o authority_n somewhere_o else_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v about_o this_o time_n that_o lotharius_n king_n of_o lorraine_n die_v and_o charles_n king_n of_o france_n and_o lewis_n of_o germany_n both_o uncle_n to_o the_o decease_a intend_v to_o succeed_v in_o his_o inheritance_n adrian_n set_v up_o lewis_n of_o italy_n emperor_n thunder_v more_o violent_o than_o ever_o have_v do_v his_o predecessor_n write_v to_o all_o king_n baron_n and_o prelate_n of_o france_n namely_o to_o hincmar_n of_o rheims_n that_o none_o shall_v presume_v to_o invade_v or_o take_v unto_o he_o the_o kingdom_n of_o lotharius_n decease_v nor_o yet_o his_o subject_n and_o vassal_n because_o say_v he_o it_o appertain_v to_o the_o emperor_n lewis_n his_o spiritual_a son_n by_o right_a of_o inheritance_n and_o aught_o to_o fall_v unto_o he_o by_o the_o other_o decease_n and_o if_o any_o officer_n shall_v presume_v the_o contrary_a he_o declare_v he_o anathema_n no_o long_o to_o be_v call_v a_o christian_a and_o to_o dwell_v for_o ever_o with_o the_o devil_n if_o he_o be_v a_o bishop_n and_o have_v in_o any_o sort_n consent_v thereunto_o or_o wink_v thereat_o declare_v he_o to_o be_v no_o long_o a_o pastor_n but_o a_o hireling_n and_o as_o one_o that_o have_v no_o care_n of_o his_o sheep_n deprive_v of_o his_o pastoral_a dignity_n and_o honour_n yet_o charles_n hear_v of_o the_o death_n of_o lotharius_n remove_v into_o lorraine_n and_o be_v receive_v by_o the_o baron_n and_o prelate_n there_o as_o their_o lawful_a king_n be_v crown_v at_o metz_n by_o hincmar_n archbishop_n of_o rheims_n so_o that_o adrian_n pursue_v his_o point_n charge_v he_o by_o his_o legate_n under_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n to_o forbear_v and_o hincmar_n to_o pronounce_v the_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n against_o he_o and_o to_o separat_fw-la himself_o from_o he_o and_o not_o to_o say_v so_o much_o as_o good_a morrow_n to_o he_o and_o this_o be_v a_o great_a way_n go_v in_o a_o little_a time_n but_o let_v we_o see_v what_o answer_n our_o french_a make_v hereunto_o opposition_n 10._o hincmar_n epist_n ad_fw-la adria_n extant_a etiam_fw-la apud_fw-la baron_n a_o 861._o art_n 93._o &_o sequent_a to_o 10._o hincmar_n therefore_o archbishop_n of_o rheims_n answer_v he_o that_o as_o touch_v hincmar_n of_o laon_n he_o have_v no_o power_n without_o express_a order_n from_o the_o king_n to_o send_v he_o or_o any_o other_o bishop_n of_o his_o diocese_n to_o rome_n or_o to_o any_o other_o place_n much_o less_o the_o bishop_n of_o other_o province_n and_o that_o himself_o without_o leave_n from_o the_o king_n may_v not_o offer_v to_o set_v foot_n out_o of_o the_o realm_n the_o king_n answer_n though_o it_o be_v long_o as_o take_v up_o after_o his_o own_o account_n four_o leaf_n of_o paper_n and_o therefore_o not_o fit_a to_o be_v insert_v into_o this_o discourse_n yet_o shall_v it_o not_o be_v amiss_o to_o allege_v the_o chief_a point_n and_o principal_a cause_n thereof_o which_o be_v as_o follow_v we_o read_v say_v he_o in_o the_o book_n of_o paralipomenon_n that_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n go_v forth_o to_o battle_n with_o a_o quiet_a mind_n because_o they_o be_v not_o to_o fight_v in_o malice_n or_o envy_n for_o revenge_n but_o with_o a_o desire_n &_o in_o hope_n of_o peace_n and_o we_o let_v you_o to_o know_v you_o which_o by_o letter_n your_o little_o befit_v the_o authority_n of_o a_o king_n much_o less_o the_o humble_a modesty_n of_o a_o bishop_n have_v disgrace_v we_o by_o reproach_n that_o you_o make_v we_o write_v unto_o you_o otherwise_o than_o we_o will_v to_o the_o end_n that_o you_o may_v perceive_v that_o we_o be_v a_o man_n though_o subject_a to_o man_n passion_n yet_o one_o that_o walk_v in_o the_o image_n of_o god_n not_o void_a of_o common_a sense_n raise_v to_o this_o kingly_a throne_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o by_o right_a of_o succession_n to_o our_o father_n and_o grandfather_n and_o which_o be_v more_o than_o this_o a_o christian_a a_o catholic_a a_o observer_n of_o the_o orthodox_n and_o true_a religion_n bring_v up_o from_o our_o cradle_n as_o well_o in_o knowledge_n of_o the_o scripture_n as_o in_o the_o understanding_n of_o good_a and_o wholesome_a law_n both_o ecclesiastical_a and_o civil_a not_o accuse_v either_o legal_o or_o canonical_o in_o any_o episcopal_a audience_n much_o less_o convict_v of_o any_o public_a and_o notorious_a crime_n who_o yet_o have_v not_o be_v able_a to_o prevail_v so_o far_o by_o our_o honourable_a letter_n as_o to_o receive_v any_o reasonable_a answer_n from_o you_o nor_o yet_o to_o have_v that_o respect_n and_o due_a regard_n as_o be_v wont_a to_o pass_v between_o your_o predecessor_n and_o we_o etc._n etc._n in_o the_o entrance_n of_o your_o letter_n you_o commend_v indeed_o our_o wisdom_n but_o present_o you_o charge_v we_o in_o show_v more_o fair_o in_o effect_n more_o grievous_o with_o murmur_v repine_a &_o grutch_v against_o your_o fatherhood_n with_o sundry_a other_o reproach_n and_o imputation_n in_o your_o former_a letter_n you_o call_v we_o tyrant_n perjure_a and_o spoiler_n of_o church_n good_n whereas_o we_o have_v neither_o confess_v any_o such_o thing_n against_o ourself_o neither_o by_o any_o course_n of_o law_n have_v any_o such_o crime_n be_v prove_v against_o we_o and_o in_o this_o other_o which_o you_o have_v send_v by_o actard_a one_o of_o our_o bishop_n you_o accuse_v we_o of_o murmur_v and_o mutiny_n for_o our_o own_o part_n we_o will_v not_o believe_v that_o those_o letter_n come_v from_o you_o because_o the_o holy_a see_v have_v ever_o be_v wont_v to_o correct_v every_o man_n according_a to_o his_o quality_n and_o rank_n with_o good_a sobriety_n and_o discretion_n now_o if_o we_o have_v speak_v evil_a bear_v witness_n of_o the_o evil_a but_o if_o well_o why_o grow_v you_o into_o such_o choler_n against_o we_o abraham_n can_v say_v unto_o god_n and_o god_n take_v it_o not_o in_o ill_a part_n will_v thou_o destroy_v the_o just_a with_o the_o wicked_a and_o yet_o you_o grow_v much_o offend_v when_o we_o tell_v you_o that_o you_o ought_v not_o to_o pronounce_v any_o man_n guilty_a of_o a_o crime_n without_o either_o confession_n of_o the_o party_n or_o conviction_n by_o course_n of_o law_n much_o less_o use_v a_o king_n as_o a_o private_a person_n and_o condemn_v he_o as_o convict_v you_o be_v not_o ignorant_a how_o great_a a_o sin_n it_o be_v to_o say_v unto_o his_o brother_n racha_n how_o much_o great_a to_o say_v so_o to_o a_o king_n both_o by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o by_o the_o practice_n of_o david_n in_o the_o person_n of_o saul_n though_o a_o reprobat_fw-la from_o god_n and_o yet_o in_o your_o letter_n you_o advise_v we_o to_o receive_v joyful_o and_o with_o a_o humble_a heart_n all_o that_o come_v from_o the_o apostolic_a see_v of_o rome_n be_v it_o your_o meaning_n then_o that_o we_o shall_v so_o well_o relish_v these_o term_n of_o tyrant_n perjure_a and_o perfidious_a person_n or_o must_v we_o needs_o say_v of_o you_o with_o the_o poet_n quicquid_fw-la calcaveris_fw-la rosa_fw-la fiat_fw-la wherever_o you_o tread_v red_a rose_n grow_v or_o may_v we_o not_o rather_o say_v with_o the_o prophet_n woe_n be_v to_o they_o which_o call_v that_o sweet_a which_o be_v bitter_a etc._n etc._n or_o if_o we_o shall_v hold_v our_o peace_n and_o wink_v at_o this_o shall_v we_o not_o confess_v our_o self_n fall_v from_o this_o royal_a dignity_n and_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n etc._n etc._n write_v you_o unto_o we_o thing_n befit_v our_o call_n and_o you_o and_o then_o will_v we_o as_o you_o do_v receive_v they_o with_o a_o willing_a and_o a_o thankful_a mind_n as_o for_o your_o letter_n at_o least_o those_o which_o come_v unto_o we_o in_o your_o name_n they_o ever_o charge_v we_o with_o some_o fault_n without_o either_o proof_n or_o inquest_v yet_o the_o apostle_n give_v you_o a_o rule_n in_o these_o case_n argue_v obsecra_fw-la increpa_fw-la argue_v beseech_v reprove_v in_o all_o patience_n and_o doctrine_n and_o saint_n augustine_n say_v that_o the_o apostle_n will_v not_o that_o one_o man_n shall_v condemn_v another_o upon_o suspicion_n neither_o yet_o shall_v run_v to_o extraordinary_a proof_n but_o rather_o after_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o order_n of_o the_o church_n either_o confess_v of_o himself_o or_o convict_v by_o his_o accuser_n and_o afterward_o come_v to_o the_o matter_n concern_v hincmar_n of_o laon_n you_o write_v say_v he_o unto_o we_o in_o you_o letter_n in_o this_o manner_n we_o will_v and_o command_v by_o apostolic_a authority_n
with_o we_o that_o we_o will_v very_o sufficient_o prove_v that_o he_o be_v lawful_o and_o orderly_o accuse_v and_o convict_v to_o conclude_v because_o you_o have_v overshoot_v yourself_o in_o what_o be_v already_o past_a we_o now_o entreat_v you_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o in_o reverence_n to_o the_o holy_a apostle_n that_o from_o hence_o forward_o you_o send_v no_o such_o mandate_n either_o to_o we_o or_o to_o our_o prelate_n or_o to_o the_o great_a man_n of_o our_o kingdom_n lest_o we_o be_v enforce_v to_o dishonour_v they_o and_o those_o which_o bring_v they_o which_o we_o tell_v you_o of_o beforehand_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o your_o privilege_n because_o we_o desire_v to_o be_v obedient_a unto_o you_o in_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v fit_v as_o unto_o the_o vicar_n of_o saint_n peter_n but_o you_o must_v also_o take_v heed_n that_o you_o drive_v we_o not_o to_o take_v that_o course_n which_o be_v both_o approve_a and_o commend_v in_o the_o five_o general_a council_n concern_v the_o apostolic_a authority_n and_o in_o the_o synodall_n epistle_n of_o saint_n gregory_n to_o the_o four_o patriarch_n and_o the_o four_o precedent_a epistle_n all_o which_o treat_v of_o the_o order_n and_o limit_v of_o ecclesiastical_a power_n and_o jurisdiction_n which_o we_o will_v not_o insert_v into_o these_o our_o letter_n till_o we_o may_v see_v whether_o we_o may_v bend_v you_o to_o mitigat_n the_o rigour_n of_o your_o command_n for_o look_v what_o be_v send_v unto_o we_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a according_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o the_o preach_n of_o our_o ancestor_n and_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o orthodox_n father_n we_o know_v we_o ought_v to_o follow_v but_o what_o ever_o come_v beside_o come_v it_o from_o who_o it_o will_v we_o know_v how_o to_o reject_v and_o to_o control_v it_o last_o of_o all_o if_o in_o this_o answer_n there_o be_v any_o thing_n misbeseem_v i_o or_o you_o you_o have_v force_v i_o thereunto_o such_o be_v the_o letter_n which_o pass_v between_o king_n charles_n the_o bald_a and_o adrian_n the_o second_o though_o he_o have_v give_v he_o not_o long_o before_o some_o hope_n to_o make_v he_o emperor_n though_o any_o other_o will_v give_v he_o bushel_n of_o gold_n 79._o baron_fw-fr vol._n 10._o a_o 871._o art_n 79._o offer_v he_o indeed_o a_o empire_n but_o as_o he_o do_v in_o the_o desert_n upon_o condition_n that_o he_o will_v fall_v down_o and_o worship_v he_o and_o this_o charles_n be_v he_o which_o a_o few_o year_n before_o 853._o an._n 853._o first_o make_v a_o breach_n upon_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o french_a synod_n when_o about_o the_o year_n 853_o have_v hold_v a_o synod_n at_o soissons_fw-fr two_o or_o three_o year_n after_o he_o send_v the_o act_n thereof_o to_o benedict_n the_o three_o think_v only_o to_o gratify_v he_o and_o never_o consider_v unto_o what_o consequence_n his_o successor_n may_v draw_v the_o same_o our_o french_a bishop_n write_v much_o after_o the_o same_o manner_n &_o upon_o the_o same_o argument_n unto_o adrian_n be_v assemble_v in_o synod_n at_o dousy_n wherein_o they_o call_v he_o primae_fw-la sedis_fw-la papam_fw-la complain_v that_o they_o be_v utter_o mistake_v and_o cast_v the_o fault_n upon_o his_o multitude_n of_o other_o business_n that_o he_o have_v not_o more_o mature_o consider_v of_o their_o act_n which_o be_v in_o all_o point_n agree_v with_o the_o holy_a canon_n as_o for_o the_o excommunication_n which_o adrian_n thunder_v out_o against_o this_o charles_n we_o can_v wish_v we_o have_v his_o own_o epistle_n in_o answer_n to_o it_o but_o hincmars_n the_o archbishop_n of_o rheims_n we_o have_v who_o receive_v command_v from_o the_o pope_n to_o pronounce_v it_o and_o we_o will_v here_o produce_v the_o principal_a clause_n thereof_o and_o first_o of_o all_o have_v complain_v of_o many_o grievous_a reproof_n and_o menace_n receive_v he_o declare_v unto_o he_o that_o he_o have_v impart_v the_o tenor_n of_o his_o letter_n to_o the_o great_a one_o and_o prelate_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o which_o be_v more_o have_v cause_v they_o to_o be_v open_o read_v in_o a_o assembly_n of_o bishop_n of_o france_n and_o lorraine_n and_o have_v show_v lewis_n king_n of_o germany_n the_o above_o mention_v letter_n wherein_o he_o be_v command_v by_o adrian_n to_o excommunicate_a by_o his_o authority_n all_o those_o who_o attempt_v any_o thing_n upon_o the_o kingdom_n of_o lotharius_n decease_v i_o understand_v say_v he_o estis_fw-la qui_fw-fr de_fw-fr regno_fw-la eius_fw-la estis_fw-la that_o like_a letter_n have_v be_v send_v to_o the_o glorious_a king_n lewis_n and_o to_o the_o great_a one_o and_o bishop_n of_o his_o kingdom_n which_o you_o who_o be_v his_o natural_a bear_a subject_n shall_v best_o know_v but_o come_v afterward_o to_o the_o matter_n he_o let_v he_o to_o understand_v that_o he_o be_v inform_v by_o diverse_a that_o the_o two_o king_n have_v agree_v to_o divide_v this_o kingdom_n equal_o between_o they_o without_o which_o the_o people_n have_v long_o ere_o this_o be_v up_o in_o arm_n that_o therefore_o he_o know_v not_o what_o to_o do_v see_v he_o must_v either_o disobey_v his_o command_n or_o disallow_v of_o the_o treaty_n and_o accord_n make_v between_o the_o two_o king_n that_o whereas_o he_o say_v that_o no_o man_n better_o than_o himself_o know_v the_o great_a wrong_n which_o charles_n do_v herein_o he_o plain_o tell_v he_o that_o in_o case_n he_o do_v know_v yet_o will_v he_o not_o thereupon_o do_v any_o thing_n see_v that_o charles_n confess_v no_o such_o matter_n of_o himself_o neither_o stand_v he_o legal_o or_o canonical_o convict_v thereof_o but_o rather_o protest_v and_o many_o there_o be_v which_o bear_v he_o witness_v that_o this_o part_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o lorraine_n be_v by_o the_o consent_n and_o assent_v as_o well_o of_o the_o bishop_n as_o of_o the_o great_a one_o of_o the_o empire_n give_v he_o by_o his_o father_n lewis_n and_o confirm_v to_o he_o by_o oath_n by_o his_o brother_n lotharius_n that_o therefore_o he_o take_v that_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o africa_n to_o be_v speak_v to_o he_o as_o well_o as_o to_o all_o other_o bishop_n whereby_o man_n be_v forbid_v to_o lay_v a_o crime_n to_o a_o man_n charge_n which_o he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o evict_v by_o proof_n because_o as_o s._n augustine_n who_o be_v there_o present_a say_v many_o thing_n be_v true_a which_o yet_o a_o judge_n may_v not_o believe_v without_o sufficient_a proof_n that_o he_o have_v no_o power_n to_o put_v any_o man_n from_o the_o communion_n for_o a_o crime_n neither_o confess_v by_o the_o defendant_n nor_o prove_v by_o the_o informer_n that_o otherwise_o they_o shall_v make_v themselves_o both_o judge_n and_o accuser_n which_o be_v not_o lawful_a allege_v for_o his_o authority_n the_o rule_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n with_o sundry_a place_n out_o of_o augustin_n gelasius_n boniface_n and_o other_o and_o whereas_o he_o be_v charge_v by_o he_o as_o a_o partaker_n or_o rather_o author_n of_o this_o unjust_a invasion_n because_o he_o hold_v his_o peace_n and_o stir_v not_o as_o he_o be_v command_v his_o answer_n be_v that_o adrian_n shall_v remember_v that_o it_o be_v write_v the_o cause_n which_o i_o understand_v not_o i_o search_v out_o with_o diligence_n and_o that_o gregory_n say_v that_o god_n to_o who_o eye_n all_o thing_n be_v open_a yet_o in_o the_o very_a case_n of_o sodom_n say_v videbo_fw-la descendum_fw-la &_o videbo_fw-la i_o will_v go_v down_o and_o see_v to_o teach_v we_o to_o be_v well_o inform_v before_o we_o believe_v a_o fault_n and_o whereas_o he_o command_v he_o to_o separate_v himself_o from_o charles_n and_o not_o to_o bid_v he_o so_o much_o as_o good_a morrow_n whereas_o yet_o he_o desire_v to_o be_v receive_v to_o the_o communion_n of_o adrian_n that_o this_o touch_v he_o to_o the_o heart_n and_o that_o many_o man_n of_o great_a sort_n both_o secular_a and_o clergy_n now_o meet_v at_o rheimes_n have_v hear_v this_o command_n say_v that_o the_o like_a be_v never_o hear_v of_o to_o be_v send_v from_o rome_n though_o in_o their_o day_n there_o have_v be_v war_n before_o this_o time_n not_o only_o between_o confederate_a king_n but_o also_o between_o the_o brother_n and_o between_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n that_o for_o his_o own_o part_n he_o must_v needs_o think_v that_o this_o displeasure_n be_v befall_v he_o for_o his_o other_o sin_n see_v it_o fare_v better_a with_o some_o other_o who_o have_v not_o doubt_v to_o call_v charles_n into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o lorraine_n that_o for_o the_o rest_n the_o parliament_n of_o that_o kingdom_n say_v that_o pope_n and_o bishop_n excommunication_n be_v no_o title_n to_o claim_v kingdom_n by_o that_o the_o scripture_n teach_v that_o
this_o right_n belong_v unto_o god_n by_o who_o king_n reign_n and_o who_o give_v they_o to_o who_o it_o please_v he_o that_o the_o pope_n can_v be_v king_n and_o bishop_n all_o at_o once_o that_o therefore_o he_o shall_v do_v well_o to_o leave_v the_o dispose_n of_o state_n matter_n unto_o they_o and_o not_o command_v they_o to_o take_v a_o king_n from_o a_o far_o off_o who_o can_v be_v at_o hand_n to_o help_v upon_o all_o occasion_n against_o the_o painim_n this_o be_v a_o yoke_n which_o the_o pope_n never_o before_o lay_v upon_o the_o neck_n of_o their_o ancestor_n and_o such_o as_o themselves_o can_v not_o bear_v see_v they_o be_v command_v in_o holy_a scripture_n for_o their_o heritage_n and_o liberty_n to_o fight_v while_o the_o breath_n be_v in_o their_o body_n that_o one_o need_v not_o to_o tell_v they_o that_o a_o bishop_n who_o excommunicate_v a_o man_n contrary_a to_o law_n lose_v the_o power_n which_o he_o have_v of_o bind_v that_o none_o can_v take_v heaven_n from_o any_o man_n save_v only_o from_o he_o which_o lose_v it_o by_o his_o sin_n that_o for_o earthly_a respect_v none_o can_v take_v away_o the_o title_n of_o a_o christian_a or_o lodge_v with_o the_o devil_n he_o for_o who_o christ_n die_v to_o free_v he_o from_o the_o bondage_n of_o the_o devil_n that_o therefore_o if_o the_o pope_n desire_v peace_n he_o shall_v do_v well_o to_o seek_v it_o by_o quiet_a mean_n because_o they_o never_o mean_v to_o make_v it_o a_o article_n of_o their_o creed_n that_o they_o can_v come_v to_o heaven_n unless_o they_o will_v receive_v for_o their_o king_n he_o who_o he_o shall_v appoint_v they_o here_o in_o earth_n and_o say_v he_o many_o such_o like_a inconvenience_n they_o show_v unto_o we_o as_o murder_n sedition_n war_n all_o which_o will_v ensue_v if_o we_o go_v to_o infringe_v the_o accord_n already_o make_v between_o the_o king_n not_o spare_v to_o utter_v threat_n against_o yourself_o which_o i_o will_v not_o rehearse_v and_o such_o as_o if_o god_n give_v they_o leave_v they_o purpose_v to_o put_v in_o execution_n neither_o can_v my_o excommunication_n nor_o the_o sword_n of_o any_o humane_a tongue_n stay_v the_o king_n and_o his_o baron_n from_o the_o course_n they_o have_v set_v to_o run_v thus_o it_o please_v this_o great_a prelate_n to_o let_v the_o pope_n understand_v his_o mind_n as_o in_o the_o word_n and_o under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o great_a one_o which_o he_o can_v not_o handsome_o do_v in_o his_o own_o last_o of_o all_o concern_v himself_o that_o be_v in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o charles_n and_o in_o the_o chief_a city_n of_o his_o diocese_n whether_o the_o king_n and_o all_o the_o prince_n of_o either_o kingdom_n use_v to_o resort_v he_o may_v not_o offer_v like_o a_o hireling_n to_o leave_v his_o flock_n and_o to_o go_v he_o know_v not_o whither_o and_o that_o therefore_o he_o will_v attend_v upon_o the_o king_n and_o such_o as_o be_v about_o he_o to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v pass_v his_o time_n in_o quietness_n with_o his_o flock_n and_o that_o the_o king_n say_v his_o predecessor_n have_v have_v this_o power_n which_o he_o will_v not_o forgo_v for_o any_o excommunication_n whatsoever_o and_o that_o therefore_o it_o behove_v the_o bishop_n himself_o especial_o to_o consider_v how_o they_o carry_v themselves_o towards_o the_o king_n see_v that_o augustine_n expound_v that_o place_n of_o the_o apostle_n say_v that_o the_o apostle_n teach_v that_o every_o soul_n must_v be_v subject_a to_o the_o high_a power_n and_o that_o we_o must_v give_v to_o every_o one_o that_o which_o belong_v to_o he_o tribute_n to_o who_o tribute_n custom_n to_o who_o custom_n appertain_v etc._n etc._n this_o letter_n thus_o write_v with_o the_o advice_n and_o counsel_n of_o all_o the_o bishop_n assemble_v at_o rheims_n be_v send_v to_o adrian_n who_o die_v the_o year_n follow_v 872_o and_o so_o the_o quarrel_n end_v 34._o progression_n how_o the_o pope_n confer_v the_o empire_n upon_o charles_n the_o bald_a and_o of_o the_o donation_n of_o constantine_n after_o adrian_n the_o second_o according_a to_o platina_n his_o account_n succeed_v john_n the_o nine_o according_a to_o those_o who_o reject_v the_o shee-pope_n john_n the_o eight_o in_o the_o year_n 873_o and_o in_o the_o year_n 875_o die_v the_o emperor_n lewis_n without_o issue_n 873._o an._n 873._o wherefore_o charles_n of_o france_n and_o lewis_n of_o germany_n begin_v to_o stir_v and_o italy_n herself_o be_v not_o quiet_a one_o call_v charles_n the_o bald_a of_o france_n and_o other_o charles_n the_o gross_a son_n to_o king_n lewis_n 5._o sigon_n de_fw-fr reg._n jtal._n lib._n 5._o and_o some_o there_o be_v who_o fain_o will_v have_v establish_v the_o empire_n in_o italy_n and_o these_o be_v the_o earl_n of_o tusculana_n who_o at_o that_o time_n strike_v a_o great_a stroke_n in_o rome_n he_o of_o france_n be_v first_o in_o a_o readiness_n 33._o aimoni._n li._n 5._o c._n 32._o &_o 33._o who_o ever_o since_o the_o day_n of_o nicholas_n the_o first_o have_v entertain_v secret_a intelligence_n in_o italy_n he_o therefore_o send_v embassador_n to_o john_n with_o great_a present_n and_o great_a promise_n assure_v he_o that_o upon_o condition_n he_o will_v set_v the_o crown_n of_o the_o empire_n upon_o his_o head_n he_o will_v protect_v the_o church_n from_o all_o wrong_n and_o leave_v the_o seignory_n of_o rome_n whole_o in_o his_o hand_n john_n who_o can_v better_o brook_v a_o foreiner_n than_o a_o neighbour_n and_o a_o strange_a than_o a_o domestic_a emperor_n who_o peradventure_o will_v have_v dim_v his_o light_n by_o a_o great_a lustre_n bid_v he_o come_v and_o welcome_o and_o at_o his_o come_n to_o rome_n receive_v and_o crown_v he_o emperor_n from_o that_o day_n forward_o say_v sigonius_n the_o title_n of_o the_o empire_n begin_v to_o be_v a_o mere_a feoffment_n of_o the_o pope_n beneficium_fw-la sincerum_fw-la pontificis_fw-la beneficium_fw-la and_o the_o year_n of_o the_o empire_n to_o be_v reckon_v from_o the_o day_n wherein_o they_o receive_v their_o consecration_n from_o the_o pope_n but_o a_o certain_a author_n of_o that_o time_n add_v far_a that_o charles_n of_o france_n come_v to_o rome_n renew_v his_o covenant_n with_o the_o roman_n continuator_fw-la eutropij_fw-la continuator_fw-la give_v up_o into_o their_o hand_n the_o right_n and_o custom_n of_o the_o kingdom_n with_o the_o revenue_n of_o many_o monastery_n give_v they_o moreover_o the_o country_n of_o samnium_n and_o calabria_n with_o all_o the_o town_n belong_v to_o benevent_v with_o the_o duchy_n of_o spoleto_n and_o the_o two_o city_n of_o tuscanie_n which_o the_o duke_n be_v wont_a to_o hold_v arrezzo_n and_o chiusi_n so_o that_o he_o who_o before_o that_o time_n command_v in_o rome_n for_o the_o emperor_n be_v now_o become_v as_o subject_v unto_o they_o quit_v they_o from_o expect_v the_o presence_n of_o his_o embassador_n at_o the_o election_n of_o their_o pope_n to_o be_v short_a say_v he_o he_o accord_v what_o ever_o they_o demand_v as_o common_o man_n use_v to_o be_v liberal_a of_o what_o they_o have_v ill_o get_v or_o fear_v they_o shall_v not_o long_o keep_v that_o which_o make_v charles_n the_o more_o pliant_a to_o the_o pope_n be_v that_o lewis_n of_o germany_n invade_v he_o in_o his_o own_o person_n in_o france_n and_o send_v his_o son_n charles_n the_o gross_a to_o cross_v his_o design_n in_o italy_n but_o say_v that_o author_n this_o be_v certain_a that_o from_o that_o day_n no_o king_n or_o emperor_n ever_o recover_v the_o state_n and_o port_n of_o a_o king_n in_o italy_n for_o want_v still_o either_o of_o skill_n or_o of_o courage_n and_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o great_a contention_n and_o daily_a jealousy_n among_o they_o here_o the_o historian_n and_o sigonius_n himself_o observe_v that_o whatsoever_o the_o emperor_n predecessor_n of_o charles_n give_v unto_o the_o pope_n yet_o they_o ever_o reserve_v to_o themselves_o the_o propriety_n sovereignty_n and_o lordship_n even_o over_o the_o exarchat_n and_o duchy_n of_o rome_n itself_o which_o rule_n begin_v now_o to_o fail_v in_o charles_n though_o his_o successor_n sometime_o redemanded_a their_o ancient_a prerogative_n and_o right_n also_o that_o until_o this_o time_n the_o empire_n ever_o pass_v as_o hereditary_a from_o the_o father_n to_o the_o son_n and_o the_o suruivor_fw-la ever_o seize_v of_o the_o empire_n by_o the_o death_n of_o the_o decease_a so_o charlemaigne_n succeed_v pepin_n so_o after_o charlemaigne_n succeed_v lewis_n after_o lewis_n lotharius_n and_o after_o he_o lewis_n the_o second_o so_o also_o unto_o this_o time_n their_o crown_n and_o sacring_a by_o the_o archbishop_n of_o milan_n for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o lombardy_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o the_o empire_n serve_v only_o for_o pomp_n and_o solemnity_n but_o this_o pope_n john_n take_v
of_o naruie_n and_o john_n a_o cardinal_n testify_v they_o see_v he_o give_v order_n to_o a_o deacon_n in_o a_o stable_n among_o horse_n benedict_n with_o other_o deacon_n and_o priest_n say_v they_o know_v that_o he_o make_v bishop_n for_o money_n and_o that_o he_o have_v create_v one_o of_o the_o age_n of_o ten_o year_n a_o bishop_n in_o the_o city_n of_o tudertina_n and_o for_o sacrilege_n we_o need_v not_o search_v far_o because_o we_o may_v know_v more_o by_o the_o eye_n than_o by_o the_o ear_n for_o adultery_n they_o say_v they_o be_v not_o eye_n witness_n yet_o they_o certain_o know_v the_o widow_n of_o ranierus_n and_o stephana_n his_o father_n concubine_n and_o anna_n a_o widow_n with_o his_o niece_n to_o be_v defile_v by_o he_o and_o that_o he_o make_v the_o holy_a palace_n a_o stew_n and_o common_a brothel_n house_n moreover_o he_o put_v out_o the_o eye_n of_o benedict_n his_o spiritual_a father_n who_o soon_o after_o die_v slay_v cardinal_n john_n a_o subdeacon_n after_o he_o have_v cut_v off_o his_o genitor_n he_o exercise_v burn_n and_o violent_a outrage_n be_v arm_v and_o a_o sword_n by_o his_o side_n that_o he_o use_v to_o carouse_v in_o wine_n a_o health_n to_o the_o devil_n which_o all_o as_o well_o the_o clergy_n as_o the_o laity_n with_o one_o voice_n do_v confess_v that_o play_v at_o dice_n they_o say_v he_o use_v to_o call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o jupiter_n and_o venus_n and_o all_o the_o devil_n to_o help_v he_o that_o he_o celebrate_v matin_n in_o no_o fit_a hour_n and_o never_o make_v any_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n but_o for_o as_o much_o as_o worthy_a man_n be_v often_o invey_v against_o and_o through_o envy_n and_o malicious_a detractation_n false_o accuse_v the_o emperor_n again_o conjure_v they_o that_o they_o propound_v nothing_o against_o he_o that_o be_v not_o plain_o to_o be_v prove_v to_o this_o the_o whole_a synod_n cry_v out_o quasi_fw-la unus_fw-la vir_fw-la as_o if_o but_o the_o voice_n of_o one_o man_n if_o this_o unworthy_a pope_n john_n have_v not_o commit_v more_o shameless_a and_o more_o abominable_a act_n than_o these_o that_o be_v here_o express_v by_o benedict_n the_o deacon_n we_o desire_v holy_a saint_n peter_n the_o prince_n of_o apostle_n never_o to_o absolve_v we_o from_o the_o snare_n of_o our_o sin_n who_o by_o his_o word_n shut_v the_o gate_n of_o heaven_n against_o the_o unworthy_a and_o open_v they_o to_o the_o just_a and_o righteous_a but_o that_o we_o may_v be_v accurse_v and_o set_v upon_o the_o left_a hand_n at_o the_o last_o day_n nevertheless_o the_o synod_n request_v the_o emperor_n that_o letter_n may_v be_v send_v unto_o he_o to_o come_v to_o purge_v himself_o which_o be_v present_o dispatch_v both_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o archbishop_n wherein_o brief_o be_v express_v the_o crime_n whereof_o he_o be_v accuse_v whereto_o he_o answer_v direct_v his_o letter_n omnibus_fw-la episcopis_fw-la to_o all_o the_o bishop_n we_o hear_v say_v that_o you_o mean_v to_o create_v another_o pope_n which_o if_o you_o do_v i_o excommunicate_a you_o by_o the_o omnipotent_a god_n that_o you_o have_v no_o power_n to_o ordain_v any_o nor_o to_o celebrat_v the_o mass_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n that_o this_o letter_n be_v in_o read_v there_o arrive_v the_o archbishop_n of_o trever_n and_o other_o bishop_n of_o lorraine_n liguria_n and_o aemilia_n with_o who_o advice_n and_o counsel_n both_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o synod_n return_v he_o this_o answer_n if_o he_o come_v not_o nor_o have_v any_o other_o lawful_a cause_n to_o allege_v be_v he_o be_v neither_o to_o pass_v the_o sea_n nor_o have_v any_o bodily_a infirmity_n nor_o yet_o a_o very_a long_a journey_n they_o make_v light_a account_n of_o his_o excommunication_n and_o that_o they_o will_v return_v it_o upon_o himself_o because_o they_o may_v just_o do_v it_o judas_n say_v they_o who_o betray_v &_o sell_v our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n receive_v of_o he_o with_o other_o the_o power_n to_o bind_v and_o unloosse_v etc._n etc._n and_o so_o long_o as_o he_o continue_v honest_a among_o the_o disciple_n he_o be_v able_a to_o bind_v and_o unloosse_v but_o afterward_o when_o through_o the_o venom_n and_o corruption_n of_o covetousness_n he_o become_v a_o homicide_n to_o destroy_v life_n who_o can_v he_o more_o tie_n or_o untie_v but_o himself_o who_o most_o wicked_o he_o strangle_v with_o a_o halter_n sure_o by_o this_o it_o plain_o appear_v that_o the_o pretend_a seat_n of_o saint_n peter_n be_v no_o impediment_n to_o be_v a_o judas_n the_o emperor_n who_o all_o this_o while_n complain_v not_o of_o any_o injury_n offer_v by_o he_o particular_o unto_o himself_o see_v he_o sufficient_o charge_v by_o other_o declare_v now_o unto_o they_o with_o great_a moderation_n how_o that_o he_o have_v take_v a_o oath_n upon_o the_o corpse_n of_o saint_n peter_n do_v nevertheless_o combine_v and_o arm_v himself_o with_o adelbert_n against_o he_o entreat_v the_o synod_n to_o consider_v thereof_o who_o sentence_n be_v that_o a_o strange_a ulcer_n ought_v to_o be_v burn_v with_o a_o strange_a sear_a iron_n and_o it_o be_v fit_a to_o drive_v away_o this_o monster_n of_o the_o church_n a_o scandal_n to_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o some_o good_a and_o virtuous_a man_n to_o be_v put_v in_o his_o place_n this_o sentence_n be_v approve_v by_o the_o emperor_n and_o all_o with_o one_o voice_n choose_v leo_n the_o eight_o in_o place_n 963._o an._n 963._o as_o they_o say_v of_o this_o apostate_n john_n the_o emperor_n allow_v the_o same_o these_o thing_n fall_v out_o in_o the_o year_n 963_o but_o not_o long_o after_o such_o thing_n be_v set_v in_o order_n as_o do_v most_o concern_v they_o the_o emperor_n with_o leo_n call_v another_o synod_n at_o rome_n in_o which_o it_o manifest_o appear_v to_o all_o that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o cause_n of_o these_o tumult_n than_o the_o neglect_n of_o the_o law_n and_o institution_n ordain_v by_o charles_n the_o great_a and_o quite_o abrogate_a by_o adrian_n the_o three_o labour_v more_o ital._n sigon_n l._n 7._o de_fw-la reg_fw-la ital._n say_v sigonius_n for_o the_o dignity_n than_o the_o tranquillity_n of_o the_o church_n whereby_o the_o pope_n be_v choose_v by_o unlawful_a suit_n and_o bribery_n a_o law_n be_v make_v for_o the_o restitution_n thereof_o and_o that_o bridle_n which_o the_o pope_n and_o clergy_n of_o rome_n have_v studious_o shake_v of_o 23._o d._n 69._o c._n in_o synod_n 23._o they_o be_v enforce_v again_o to_o admit_v we_o read_v in_o the_o decree_n of_o gratian_n this_o canon_n d._n 63._o repeat_v also_o by_o sigonius_n in_o his_o history_n according_a to_o the_o example_n of_o holy_a adrian_n bishop_n of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n tempo_fw-la sigon_n l._n 7._o de_fw-la regno_fw-la ital._n fasciculus_fw-la tempo_fw-la who_o grant_v to_o charles_n the_o most_o victorious_a king_n of_o the_o french_a and_o lombard_n the_o dignity_n of_o the_o patritij_fw-la and_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o apostolic_a see_v and_o the_o invest_n of_o bishop_n i_o likewise_o leo_n bishop_n and_o servant_n of_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n with_o all_o the_o clergy_n and_o people_n of_o rome_n 964._o an._n 964._o constitute_v and_o confirm_v and_o by_o our_o apostolical_a authority_n grant_v and_o give_v unto_o the_o lord_n otho_n the_o first_o king_n of_o the_o german_n and_o to_o his_o successor_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o italy_n for_o ever_o the_o authority_n and_o power_n to_o elect_v and_o choose_v a_o successor_n and_o to_o ordain_v and_o appoint_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o sovereign_a apostolic_a see_n and_o furthermore_o that_o the_o archbishop_n and_o bishop_n shall_v take_v their_o investiture_n of_o he_o but_o their_o consecration_n where_o they_o ought_v except_o those_o who_o the_o emperor_n have_v give_v or_o grant_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o archbishop_n and_o that_o no_o man_n hereafter_o of_o what_o degree_n or_o religion_n soever_o shall_v have_v any_o power_n in_o choose_v or_o ordain_v either_o patricius_n or_o bishop_n of_o the_o sovereign_a apostolic_a see_v or_o any_o bishop_n without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o that_o without_o any_o corruption_n or_o money_n and_o that_o he_o be_v patricius_n and_o king_n if_o any_o therefore_o whosoever_o enterprise_n or_o attempt_v any_o thing_n against_o this_o rule_n and_o apostolical_a authority_n we_o judge_v he_o excommunicate_a and_o if_o he_o be_v not_o penitent_a therefore_o perpetual_a exile_n and_o everlasting_a torment_n the_o sum_n of_o this_o canon_n with_o gratian_n be_v thus_o the_o election_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n by_o right_n belong_v to_o the_o emperor_n and_o theodore_n of_o nyem_n who_o live_v under_o john_n the_o 23_o affirm_v that_o he_o have_v see_v the_o letter_n patent_n at_o florence_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v take_v reserve_v for_o the_o
especial_o leo_n the_o eight_o neither_o do_v we_o great_o labour_v therein_o for_o whether_o of_o they_o be_v to_o be_v prefer_v it_o matter_n not_o great_o john_n who_o he_o term_v a_o monster_n be_v the_o only_a lawful_a pope_n but_o he_o can_v in_o no_o wise_n dissemble_v the_o cause_n for_o that_o constitution_n of_o leo_n in_o favour_n of_o otho_n and_o his_o successor_n 63._o dist_n 63._o which_o we_o have_v former_o allege_v d._n 63_o vex_v he_o even_o at_o the_o heart_n whereof_o he_o fret_v and_o fume_v against_o gratian_n these_o thing_n say_v he_o he_o handle_v too_o unaduised_o this_o synod_n be_v a_o counterfeit_a synod_n and_o this_o leo_n the_o eight_o a_o false_a adulterous_a pope_n and_o to_o speak_v a_o truth_n where_o shall_v we_o find_v a_o true_a and_o a_o lawful_a one_o beside_o what_o necessity_n be_v it_o in_o he_o say_v he_o to_o pronounce_v he_o king_n and_o patricius_n when_o john_n the_o twelve_o have_v consecrate_v he_o emperor_n very_o because_o he_o do_v not_o think_v he_o can_v be_v well_o consecrate_v by_o such_o a_o monster_n and_o who_o do_v ever_o see_v say_v he_o that_o the_o constitution_n of_o pope_n have_v commination_n of_o punishment_n and_o yet_o what_o more_o frequent_a 23._o baron_fw-fr a_o 964._o art_n 23._o be_v it_o not_o decree_v in_o that_o worthy_a council_n of_o constance_n that_o the_o execution_n shall_v be_v leave_v to_o the_o politic_a magistrate_n but_o he_o shall_v have_v rest_v himself_o upon_o gregory_n the_o thirteen_o who_o approve_v this_o constitution_n in_o a_o reform_a decree_n by_o his_o silence_n with_o note_n add_v thereunto_o but_o see_v what_o he_o elsewhere_o say_v as_o a_o thing_n very_o authentic_a to_o prove_v the_o right_n that_o the_o emperor_n have_v by_o the_o pope_n permission_n to_o choose_v a_o successor_n 41._o baron_fw-fr a_o 996._o art_n 41._o to_o great_a otho_n say_v he_o this_o right_n be_v first_o grant_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n these_o be_v his_o own_o word_n how_o then_o without_o shame_n dare_v he_o call_v it_o into_o doubt_n 38._o progression_n of_o the_o trouble_n that_o arise_v in_o france_n through_o the_o faction_n of_o hugh_n surname_v capet_n and_o charles_n duke_n of_o lorraine_n with_o the_o treason_n and_o treachery_n of_o arnulphus_n canon_n of_o laon._n here_o let_v we_o now_o recite_v what_o past_a in_o these_o time_n in_o our_o france_n which_o upon_o the_o declination_n of_o the_o race_n of_o charles_n the_o great_a be_v diverse_o vex_v until_o the_o progeny_n of_o capet_n either_o through_o other_o negligence_n or_o their_o own_o policy_n have_v get_v the_o upper_a hand_n whereupon_o the_o kingdom_n of_o france_n by_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o the_o state_n be_v translate_v to_o hugh_n surname_v capet_n who_o posterity_n by_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n do_v yet_o flourish_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n charles_n duke_n of_o lorraine_n enter_v into_o france_n to_o dispute_v his_o right_n by_o force_n of_o arm_n and_o first_o work_v with_o arnulphus_n canon_n of_o laon_n base_a son_n of_o king_n lothaire_n father_n of_o the_o last_o lewis_n by_o who_o mean_n he_o possess_v the_o city_n and_o take_v adalbero_n bishop_n thereof_o and_o put_v he_o into_o prison_n who_o soon_o after_o escape_v and_o come_v to_o king_n hugh_n 26._o gerbert_n in_o ep_n ad_fw-la othonem_fw-la &_o ad_fw-la wilderodonem_fw-la episcop_n argentinensem_fw-la synod_n rhemens_n c._n 26._o which_o be_v not_o do_v without_o slaughter_n and_o spoil_v as_o appear_v by_o a_o epistle_n of_o gerbert_n to_o the_o emperor_n otho_n he_o take_v prisoner_n say_v he_o his_o own_o bishop_n circumvent_v by_o fraud_n and_o with_o he_o the_o city_n of_o laon_n after_o much_o bloodshed_n and_o many_o outrage_n commit_v and_o write_v to_o the_o synod_n at_o rheims_n he_o become_v say_v he_o a_o famous_a apostate_n and_o hold_v a_o long_a time_n the_o place_n of_o the_o traitor_n judas_n in_o the_o church_n etc._n etc._n nevertheless_o hugh_n seek_v all_o mean_n to_o draw_v he_o into_o his_o faction_n hope_v to_o benefit_n himself_o thereby_o and_o adalbero_n archbishop_n of_o rheims_n chance_v to_o die_v appoint_v for_o his_o successor_n gerbert_n who_o be_v afterward_o pope_n sylvester_n the_o second_o he_o make_v he_o archbishop_n take_v of_o he_o a_o authentic_a promise_n of_o fidelity_n write_v with_o his_o hand_n swear_v with_o his_o mouth_n and_o subscribe_v of_o all_o the_o people_n and_o nobility_n of_o that_o diocese_n argentinens_fw-la synod_n rhemens_n c._n 25._o gerbert_n in_o epistola_fw-la ad_fw-la othonem_fw-la &_o ad_fw-la wilderodonem_fw-la ep._n argentinens_fw-la acceptis_fw-la ab_fw-la eo_fw-la say_v the_o synod_n terribilibus_fw-la sacramentis_fw-la which_o the_o same_o gerbert_n witness_v his_o intelligence_n nevertheless_o for_o all_o that_o continue_v with_o charles_n of_o lorraine_n so_o that_o six_o month_n after_o he_o march_v with_o his_o army_n before_o rheims_n be_v receive_v into_o the_o city_n through_o the_o treason_n of_o the_o say_v arnulph_n who_o nevertheless_o play_v his_o part_n by_o a_o priest_n of_o he_o name_v adalgare_a and_o the_o better_a to_o hide_v his_o villainy_n be_v carry_v prisoner_n to_o laon_n with_o other_o french_a lord_n that_o be_v then_o within_o the_o city_n and_o of_o this_o second_o perjury_n say_v gerbert_n he_o betray_v the_o city_n he_o pollute_v the_o sanctuary_n of_o god_n ransack_v all_o and_o cause_v the_o people_n to_o be_v carry_v away_o captive_a and_o present_o after_o say_v he_o excommunicate_v his_o own_o proper_a theft_n and_o command_v the_o bishop_n of_o france_n to_o do_v the_o same_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n so_o far_o forth_o do_v he_o persist_v in_o his_o dissimulation_n that_o for_o the_o space_n of_o eighteen_o month_n be_v careful_o admonish_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o france_n to_o purge_v himself_o of_o so_o great_a a_o crime_n at_o length_n be_v forsake_v of_o his_o chief_a consort_n be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o submit_v himself_o to_o the_o king_n favour_n and_o take_v a_o new_a oath_n more_o strict_a than_o the_o former_a and_o so_o be_v admit_v to_o his_o table_n and_o notwithstanding_o return_v soon_o after_o to_o the_o part_n of_o the_o say_v charles_n hugh_z therefore_o as_o yet_o scarce_o seat_v in_o the_o kingdom_n think_v to_o deal_v mild_o with_o he_o repair_v to_o john_n the_o sixteenth_o and_o both_o by_o letter_n and_o embassage_n complain_v of_o the_o injury_n do_v unto_o he_o and_o at_o the_o first_o be_v gentle_o accept_v but_o the_o synod_n say_v 27._o synod_n rhemens_n c._n 27._o as_o the_o legate_n of_o the_o county_n herbert_n arrive_v and_o have_v deliver_v their_o present_n unto_o he_o this_o man_n as_o platina_n tell_v we_o who_o prodigal_o bestow_v upon_o his_o kindred_n all_o thing_n both_o divine_a and_o humane_a that_o belong_v to_o the_o service_n of_o god_n alter_v his_o mind_n insomuch_o that_o be_v weary_v in_o wait_v at_o the_o gate_n of_o his_o palace_n the_o space_n of_o three_o day_n they_o return_v not_o do_v any_o thing_n not_o only_o not_o admit_v but_o force_v to_o depart_v but_o hugh_n who_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n have_v take_v in_o the_o city_n of_o rheims_n and_o laon_n and_o by_o the_o same_o mean_v get_v arnulph_n into_o his_o power_n cause_v a_o nationall_n council_n to_o be_v hold_v at_o rheims_n in_o the_o year_n 991_o 991._o an._n 991._o wherein_o arnulph_n by_o his_o own_o proper_a confession_n be_v find_v guilty_a be_v in_o a_o solemn_a manner_n depose_v and_o gerbert_n who_o be_v afterward_o sylvester_n the_o second_o put_v by_o the_o king_n in_o his_o place_n who_o have_v the_o charge_n to_o put_v in_o write_v the_o act_n of_o this_o council_n which_o also_o be_v now_o read_v by_o us._n the_o pope_n then_o be_v inward_o move_v not_o so_o much_o for_o the_o judgement_n of_o arnulphus_n as_o offend_v at_o the_o lawful_a liberty_n of_o the_o french_a father_n excommunicate_v those_o that_o have_v subscribe_v to_o the_o conclusion_n of_o this_o council_n and_o strait_o forbid_v gerbert_n his_o archiepiscopall_a function_n in_o a_o synod_n hold_v at_o moson_n and_o threaten_v the_o king_n themselves_o with_o curse_n and_o excommunication_n insomuch_o that_o it_o be_v a_o wonder_n that_o these_o man_n infamous_a in_o italy_n for_o so_o much_o wickedness_n shall_v so_o impudent_o abuse_v our_o patience_n and_o so_o bold_o mock_v we_o with_o their_o bull_n in_o france_n under_o the_o confidence_n without_o doubt_n of_o this_o our_o new_a and_o yet_o but_o feeble_a empire_n but_o gregory_n the_o five_o proceed_v in_o the_o same_o course_n insomuch_o that_o gerbert_n be_v constrain_v to_o forsake_v that_o part_n and_o to_o live_v under_o the_o protection_n of_o the_o emperor_n otho_n the_o three_o but_o with_o what_o constancy_n nevertheless_o the_o french_a bishop_n do_v entertain_v the_o arrogancy_n of_o the_o pope_n it_o be_v now_o time_n
by_o degree_n he_o put_v off_o and_o resign_v to_o the_o king_n that_o which_o he_o have_v receive_v from_o he_o and_o deliver_v the_o ensign_n of_o his_o priestly_a dignity_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o bishop_n he_o recite_v with_o his_o own_o mouth_n the_o form_n of_o the_o deposition_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o this_o assembly_n according_a to_o the_o example_n of_o his_o predecessor_n hebo_n which_o be_v there_o read_v word_n by_o word_n and_o by_o all_o the_o bishop_n that_o be_v present_a subscribe_v all_o of_o they_o say_v unto_o he_o 54.55_o cap._n 54.55_o according_a to_o thy_o profession_n and_o subscription_n cease_v from_o thy_o office_n which_o be_v do_v they_o discharge_v the_o clergy_n and_o people_n from_o their_o oath_n they_o have_v make_v unto_o he_o that_o it_o may_v be_v free_a for_o every_o man_n to_o subject_n himself_o to_o the_o authority_n of_o any_o other_o man_n and_o here_o the_o synod_n end_v which_o we_o have_v think_v good_a to_o repeat_v the_o more_o at_o large_a that_o it_o may_v appear_v with_o what_o gravity_n wisdom_n moderation_n circumspection_n our_o father_n of_o france_n have_v proceed_v in_o this_o business_n all_o of_o they_o with_o one_o accord_n speak_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o arnulph_n bishop_n of_o orleans_n and_o withal_o what_o they_o think_v and_o judge_v of_o rome_n and_o the_o bishop_n thereof_o six_o pope_n john_n hereupon_o wax_v angry_a and_o full_a of_o discontent_n in_o so_o much_o that_o he_o threaten_v his_o excommunication_n against_o the_o king_n but_o hugh_n lest_o his_o competitor_n shall_v thereby_o take_v advantage_n send_v he_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o proceed_v in_o writing_n and_o withal_o send_v he_o letter_n to_o this_o effect_n we_o know_v we_o have_v do_v nothing_o against_o your_o apostolic_a see_v and_o if_o you_o vouchsafe_v not_o to_o give_v credit_n to_o we_o that_o be_v absent_a be_v present_a yourself_o learn_v the_o truth_n of_o those_o that_o be_v present_a grenoble_n be_v a_o city_n situate_a upon_o the_o confine_n of_o italy_n and_o france_n where_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v wont_a to_o meet_v the_o king_n of_o france_n if_o it_o shall_v so_o please_v you_o you_o may_v do_v the_o like_a or_o if_o it_o shall_v content_v you_o better_o to_o visit_v we_o and_o we_o we_o will_v receive_v you_o at_o the_o foot_n of_o the_o alps_n with_o all_o honour_n and_o follow_v you_o with_o all_o due_a observance_n both_o stay_n here_o and_o return_v back_o this_o we_o speak_v from_o the_o bottom_n of_o our_o heart_n that_o you_o may_v know_v and_o understand_v that_o neither_o we_o nor_o any_o of_o we_o will_v refuse_v your_o judgement_n but_o john_n resolve_v rather_o to_o send_v legate_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n while_o these_o thing_n be_v thus_o delay_v gerbert_n afterward_o pope_n silvester_n the_o second_o write_v a_o epistle_n to_o siguin_a archbishop_n of_o sens_n who_o to_o the_o pope_n seem_v to_o favour_n arnulph_n the_o man_n accuse_v and_o now_o condemn_v which_o epistle_n be_v read_v at_o the_o end_n of_o this_o synod_n senomens_n gerbertus_n in_o epist_n ad_fw-la siguinum_fw-la senomens_n your_o wisdom_n say_v he_o shall_v have_v avoid_v the_o wily_a subtlety_n of_o crafty_a man_n and_o have_v hearken_v to_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o lord_n which_o say_v if_o they_o shall_v say_v unto_o you_o here_o be_v christ_n and_o there_o be_v christ_n follow_v they_o not_o it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o be_v at_o rome_n who_o justifi_v that_o which_o you_o condemn_v and_o condemn_v that_o which_o you_o take_v to_o be_v just_a and_o we_o say_v that_o it_o be_v god_n and_o not_o man_n that_o condemn_v those_o thing_n that_o seem_v just_a and_o to_o justify_v that_o which_o seem_v evil_a etc._n etc._n god_n say_v if_o thy_o brother_n have_v sin_v against_o thou_o go_v and_o reprove_v he_o etc._n etc._n how_o then_o do_v these_o that_o emulate_v we_o say_v that_o in_o the_o depose_n of_o arnulph_n we_o be_v to_o expect_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n can_v they_o teach_v we_o that_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v great_a than_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n when_o the_o first_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n tell_v we_o that_o we_o must_v rather_o obey_v god_n than_o man_n yea_o the_o great_a doctor_n of_o the_o world_n saint_n paul_n tell_v we_o that_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v preach_v unto_o you_o any_o other_o doctrine_n than_o that_o you_o have_v receive_v though_o he_o be_v a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n let_v he_o be_v accurse_v think_v you_o that_o because_o pope_n marcelline_n burn_v incen_n to_o idol_n therefore_o all_o the_o bishop_n must_v do_v so_o too_o i_o dare_v bold_o say_v that_o if_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v sin_v against_o his_o brother_n and_o be_v often_o admonish_v shall_v refuse_v to_o hear_v the_o church_n this_o bishop_n of_o rome_n i_o say_v by_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n be_v to_o be_v account_v as_o a_o heathen_a or_o publican_n for_o by_o how_o much_o high_o his_o degree_n be_v by_o so_o much_o great_a be_v his_o fall_n and_o if_o he_o shall_v therefore_o account_v we_o unworthy_a his_o communion_n or_o fellowship_n because_o none_o of_o we_o consent_n unto_o he_o against_o the_o gospel_n yet_o he_o can_v therefore_o separate_v we_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o christ_n a_o priest_n if_o by_o his_o own_o confession_n or_o otherwise_o he_o be_v not_o convict_v can_v be_v put_v from_o his_o office_n especial_o since_o the_o apostle_n himself_o say_v who_o shall_v separate_v we_o from_o the_o love_n of_o christ_n jesus_n and_o again_o sure_o i_o be_o that_o neither_o life_n nor_o death_n etc._n etc._n the_o privilege_n then_o of_o s._n peter_n say_v leo_n the_o great_a be_v not_o in_o force_n wheresoever_o judgement_n be_v not_o execute_v according_a to_o equity_n and_o therefore_o we_o be_v not_o to_o give_v occasion_n to_o those_o that_o emulate_v we_o to_o think_v that_o priesthood_n that_o be_v every_o where_o one_o as_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v in_o all_o place_n one_o shall_v in_o such_o sort_n be_v subject_a to_o one_o only_a man_n though_o he_o be_v corrupt_v with_o money_n favour_n fear_v or_o ignorance_n none_o may_v be_v a_o bishop_n but_o only_o he_o that_o be_v commend_v for_o such_o or_o the_o like_a virtue_n let_v the_o canon_n law_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o apostle_n the_o prophet_n the_o canon_n ordain_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o consecrate_v with_o the_o reverence_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n the_o decree_n of_o the_o apostolic_a see_v not_o disagree_v from_o they_o etc._n etc._n fare_v you_o well_o and_o depend_v not_o upon_o holy_a mystery_n but_o pope_n john_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n hardly_o endure_v these_o thing_n appoint_v a_o synod_n sometime_o at_o rome_n sometime_o at_o aix_n where_o our_o bishop_n pretend_v that_o they_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o go_v forth_o of_o the_o realm_n will_v not_o be_v find_v at_o the_o last_o at_o mouson_n upon_o the_o border_n of_o france_n where_o only_o gerbert_n who_o hugh_n have_v nominate_v archbishop_n of_o rheimes_n appear_v and_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o leo_n abbot_n of_o s._n boniface_n the_o pope_n legate_n many_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o germany_n and_o italy_n assist_v he_o defend_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o father_n of_o france_n in_o such_o sort_n that_o the_o legate_n dare_v not_o proceed_v any_o far_a before_o he_o have_v consult_v with_o the_o pope_n and_o therefore_o refer_v the_o determination_n thereof_o unto_o another_o synod_n at_o rheimes_n but_o yet_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n he_o forbid_v gerbert_n to_o use_v his_o episcopal_a function_n who_o not_o fear_v to_o answer_v he_o to_o his_o face_n tell_v he_o that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o power_n of_o any_o bishop_n patriarch_n or_o pope_n to_o remove_v from_o the_o communion_n any_o of_o the_o faithful_a who_o have_v not_o be_v convict_v or_o of_o his_o own_o accord_n confess_v the_o fact_n or_o have_v not_o refuse_v to_o come_v unto_o the_o council_n but_o of_o all_o these_o three_o be_v none_o that_o may_v hinder_v he_o since_o he_o have_v neither_o confess_v nor_o be_v convict_v and_o have_v only_o among_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o france_n appear_v at_o this_o council_n but_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n gerbert_n go_v into_o germany_n to_o the_o emperor_n otho_n the_o three_o with_o who_o he_o have_v be_v former_o bring_v up_o who_o short_o after_o make_v he_o archbishop_n of_o ravenna_n perceive_v well_o that_o our_o king_n not_o yet_o settle_v in_o their_o new_a kingdom_n nor_o approve_v by_o all_o do_v much_o fear_n to_o offend_v the_o pope_n and_o indeed_o he_o see_v that_o whatsoever_o our_o bishop_n can_v allege_v to_o the_o contrary_a in_o the_o
where_o do_v we_o read_v in_o the_o scripture_n of_o nazarius_n baptize_v by_o linus_n since_o cardinal_n baronius_n himself_o in_o his_o martyrologie_n say_v 341._o card._n bar._n in_o martyrolog_n junij_fw-la 19_o p._n 341._o that_o he_o be_v enforce_v to_o believe_v that_o nazarius_n and_o celsus_n suffer_v under_o the_o emperor_n marcus_n aurelius_n and_o lucius_n verus_n two_o hundred_o year_n after_o which_o the_o legendary_n do_v likewise_o make_v good_a prothasio_n jacob_n the_o veragine_n geruasio_n &_o prothasio_n and_o do_v also_o tell_v we_o that_o geruasius_n and_o protasius_n be_v twin_n be_v the_o son_n of_o s._n vital_a and_o s._n valerie_n remain_v then_o at_o ambrun_n near_o to_o s._n nazarius_n and_o therefore_o both_o live_v at_o one_o time_n far_o from_o the_o reign_n of_o nero._n and_o now_o after_o all_o this_o how_o will_v he_o prove_v that_o of_o s._n ambrose_n especial_o that_o s._n nazarius_n receive_v peter_n baptism_n where_o do_v he_o find_v in_o the_o scripture_n a_o baptism_n of_o peter_n be_v there_o any_o other_o than_o of_o christ_n can_v it_o be_v speak_v without_o blasphemy_n 1.11.12.13_o 1._o cor._n 1.11.12.13_o since_o paul_n himself_o say_v be_v paul_n crucify_v for_o you_o or_o be_v you_o baptize_v into_o the_o name_n of_o paul_n shall_v we_o doubt_v that_o he_o will_v likewise_o have_v say_v in_o the_o name_n of_o peter_n who_o so_o sharp_o reprehend_v those_o that_o say_v i_o be_o paul_n i_o be_o apollo_n i_o be_o peter_n this_o good_a apostle_n of_o rome_n likewise_o add_v that_o ambrose_n see_v he_o can_v not_o overcome_v the_o heresy_n of_o the_o nicholait_n who_o ever_o at_o that_o time_n hear_v of_o any_o such_o heresy_n crave_v help_v of_o pope_n siricius_n who_o fot_o the_o suppress_n thereof_o send_v a_o priest_n a_o deacon_n and_o subdeacon_n that_o they_o by_o his_o example_n in_o the_o like_a difficulty_n shall_v seek_v the_o like_a remedy_n by_o these_o toy_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n he_o boast_v that_o he_o have_v prevail_v so_o far_o with_o the_o people_n that_o he_o can_v make_v they_o do_v what_o he_o will_v have_v they_o that_o be_v to_o say_v for_o the_o establishment_n of_o the_o law_n of_o single_a life_n which_o we_o have_v speak_v of_o elsewhere_o have_v appoint_v a_o penance_n of_o a_o hundred_o year_n to_o the_o archbishop_n which_o nevertheless_o for_o a_o certain_a sum_n of_o money_n yearly_a to_o be_v pay_v he_o may_v redeem_v but_o as_o damianus_n say_v the_o chief_a thing_n be_v to_o know_v of_o what_o power_n the_o privilege_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v but_o the_o matter_n stay_v not_o there_o for_o he_o be_v no_o soon_o return_v to_o rome_n but_o the_o clergy_n present_o recover_v their_o liberty_n erlembaldus_fw-la cotta_n be_v choose_v governor_n of_o the_o people_n by_o the_o death_n of_o landulph_n who_o by_o the_o instigation_n of_o arialdus_n renew_v the_o sedition_n and_o send_v again_o to_o damianus_n but_o he_o be_v much_o move_v therewith_o spare_v not_o ambrose_n himself_o this_o say_v he_o be_v no_o new_a thing_n in_o the_o church_n of_o milan_n which_o have_v always_o have_v man_n of_o diverse_a opinion_n begin_v at_o the_o first_o by_o auxentius_n and_o ambrose_n it_o be_v true_a that_o auxentius_n be_v a_o arrian_n but_o what_o fault_n have_v ambrose_n commit_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v accuse_v of_o that_o fault_n who_o late_o he_o propose_v unto_o we_o as_o a_o patron_n of_o his_o negotiation_n to_o this_o pass_v it_o be_v come_v that_o erlembaldus_fw-la himself_o go_v to_o alexander_n be_v at_o lucques_n in_o the_o year_n 1065_o about_o this_o business_n 1065._o an._n 1065._o of_o who_o he_o obtain_v a_o decree_n against_o the_o clergy_n which_o be_v bring_v to_o milan_n the_o archbishop_n purpose_v to_o dispute_v the_o case_n upon_o the_o day_n of_o pentecost_n but_o so_o have_v arialdus_n and_o erlembaldus_fw-la order_v the_o matter_n that_o have_v frame_v their_o faction_n to_o sedition_n the_o archbishop_n can_v not_o withstand_v they_o the_o year_n follow_v 1066_o 1066._o an._n 1066._o the_o other_o part_n become_v so_o strong_a that_o arialdus_n be_v constrain_v to_o betake_v himself_o to_o flight_n but_o be_v take_v as_o the_o author_n of_o all_o these_o evil_n he_o endure_v a_o miserable_a and_o shameful_a punishment_n by_o who_o example_n erlembaldus_fw-la be_v terrify_v think_v it_o the_o best_a way_n for_o he_o to_o be_v quiet_a but_o in_o the_o year_n 1067_o 1067._o an._n 1067._o by_o reason_n of_o the_o absence_n of_o the_o bishop_n erlembaldus_fw-la have_v get_v more_o strength_n compel_v the_o citizen_n to_o swear_v and_o spare_v neither_o priest_n nor_o archbishop_n in_o so_o much_o that_o the_o bishop_n be_v return_v to_o pacify_v this_o sedition_n he_o fear_v not_o to_o lay_v violent_a hand_n upon_o he_o and_o at_o the_o last_o that_o we_o judge_v of_o this_o whole_a progression_n by_o the_o end_n he_o obtain_v another_o decree_n from_o pope_n hildebrand_n that_o no_o bishop_n shall_v be_v account_v true_a and_o lawful_a without_o the_o command_n of_o the_o pope_n notwithstanding_o he_o be_v declare_v to_o be_v such_o by_o the_o clergy_n the_o people_n and_o the_o king_n for_o the_o strengthen_n of_o which_o decree_n he_o bind_v both_o the_o people_n and_o clergy_n of_o milan_n with_o a_o oath_n at_o which_o the_o archbishop_n wydo_n be_v astonish_v as_o be_v now_o old_a and_o desirous_a of_o rest_n give_v over_o his_o archbishopricke_n and_o send_v his_o ensign_n of_o honour_n into_o germany_n to_o henry_n the_o three_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v propose_v unto_o the_o people_n and_o easy_o devour_v with_o the_o sauce_n of_o simony_n and_o nicholaisme_n which_o whosoever_o shall_v contradict_v be_v present_o with_o dathan_n and_o abiron_n judas_n and_o caiphas_n damn_v to_o the_o pit_n of_o hell_n for_o so_o say_v mainardus_n bishop_n of_o syluacandida_n and_o john_n the_o priest_n and_o cardinal_n the_o pope_n legate_n and_o commissary_n in_o this_o business_n the_o emperor_n therefore_o in_o the_o year_n 1068_o bestow_v that_o dignity_n upon_o godfrey_n chastillon_n a_o milanois_n 1068._o an._n 1068._o and_o of_o a_o noble_a house_n who_o the_o pope_n present_o interdict_v and_o erlembaldus_fw-la his_o partaker_n make_v he_o to_o fly_v the_o city_n but_o the_o pope_n after_o the_o death_n of_o wydo_n give_v it_o to_o atho_n a_o clerk_n of_o milan_n bring_v in_o and_o receive_v by_o erlembald_n not_o without_o the_o great_a grief_n of_o the_o people_n who_o now_o see_v this_o dignity_n to_o be_v carry_v and_o dispose_v according_a to_o the_o will_n and_o pleasure_n of_o the_o roman_n and_o from_o hence_o arise_v a_o new_a controversy_n with_o the_o emperor_n henry_n the_o three_o for_o from_o these_o feign_a heresy_n as_o once_o from_o that_o difference_n that_o fall_v out_o touch_v image_n the_o pope_n reap_v a_o great_a commodity_n that_o be_v the_o oppression_n of_o other_o bishop_n and_o diminution_n of_o lawful_a empire_n but_o to_o proceed_v in_o the_o progression_n we_o must_v not_o forget_v that_o there_o be_v in_o these_o time_n diverse_a king_n that_o make_v themselves_o tributary_n to_o the_o romish_a babylon_n that_o that_o from_o time_n to_o time_n may_v be_v fulfil_v which_o be_v foretell_v in_o the_o apocalyps_n of_o king_n that_o shall_v fall_v down_o and_o worship_v the_o whore_n and_o be_v make_v drunken_a with_o her_o cup._n cassimire_n therefore_o king_n of_o poland_n in_o the_o year_n 1045_o make_v his_o kingdom_n feodatarie_a and_o tributary_n to_o the_o pope_n that_o miserable_a monster_n benedict_n the_o nine_o and_o bind_v all_o his_o subject_n to_o pay_v every_o year_n a_o poll_n halfpenny_n in_o so_o much_o that_o neither_o he_o nor_o his_o successor_n can_v afterward_o free_v themselves_o from_o that_o bondage_n the_o like_a do_v sueno_n king_n of_o denmark_n in_o the_o year_n 1069_o daniae_fw-la epist._n alexand._n 22._o ad_fw-la suenonem_fw-la regem_fw-la daniae_fw-la be_v summon_v by_o alexander_n the_o second_o who_o demand_v it_o of_o he_o as_o a_o thing_n long_o since_o promise_v by_o his_o predecessor_n and_o therefore_o exact_v it_o now_o as_o a_o due_a which_o by_o the_o same_o right_n in_o the_o year_n 1068_o angliae_fw-la eiusdem_fw-la ad_fw-la guilielm_n regem_fw-la angliae_fw-la he_o extort_a from_o william_n king_n of_o england_n who_o he_o will_v persuade_v that_o from_o the_o time_n that_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n be_v first_o know_v in_o england_n the_o kingdom_n have_v be_v sub_fw-la manu_fw-la &_o tutela_fw-la petri_n under_o the_o hand_n and_o protection_n of_o peter_n that_o be_v the_o pope_n of_o rome_n whereas_o there_o be_v many_o christian_a king_n in_o britain_n before_o rome_n have_v hear_v of_o a_o popedom_n and_o this_o exaction_n go_v under_o the_o name_n of_o peter_n penny_n and_o as_o for_o gregory_n the_o seven_o or_o hildebrand_n he_o be_v not_o slow_a
herein_o than_o the_o rest_n that_o oath_n which_o he_o make_v richard_n prince_n of_o capua_n to_o take_v 10._o gregor_n 7._o in_o epist_n post_fw-la 21._o &_o l._n 1._o &_o l._n 8._o post_n epist_n 10._o be_v very_o notable_a i_o richard_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o saint_n peter_n prince_n of_o capua_n by_o what_o divinity_n do_v he_o couple_v the_o creature_n and_o the_o creator_n together_o from_o this_o hour_n and_o ever_o hereafter_o will_v be_v faithful_a to_o the_o holy_a church_n of_o rome_n and_o to_o the_o apostolic_a see_v and_o to_o thou_o a_o helper_n to_o hold_v obtain_v and_o defend_v the_o royalty_n of_o saint_n peter_n and_o his_o possession_n with_o a_o true_a faith_n against_o all_o man_n and_o i_o will_v give_v my_o best_a assistance_n that_o thou_o may_v secure_o and_o honourable_o hold_v the_o popedom_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o dominion_n of_o s._n peter_n these_o clause_n according_a to_o his_o own_o interpretation_n go_v far_o and_o i_o will_v neither_o seek_v to_o invade_v or_o obtain_v thy_o principality_n nor_o presume_v to_o rob_v or_o waste_v they_o without_o the_o leave_n and_o licence_n of_o thou_o and_o thy_o successor_n that_o to_o the_o honour_n of_o s._n peter_n shall_v enter_v what_o other_o word_n can_v he_o use_v to_o a_o captain_n of_o thief_n but_o to_o king_n henry_n when_o i_o shall_v be_v admonish_v by_o thou_o or_o thy_o successor_n i_o will_v swear_v allegiance_n reserve_v still_o my_o fidelity_n to_o the_o holy_a church_n of_o rome_n these_o thing_n fall_v out_o about_o the_o year_n 1073._o and_o the_o same_o oath_n take_v robert_n for_o apulia_n and_o calabria_n do_v his_o homage_n 71._o gregor_n l._n 2._o epist_n 71._o and_o if_o we_o may_v believe_v the_o epistle_n of_o gregory_n the_o seven_o in_o the_o year_n 1073_o there_o come_v to_o rome_n in_o pilgrimage_n the_o son_n of_o demetrius_n king_n of_o russia_n who_o he_o invest_v into_o his_o kingdom_n in_o the_o name_n of_o s._n peter_n undoubted_o affirm_v that_o this_o his_o petition_n shall_v be_v ratify_v and_o confirm_v by_o the_o consent_n of_o his_o father_n if_o he_o shall_v possess_v his_o kingdom_n by_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n thus_o abuse_v as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o stile_n the_o sottish_a devotion_n of_o this_o young_a man_n in_o like_a manner_n in_o the_o year_n 1081_o be_v the_o earl_n bernard_n besot_v who_o give_v for_o the_o remission_n of_o his_o sin_n the_o earldom_n of_o provence_n as_o for_o the_o donation_n of_o the_o countess_n mathilda_n we_o shall_v speak_v thereof_o in_o his_o due_a place_n but_o it_o be_v worthy_a the_o consideration_n from_o what_o ground_n it_o shall_v arise_v that_o he_o write_v to_o philip_n k._n of_o france_n dare_v to_o promise_v he_o remission_n of_o his_o sin_n if_o he_o will_v take_v part_n with_o he_o we_o will_v 1080._o an._n 1080._o say_v he_o and_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o apostle_n we_o command_v that_o thou_o hinder_v not_o in_o any_o sort_n that_o election_n which_o the_o people_n and_o clergy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rheimes_n be_v to_o make_v whereby_o it_o may_v be_v think_v less_o canonical_a but_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v go_v about_o by_o any_o endeavour_n whatsoever_o to_o hinder_v it_o thou_o shall_v give_v thy_o best_a help_n to_o withstand_v he_o go_v forward_o therefore_o that_o we_o may_v not_o be_v think_v in_o vain_a to_o have_v spare_v the_o sin_n of_o thy_o youth_n and_o to_o have_v expect_v thy_o amendment_n but_o especial_o endeavour_n to_o make_v s._n peter_n thy_o debtor_n that_o be_v hildebrand_n who_o make_v himself_o peter_n successor_n in_o who_o power_n be_v thy_o kingdom_n and_o thy_o soul_n who_o can_v bind_v and_o lose_v thou_o in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n by_o which_o thy_o diligence_n and_o execution_n of_o justice_n thou_o may_v deserve_v his_o eternal_a grace_n and_o favour_n here_o i_o may_v ask_v who_o discern_v not_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o devil_n tempt_v our_o saviour_n in_o the_o gospel_n but_o the_o aphorism_n which_o they_o call_v the_o pope_n dictate_v publish_v by_o he_o about_o the_o year_n 1076_o lay_v he_o open_v to_o the_o view_n of_o every_o man_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v no_o other_o foundation_n but_o from_o god_n why_o then_o allege_v they_o peter_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n only_o be_v by_o right_n call_v universal_a and_o therefore_o he_o alone_o have_v right_a according_a to_o s._n gregory_n the_o great_a to_o be_v either_o the_o forerunner_n of_o antichrist_n or_o antichrist_n himself_o that_o he_o alone_o may_v depose_v and_o restore_v bishop_n what_o then_o shall_v we_o say_v of_o so_o many_o bishop_n that_o in_o the_o church_n for_o so_o many_o year_n and_o age_n in_o so_o many_o country_n have_v be_v lawful_o by_o good_a and_o worthy_a law_n without_o any_o respect_n of_o he_o nay_o in_o despite_n of_o he_o place_v and_o displace_v that_o his_o legate_n though_o otherwise_o inferior_a in_o degree_n must_v take_v place_n above_o all_o other_o bishop_n in_o counsel_n and_o may_v denounce_v the_o sentence_n of_o deposition_n against_o they_o the_o reverend_a general_a counsel_n therefore_o in_o which_o diverse_a bishop_n have_v be_v precedent_n and_o take_v the_o upper_a place_n and_o pronounce_v sentence_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o his_o legate_n yea_o &_o many_o time_n against_o they_o too_o whither_o be_v they_o now_o go_v that_o the_o pope_n may_v depose_v such_o as_o be_v absent_a and_o this_o say_v baronius_n be_v to_o cut_v off_o occasion_n and_o excuse_n from_o our_o adversary_n yea_o the_o emperor_n himself_o who_o be_v absent_a he_o have_v excommunicate_v why_o then_o do_v they_o so_o much_o wonder_n that_o he_o shall_v use_v the_o same_o law_n against_o he_o that_o we_o must_v not_o remain_v in_o the_o same_o house_n with_o such_o as_o he_o have_v excommunicate_v what_o be_v this_o but_o like_o the_o pagan_a high_a priest_n to_o interdict_v fire_n and_o water_n 37._o greg._n l._n 2._o epist_n 37._o but_o how_o happy_a be_v it_o for_o christendom_n that_o few_o believe_v it_o to_o conclude_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o he_o only_o according_a to_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o time_n to_o make_v new_a law_n to_o ordain_v colony_n of_o a_o religious_a house_n to_o make_v a_o abbey_n and_o contrary_o to_o divide_v a_o rich_a bishopric_n and_o to_o unite_v the_o poor_a that_o he_o only_o may_v use_v the_o imperial_a ensign_n that_o all_o prince_n be_v to_o kiss_v the_o foot_n of_o the_o pope_n only_o that_o his_o name_n only_o be_v to_o be_v recite_v in_o church_n that_o no_o general_a synod_n be_v to_o be_v call_v without_o his_o command_n that_o no_o book_n may_v be_v account_v canonical_a without_o his_o authority_n that_o all_o cause_n of_o great_a importance_n of_o what_o church_n soever_o must_v be_v refer_v to_o he_o that_o he_o may_v absolve_v subject_n of_o their_o allegiance_n towards_o their_o prince_n that_o he_o can_v judge_v of_o all_o man_n and_o no_o man_n can_v judge_v of_o he_o and_o all_o this_o because_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v never_o err_v nor_o as_o the_o scripture_n witness_v shall_v ever_o err_v that_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n if_o he_o be_v canonical_o ordain_v be_v undoubted_o make_v holy_a by_o the_o merit_n of_o s._n peter_n that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o only_a name_n in_o the_o world_n that_o be_v the_o pope_n he_o have_v almost_o say_v that_o which_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o our_o saviour_n a_o name_n above_o every_o name_n 12.4_o phil._n 2.9_o act_n 12.4_o the_o only_a name_n under_o heaven_n whereby_o we_o must_v be_v save_v now_o gentle_a reader_n what_o do_v thou_o expect_v but_o that_o over_o and_o above_o all_o this_o he_o shall_v add_v because_o the_o pope_n be_v christ_n he_o be_v antichrist_n himself_o but_o before_o we_o come_v to_o the_o chief_a opposition_n we_o be_v to_o note_v some_o particular_a thing_n not_o to_o be_v contemn_v leo_fw-la the_o nine_o say_v the_o abbot_n of_o vrsperg_n be_v at_o menze_n and_o the_o archbishop_n himself_o celebrate_v mass_n 1052._o an._n 1052._o it_o fall_v out_o that_o a_o certain_a deacon_n call_v hunibert_n read_v a_o lesson_n that_o make_v not_o for_o the_o pope_n leo_n be_v admonish_v hereof_o by_o one_o of_o his_o friend_n command_v he_o twice_o or_o thrice_o to_o be_v silent_a who_o nevertheless_o proceed_v the_o lesson_n be_v end_v he_o call_v he_o before_o he_o and_o present_o degrade_v he_o wherewith_o the_o archbishop_n be_v offend_v and_o much_o move_v protest_v that_o neither_o he_o nor_o any_o man_n else_o shall_v end_v the_o service_n at_o that_o time_n except_o his_o deacon_n be_v restore_v unto_o he_o in_o the_o same_o state_n he_o be_v in_o before_o in_o so_o much_o that_o the_o pope_n to_o satisfy_v
worshipper_n of_o false_a god_n be_v wont_v to_o do_v he_o usurp_v both_o the_o empire_n and_o the_o popedom_n etc._n etc._n he_o resist_v the_o divine_a majesty_n and_o the_o most_o christian_n king_n ordain_v from_o above_o and_o inaugurate_v by_o god_n himself_o he_o impugn_v and_o cunning_o and_o crafty_o and_o close_o he_o go_v about_o in_o a_o sheep_n skin_n and_o under_o the_o title_n of_o christ_n to_o get_v into_o his_o hand_n the_o empire_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n for_o these_o cause_v the_o emperor_n the_o bishop_n the_o senate_n the_o people_n pronounce_v he_o depose_v be_v unwilling_a to_o commit_v the_o flock_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o guard_n and_o custody_n of_o such_o a_o wolf_n and_o so_o both_o those_o pretend_a heresy_n of_o simony_n and_o nicholaisme_n with_o one_o consent_n they_o overthrow_v and_o this_o very_a decree_n not_o only_o the_o bishop_n of_o germany_n and_o france_n but_o of_o italy_n itself_o in_o a_o synod_n hold_v at_o pavia_n do_v under_o their_o seal_n and_o by_o oath_n confirm_v they_o write_v likewise_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o synod_n of_o worm_n to_o hildebrand_n that_o he_o shall_v give_v over_o the_o popedom_n and_o betake_v himself_o to_o a_o private_a life_n and_o also_o to_o the_o clergy_n and_o people_n of_o rome_n that_o according_a to_o the_o law_n of_o their_o ancestor_n they_o shall_v choose_v another_o but_o yet_o so_o as_o that_o they_o shall_v lay_v no_o violent_a hand_n upon_o the_o person_n of_o hildebrand_n but_o leave_v he_o to_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n among_o all_o these_o bishop_n there_o be_v not_o any_o that_o contradict_v the_o decree_n but_o albert_n of_o wirthsbourg_n and_o herman_n of_o metz_n who_o likewise_o be_v soon_o persuade_v by_o the_o admonition_n and_o reason_n of_o william_n of_o vtrecht_n to_o be_v of_o the_o same_o opinion_n and_o to_o subscribe_v with_o the_o rest_n gregory_n so_o soon_o as_o he_o understand_v hereof_o be_v nothing_o at_o all_o discourage_v but_o borrow_v a_o great_a sum_n of_o money_n of_o mathilda_n distribute_v it_o among_o the_o people_n with_o the_o poor_a man_n money_n pay_v his_o soldier_n wage_n flatter_v the_o people_n of_o rome_n set_v before_o their_o eye_n their_o ancient_a renoun_n and_o give_v they_o hope_v of_o liberty_n and_o so_o call_v a_o council_n at_o rome_n where_o in_o a_o full_a assembly_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o synod_n of_o worm_n one_o rowland_n a_o prelate_n of_o parma_n upon_o the_o sudden_a stand_v up_o and_o without_o any_o duty_n do_v unto_o he_o speak_v unto_o he_o in_o these_o word_n our_o most_o christian_a emperor_n and_o the_o reverend_a bishop_n of_o italy_n germany_n and_o france_n command_v thou_o to_o resign_v that_o charge_n which_o thou_o have_v usurp_v by_o subtlety_n money_n and_o favour_n for_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o thou_o against_o their_o will_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o decree_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n to_o meddle_v with_o the_o sheepfold_a of_o christ_n and_o present_o turn_v himself_o towards_o the_o assembly_n most_o holy_a brethren_n say_v he_o choose_v according_a to_o your_o own_o law_n a_o pastor_n which_o choice_n of_o you_o the_o sacred_a consul_n tribune_n and_o your_o prince_n according_a to_o the_o manner_n of_o your_o ancestor_n will_v authorise_v for_o this_o hildebrand_n be_v neither_o pastor_n nor_o father_n nor_o pope_n but_o a_o thief_n a_o wolf_n a_o robber_n and_o a_o tyrant_n whereupon_o they_o rush_v upon_o he_o and_o he_o want_v not_o much_o of_o be_v overbear_v by_o the_o people_n in_o the_o letter_n which_o he_o deliver_v there_o be_v these_o word_n because_o thy_o entry_n begin_v with_o so_o many_o perjury_n and_o the_o church_n of_o god_n by_o the_o abuse_n of_o thy_o novelty_n have_v be_v endanger_v in_o this_o so_o great_a a_o tempest_n and_o have_v dishonour_v thy_o whole_a life_n by_o thy_o infamous_a conversation_n as_o we_o have_v promise_v unto_o thou_o no_o obedience_n so_o will_v we_o never_o perform_v any_o to_o thou_o gregory_n therefore_o return_v the_o fault_n upon_o themselves_o the_o day_n follow_v deprive_v henry_n as_o much_o as_o in_o he_o lay_v of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o germany_n and_o italy_n discharge_v the_o prince_n of_o their_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n excommunicate_v sigefrid_n archbishop_n of_o mence_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o vtrecht_n and_o bamberge_n threaten_v to_o proceed_v in_o like_a manner_n against_o the_o rest_n if_o they_o come_v not_o to_o rome_n to_o purge_v themselves_o in_o which_o decree_n let_v the_o reader_n note_v the_o cunning_a he_o speak_v to_o peter_n as_o to_o his_o revenger_n hear_v i_o say_v he_o o_o peter_n prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n thou_o and_o thy_o brother_n s._n paul_n can_v best_o witness_v for_o i_o beside_o other_o that_o i_o be_v draw_v against_o my_o will_n to_o the_o government_n of_o thy_o holy_a church_n and_o therefore_o i_o persuade_v myself_o that_o it_o please_v thou_o that_o i_o shall_v rule_v the_o people_n of_o christ_n commit_v by_o god_n especial_o to_o thy_o charge_n etc._n etc._n be_v therefore_o confident_a herein_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o thy_o church_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o omnipotent_a god_n the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n and_o by_o right_a of_o thy_o authority_n i_o interdict_v henry_n the_o king_n the_o son_n of_o henry_n the_o emperor_n who_o by_o a_o strange_a pride_n the_o like_a whereof_o be_v never_o hear_v of_o have_v rise_v against_o the_o church_n all_o the_o kingdom_n of_o germany_n and_o italy_n etc._n etc._n to_o the_o end_n all_o people_n may_v see_v and_o understand_v that_o thou_o be_v peter_n &_o super_fw-la tuam_fw-la petram_fw-la and_o upon_o thy_o rock_n the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v build_v his_o church_n etc._n etc._n these_o selfsame_o word_n have_v sigonius_n and_o not_o upon_o this_o rock_n and_o some_o deny_v that_o the_o king_n can_v be_v subject_a to_o the_o pope_n curse_n or_o excommunication_n think_v you_o say_v he_o that_o god_n when_o thrice_o together_o he_o commit_v the_o charge_n of_o his_o church_n to_o s._n peter_n say_v feed_v my_o sheep_n that_o he_o except_v king_n and_o so_o what_o he_o will_v he_o obtain_v thus_o hildebrand_n be_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o italy_n germany_n and_o france_n depose_v in_o a_o council_n at_o worm_n and_o henry_n excommunicate_v and_o deprive_v his_o kingdom_n by_o hildebrand_n and_o the_o clergy_n at_o rome_n they_o both_o endeavour_n to_o strengthen_v their_o own_o part_n but_o forasmuch_o as_o such_o kingdom_n as_o be_v long_a time_n govern_v under_o a_o minority_n be_v seldom_o or_o never_o without_o faction_n there_o arise_v present_o against_o henry_n many_o prince_n of_o germany_n to_o who_o hildebrand_n allege_v that_o pope_n zacharie_n have_v depose_v childerick_n king_n of_o france_n only_o for_o his_o negligence_n and_o place_v pepin_n in_o his_o throne_n why_o then_o shall_v it_o not_o be_v lawful_a for_o he_o to_o do_v the_o like_a against_o whosoever_o shall_v rebel_v against_o s._n peter_n and_o they_o on_o the_o other_o side_n under_o his_o patronage_n be_v content_a to_o comfort_v and_o to_o flatter_v their_o conscience_n with_o these_o toy_n of_o this_o number_n be_v hugh_n duke_n of_o alsatia_n who_o be_v grow_v far_o in_o debt_n rodulphus_fw-la duke_n of_o suevia_n the_o emperor_n brother_n in_o law_n feed_v with_o the_o hope_n of_o the_o empire_n bertholdus_n duke_n of_o zaringia_n his_o son_n in_o law_n welfo_n duke_n of_o bavaria_n the_o bishop_n of_o mence_n mets_n and_o worm_n and_o certain_a abbot_n either_o strike_v with_o a_o fear_n of_o the_o excommunication_n or_o for_o some_o special_a cause_n bind_v to_o these_o prince_n who_o with_o one_o consent_n revolt_v from_o the_o emperor_n join_v their_o counsel_n and_o force_n to_o the_o saxon_a rebel_n and_o fill_v all_o germany_n with_o robbery_n sword_n and_o fire_n insomuch_o that_o the_o historiographer_n of_o those_o time_n want_v word_n to_o express_v the_o horror_n and_o abomination_n of_o that_o disorder_a confusion_n which_o by_o all_o good_a man_n be_v impute_v to_o gregory_n who_o cry_v out_o against_o this_o unworthy_a and_o wicked_a act_n in_o their_o sermon_n curse_v gregory_n wish_v all_o ill_a to_o hildebrand_n publish_v he_o to_o be_v antechrist_n under_o a_o show_n of_o piety_n say_v they_o he_o exercise_v his_o fury_n with_o honest_a word_n he_o make_v show_v of_o seek_v the_o public_a good_a under_o the_o title_n of_o christ_n he_o play_v the_o part_n of_o antechrist_n in_o babylon_n he_o sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n and_o extoll_v himself_o above_o all_o that_o be_v worship_v as_o if_o he_o be_v god_n he_o glori_v that_o he_o can_v err_v and_o for_o the_o great_a increase_n of_o his_o glory_n he_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o make_v a_o emperor_n at_o his_o pleasure_n
a_o place_n in_o counsel_n to_o mathilda_n doubtless_o the_o monk_n godfrey_n say_v plain_o that_o be_v circumvent_v by_o the_o pope_n she_o give_v unto_o s._n peter_n without_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o magistrate_n and_o ruler_n the_o marquisat_n of_o ancona_n but_o as_o touch_v his_o public_a life_n and_o government_n gerochus_n his_o follower_n hildebrand_n gerochus_n in_o vita_fw-la hildebrand_n who_o write_v the_o history_n of_o his_o life_n describe_v he_o to_o be_v very_o obstinate_a and_o proud_a in_o his_o own_o conceit_n the_o roman_n say_v he_o usurp_v a_o divine_a honour_n they_o will_v give_v no_o reason_n of_o their_o action_n neither_o can_v they_o endure_v it_o shall_v be_v say_v unto_o they_o why_o do_v thou_o this_o and_o they_o have_v always_o in_o their_o mouth_n these_o satirical_a word_n sic_fw-la volo_fw-la sic_fw-la iubeo_fw-la sit_fw-la pro_fw-la ratione_fw-la voluntas_fw-la so_o i_o will_v so_o i_o command_v for_o reason_v my_o will_n shall_v stand_v and_o that_o indeed_o be_v his_o humour_n according_a to_o the_o description_n of_o all_o writer_n sigebert_n who_o write_v of_o those_o time_n say_v that_o by_o his_o example_n and_o by_o reason_n of_o his_o new_a decree_n many_o thing_n be_v do_v in_o the_o church_n against_o all_o law_n divine_a and_o humane_a and_o there_o arise_v in_o the_o church_n by_o this_o occasion_n pseudomagistri_fw-la false_a doctor_n who_o by_o their_o profane_a novelty_n have_v divert_v the_o people_n from_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o he_o excommunicate_v the_o emperor_n for_o this_o very_a cause_n that_o the_o peer_n of_o the_o realm_n shall_v withstand_v their_o king_n be_v for_o just_a cause_n excommunicate_v again_o that_o the_o pope_n meet_v the_o emperor_n in_o lombardy_n under_o a_o false_a show_n of_o peace_n absolve_v he_o for_o all_o they_o who_o have_v first_o abjure_v hildebrand_n add_v perjury_n to_o perjury_n abjure_v the_o emperor_n and_o appoint_v rodolph_n duke_n of_o burgundy_n their_o king_n the_o crown_n be_v send_v unto_o he_o by_o the_o pope_n hereby_o we_o may_v easy_o gather_v what_o opinion_n he_o have_v of_o he_o another_o say_v he_o receive_v for_o accusation_n of_o the_o king_n the_o writing_n of_o his_o enemy_n and_o thereupon_o excommunicate_v he_o hildebrand_n histor_n saxonica_n in_o literis_fw-la henrici_fw-la ad_fw-la hildebrand_n benno_n cardin._n in_o vita_fw-la hildebrand_n and_o with_o what_o fury_n he_o be_v carry_v appear_v by_o that_o his_o apothegme_n i_o will_v either_o die_v or_o take_v from_o thou_o thy_o life_n and_o kingdom_n but_o cardinal_n benno_n note_v the_o manifest_a judgement_n of_o god_n as_o say_v he_o he_o rise_v from_o his_o chair_n to_o excommunicate_v the_o emperor_n then_o new_o make_v of_o strong_a timber_n by_o the_o sudden_a hand_n of_o god_n it_o be_v strange_o tear_v into_o diverse_a piece_n to_o give_v all_o man_n to_o understand_v how_o many_o &_o horrible_a schism_n by_o that_o dangerous_a excommunication_n and_o presumption_n he_o that_o sit_v in_o that_o chair_n shall_v sow_v both_o against_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o sea_n of_o s._n peter_n how_o cruel_o he_o shall_v dissipate_v the_o chair_n of_o christ_n trample_v the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n under_o his_o foot_n and_z bearing_z rule_n with_o power_n and_o austerity_n and_o another_o say_v from_o hence_o there_o arise_v a_o more_o than_o civil_a war_n without_o respect_n of_o god_n or_o man_n the_o divine_a and_o humane_a law_n be_v corrupt_v without_o which_o neither_o the_o church_n of_o god_n nor_o commonwealth_n can_v stand_v and_o the_o public_a and_o catholic_a faith_n be_v violate_v and_o if_o you_o ask_v they_o where_o the_o fault_n be_v they_o tell_v you_o speak_v of_o the_o extraordinary_a submission_n of_o henry_n to_o gregory_n henrici_fw-la apologia_fw-la henrici_fw-la that_o he_o omit_v nothing_o that_o may_v mollify_v the_o heart_n of_o gregory_n and_o regain_v his_o grace_n and_o favour_n insomuch_o that_o at_o the_o last_o for_o a_o testimony_n of_o his_o reconciliation_n he_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n jesus_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o pope_n sit_v at_o table_n with_o he_o and_o so_o be_v send_v back_o in_o peace_n but_o the_o author_n add_v that_o peace_n which_o judas_n dissemble_v not_o which_o christ_n leave_v insomuch_o that_o leo_n bishop_n of_o ostia_n 48._o leo_fw-la ostiens_fw-la li._n 3._o chron._n cassinen_n c._n 48._o who_o then_o flourish_v say_v the_o business_n be_v bring_v to_o a_o end_n the_o pope_n by_o the_o counsel_n of_o mathilda_n send_v one_o of_o he_o over_o the_o mountain_n with_o the_o crown_n of_o the_o empire_n to_o rodolph_n persuade_v he_o to_o rebel_v against_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o letter_n whereby_o he_o incite_v he_o be_v yet_o to_o be_v read_v in_o the_o history_n of_o saxony_n henrici_fw-la historia_fw-la saxonica_n apologia_fw-la henrici_fw-la yea_o some_o repeat_v his_o own_o word_n trouble_v not_o yourselves_o say_v he_o i_o restore_v he_o unto_o you_o more_o faulty_a than_o before_o for_o the_o person_n of_o the_o king_n shall_v be_v more_o contemptible_a in_o his_o kingdom_n if_o satisfy_v he_o lie_v aside_o the_o ensign_n of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o if_o without_o permission_n he_o resume_v his_o regal_a ornament_n i_o shall_v have_v the_o just_a cause_n to_o excommunicate_v he_o but_o of_o both_o the_o king_n this_o be_v his_o judgement_n henry_n bear_v &_o bring_v up_o in_o the_o kingdom_n by_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n succeed_v his_o progenitor_n in_o the_o kingdom_n etc._n etc._n but_o rodolph_n say_v he_o be_v obedient_a to_o the_o pope_n who_o have_v discharge_v he_o of_o his_o faith_n and_o allegiance_n and_o assure_v he_o that_o bear_a arm_n against_o henry_n he_o can_v be_v no_o way_n condemn_v of_o perjury_n and_o disloyalty_n because_o be_v excommunicate_v he_o can_v be_v no_o long_o king_n it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o all_o the_o faithful_a in_o the_o church_n to_o persecute_v and_o kill_v all_o those_o who_o favour_v henry_n the_o king_n excommunicate_v refuse_v to_o forsake_v he_o this_o be_v a_o new_a doctrine_n say_v the_o author_n never_o hear_v of_o before_o there_o be_v no_o other_o sword_n permit_v in_o the_o church_n 30._o helmold_n in_o historia_n sclavorun_n c._n 28._o 29._o 30._o than_o that_o of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n acknowledge_v by_o rodolph_n himself_o give_v better_a satisfaction_n who_o be_v near_o his_o end_n use_v this_o speech_n to_o some_o of_o his_o familiar_a friend_n you_o see_v here_o my_o right_a hand_n wound_v with_o this_o right_a hand_n i_o swear_v to_o my_o lord_n henry_n that_o i_o will_v never_o hurt_v he_o or_o hinder_v his_o glory_n but_o the_o command_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o request_n of_o the_o bishop_n have_v bring_v i_o to_o this_o that_o lay_v aside_o all_o respect_n of_o my_o oath_n i_o shall_v usurp_v a_o honour_n that_o be_v none_o of_o i_o but_o what_o come_v of_o it_o you_o now_o see_v in_o that_o hand_n which_o have_v violate_v my_o oath_n i_o be_o wound_v to_o death_n let_v those_o therefore_o consider_v hereof_o that_o have_v provoke_v we_o hereunto_o how_o they_o have_v lead_v we_o lest_o perhaps_o we_o fall_v into_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n of_o eternal_a damnation_n and_o so_o with_o these_o wound_n and_o great_a anguish_n of_o heart_n he_o depart_v this_o life_n the_o same_o author_n add_v that_o the_o saxon_n gather_v heart_n again_o choose_v one_o herman_n surname_v cluffloch_n king_n who_o have_v conquer_v henry_n in_o the_o field_n who_o by_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n enter_v victorious_o into_o a_o city_n the_o gate_n fall_v off_o the_o hinge_n and_o kill_v he_o and_o diverse_a other_o whereupon_o the_o saxon_n see_v their_o purpose_n frustrate_v they_o give_v over_o the_o create_v of_o a_o new_a king_n or_o to_o bear_v arm_n any_o more_o against_o henry_n manifest_o perceive_v that_o the_o kingdom_n be_v reserve_v unto_o he_o by_o the_o approbation_n and_o permission_n of_o god_n himself_o what_o now_o remain_v but_o that_o we_o add_v the_o confession_n of_o gregory_n himself_o allege_v before_o by_o sigebert_n and_o confirm_v by_o matthew_n paris_n that_o by_o the_o instigation_n of_o the_o devil_n he_o have_v stir_v up_o wrath_n and_o revenge_n against_o mankind_n i_o willing_o here_o omit_v the_o contradictory_n write_v of_o this_o age_n with_o the_o replication_n and_o duplication_n of_o those_o that_o take_v part_n with_o gregory_n to_o maintain_v his_o excommunication_n who_o say_v that_o a_o pope_n excommunicate_v chilperick_n king_n of_o france_n for_o his_o idleness_n and_o unprofitable_a government_n only_o and_o establish_v pepin_n in_o his_o place_n that_o king_n be_v not_o less_o subject_n to_o the_o key_n of_o rome_n than_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o subject_n for_o
they_o be_v all_o sheep_n that_o who_o god_n have_v make_v a_o ruler_n over_o thing_n celestial_a he_o have_v make_v he_o much_o more_o over_o thing_n terrestrial_a and_o therefore_o the_o pope_n have_v power_n over_o all_o hereupon_o they_o allege_v or_o rather_o abuse_v the_o example_n of_o some_o prince_n that_o have_v be_v censure_v by_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n such_o as_o take_v part_n with_o henry_n on_o the_o other_o side_n reply_v that_o chilperick_n be_v depose_v by_o the_o common_a consent_n of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o realm_n and_o not_o by_o the_o pope_n that_o it_o be_v the_o office_n of_o a_o pastor_n to_o feed_v not_o to_o kill_v to_o instruct_v not_o to_o destroy_v that_o the_o example_n that_o be_v allege_v by_o they_o be_v either_o false_a or_o impertinent_a that_o henry_n refuse_v not_o to_o do_v any_o thing_n nay_o have_v perform_v whatsoever_o belong_v to_o his_o place_n that_o gregory_n on_o the_o other_o side_n carry_v himself_o as_o a_o actor_n not_o as_o a_o judge_n that_o god_n only_o rule_v king_n and_o kingdom_n and_o those_o subject_n that_o god_n have_v give_v they_o no_o man_n can_v absolve_v of_o their_o oath_n &_o allegiance_n this_o they_o confirm_v by_o place_n of_o scripture_n and_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n whereupon_o they_o conclude_v gregory_n to_o be_v antechrist_n who_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n do_v utter_o overthrow_v the_o law_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o doctrine_n but_o this_o be_v nothing_o among_o the_o rest_n they_o strong_o maintain_v that_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v not_o with_o he_o that_o destroy_v the_o church_n and_o that_o the_o title_n of_o catholic_a belong_v not_o to_o he_o or_o his_o follower_n who_o speak_v and_o hold_v against_o the_o holy_a scripture_n against_o the_o gospel_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o rather_o according_a to_o s._n john_n he_o and_o his_o society_n be_v antichrist_n qui_fw-la jesum_fw-la soluunt_fw-la betray_v christ_n offer_v he_o violence_n while_o they_o violent_o wrest_v the_o scripture_n and_o it_o be_v well_o note_v of_o a_o learned_a historiographer_n of_o our_o time_n ecclesiast_fw-la vignier_n in_o hist_n ecclesiast_fw-la that_o in_o this_o whole_a controversy_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v by_o the_o gregorian_n either_o for_o the_o donation_n of_o constantine_n or_o the_o renunciation_n of_o lewis_n a_o manifest_a proof_n unto_o we_o that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n as_o yet_o find_v out_o but_o there_o be_v none_o that_o better_a lay_v open_a unto_o we_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o iniquity_n of_o hildebrand_n than_o cardinal_n benno_n the_o roman_a archpriest_n as_o touch_v his_o magic_n all_o writer_n display_v he_o to_o be_v skilful_a in_o this_o art_n as_o likewise_o that_o true_o diabolical_a oracle_n wherewith_o he_o deceive_v rodolph_n and_o be_v himself_o deceive_v by_o the_o devil_n for_o which_o quality_n also_o he_o be_v condemn_v in_o many_o synod_n by_o innumerable_a bishop_n of_o france_n germany_n italy_n in_o the_o counsel_n of_o worm_n pavia_n brixen_n and_o rome_n where_o in_o the_o sentence_n itself_o in_o very_o significant_a word_n he_o be_v call_v a_o magician_n a_o divine_a a_o soothsayer_n possess_v with_o a_o pithonicall_a spirit_n a_o necromancer_n and_o if_o this_o have_v not_o be_v apparent_a enough_o they_o have_v speak_v doubtless_o much_o more_o there_o want_v not_o matter_n to_o object_v against_o he_o but_o benno_n who_o penetrate_v into_o the_o hide_a secret_n of_o gregory_n set_v down_o all_o circumstance_n that_o he_o have_v learn_v magic_a of_o theophilact_n who_o be_v pope_n benedict_n the_o nine_o of_o laurence_n his_o companion_n and_o of_o john_n the_o archpriest_n of_o s._n john_n port_n latin_n afterward_o gregory_n the_o sixth_o who_o by_o his_o commerce_n with_o devil_n and_o the_o sing_n and_o fly_v of_o bird_n tell_v of_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v do_v in_o far_a country_n of_o the_o event_n of_o war_n and_o the_o death_n of_o prince_n that_o he_o while_o they_o live_v yea_o even_o in_o the_o popedom_n be_v the_o chief_a instrument_n and_o companion_n of_o all_o their_o wickedness_n yea_o the_o heir_n of_o gregory_n the_o sixth_o not_o only_o of_o his_o money_n but_o his_o perfidious_a treachery_n that_o he_o enforce_v pope_n nicholas_n by_o fear_v he_o with_o strange_a apprehension_n of_o death_n and_o present_v before_o he_o horrible_a vision_n to_o make_v he_o archdeacon_n that_o none_o of_o the_o cardinal_n subscribe_v to_o his_o election_n all_o forsake_v he_o but_o he_o be_v create_v by_o the_o open_a force_n of_o the_o soldier_n that_o come_v one_o day_n from_o alba_n to_o rome_n he_o have_v forget_v a_o certain_a book_n of_o negromancie_n without_o which_o he_o seldom_o or_o never_o go_v which_o he_o in_o his_o journey_n remember_v at_o the_o entrance_n of_o portlateran_n he_o hasty_o call_v unto_o he_o two_o of_o his_o familiar_a friend_n and_o faithful_a minister_n of_o his_o wickedness_n &_o command_v they_o with_o all_o speed_n to_o fetch_v that_o book_n unto_o he_o and_o withal_o terrible_o threaten_v they_o not_o to_o presume_v to_o open_v the_o book_n upon_o the_o way_n but_o by_o how_o much_o the_o more_o they_o be_v prohibit_v by_o so_o much_o the_o more_o be_v they_o kindle_v with_o a_o curious_a desire_n to_o pry_v into_o the_o secret_n of_o that_o book_n in_o their_o return_n therefore_o unclasp_a the_o book_n and_o curious_o read_v the_o precept_n of_o that_o diabolical_a art_n there_o appear_v present_o before_o they_o certain_a of_o the_o devil_n angel_n who_o multitude_n and_o horror_n so_o fright_v these_o young_a man_n that_o they_o be_v almost_o beside_o themselves_o hildeb_n benno_n cardin._n in_o vita_fw-la hildeb_n etc._n etc._n and_o these_o be_v the_o very_a word_n of_o benno_n that_o it_o be_v a_o common_a thing_n with_o he_o to_o shake_v sparkle_n of_o fire_n out_o of_o his_o sleeve_n and_o with_o these_o and_o the_o like_a miracle_n to_o blind_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o simple_a as_o if_o they_o be_v sign_n of_o sanctity_n that_o he_o send_v two_o cardinal_n alto_fw-mi and_o cuno_n to_o s._n anastasia_n to_o perform_v a_o fast_o of_o three_o day_n every_o one_o every_o day_n to_o sing_v a_o psalter_n and_o mass_n to_o the_o end_n that_o god_n may_v show_v a_o sign_n which_o of_o the_o two_o thought_n more_o true_o of_o the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n or_o berengarius_fw-la which_o nevertheless_o come_v not_o to_o pass_v that_o he_o consult_v the_o sacrament_n itself_o as_o it_o have_v beeene_v a_o oracle_n against_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o cardinal_n withstand_v he_o cast_v it_o into_o the_o fire_n that_o he_o have_v lay_v a_o trap_n for_o the_o emperor_n in_o the_o church_n of_o s._n mary_n in_o mount_n aventine_n and_o observe_v the_o place_n wherein_o he_o common_o stand_v or_o kneel_v he_o command_v a_o great_a stone_n to_o be_v lay_v upon_o the_o beam_n of_o the_o church_n over_o his_o head_n that_o be_v let_v fall_v upon_o his_o head_n while_o he_o be_v pray_v may_v dash_v out_o his_o brain_n but_o the_o stone_n with_o the_o weight_n thereof_o bear_v down_o with_o it_o the_o instrument_n of_o this_o villainy_n who_o by_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n be_v bruise_v to_o piece_n upon_o the_o pavement_n and_o for_o as_o much_o as_o this_o succeed_v not_o well_o he_o suborn_a murderer_n to_o kill_v he_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n while_o he_o depose_v the_o emperor_n under_o a_o pretence_n of_o simony_n he_o have_v no_o soon_o deprive_v those_o bishop_n of_o who_o he_o complain_v of_o their_o authority_n but_o he_o restore_v it_o to_o they_o again_o thereby_o bind_v they_o unto_o he_o and_o against_o the_o emperor_n in_o honour_n of_o pope_n liberius_n who_o be_v a_o arrian_n he_o ordain_v a_o feast_n and_o commit_v many_o outrage_n beside_o against_o all_o law_n and_o equity_n murder_n oppression_n violence_n which_o it_o will_v be_v too_o long_o to_o relate_v for_o which_o cause_n say_v he_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o church_n cry_v out_o against_o he_o etc._n etc._n i_o can_v wish_v the_o reader_n will_v read_v the_o book_n but_o here_o we_o must_v answer_v to_o the_o objection_n of_o bellarmine_n who_o strive_v to_o affirm_v that_o this_o book_n be_v not_o to_o be_v believe_v first_o because_o it_o be_v likely_a to_o be_v suborn_v by_o some_o lutheran_n or_o other_o r._n if_o he_o have_v say_v of_o some_o malicious_a person_n it_o may_v have_v be_v bear_v with_o but_o i_o refer_v it_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o any_o reader_n that_o can_v discern_v the_o stile_n weigh_v the_o circumstance_n consider_v of_o the_o phrase_n and_o i_o think_v there_o be_v none_o to_o be_v find_v that_o will_v take_v it_o to_o be_v suborn_v second_o some_o man_n perhaps_o faith_n he_o in_o
write_v unto_o richard_n archbishop_n of_o sens_n to_o consecrat_v he_o but_o richard_n as_o we_o learn_v by_o the_o letter_n of_o vrban_n himself_o refuse_v to_o do_v it_o upon_o which_o his_o refusal_n vrban_n himself_o be_v enforce_v to_o consecrat_v he_o command_v richard_n to_o yield_v his_o help_a hand_n to_o you_o in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n reserve_v still_o his_o obedience_n to_o his_o church_n 12.8_o you_o carmiten_n epist_n 12.8_o but_o richard_n nevertheless_o will_v not_o obey_v he_o but_o write_v say_v you_o sharp_a letter_n and_o such_o as_o be_v derogatory_n to_o the_o majesty_n of_o the_o apostolic_a see_n whereupon_o you_o warn_v he_o that_o the_o scripture_n pronounce_v he_o a_o heretic_n because_o he_o agree_v not_o with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n i_o appeal_v unto_o his_o own_o conscience_n out_o of_o what_o piece_n of_o scripture_n he_o prove_v that_o but_o he_o likewise_o acknowledge_v ingenious_o that_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o vrban_n he_o have_v be_v raise_v from_o the_o dunghill_n and_o therefore_o he_o hold_v himself_o oblige_v in_o duty_n to_o advance_v his_o honour_n and_o commodity_n and_o to_o that_o end_n tend_v that_o salutation_n of_o he_o in_o a_o certain_a congratulatorie_a epistle_n cum_fw-la petro_n pugnare_fw-la &_o cum_fw-la petro_n regnare_fw-la to_o fight_v with_o peter_n and_o to_o reign_v with_o peter_n that_o be_v as_o the_o pope_n courtier_n say_v to_o follow_v the_o pope_n fortune_n through_o what_o danger_n so_o ever_o but_o here_o the_o archbishop_n stay_v not_o for_o he_o assemble_v at_o estampe_v the_o bishop_n his_o suffragans_fw-la namely_o of_o paris_n meaux_n and_o troy_n to_o deliberat_fw-la hereupon_o wherein_o he_o show_v that_o this_o ordination_n be_v against_o the_o majesty_n royal_a which_o you_o have_v great_o offend_v in_o receive_v it_o all_o of_o they_o conclude_v to_o restore_v jefferay_n into_o his_o place_n and_o to_o depose_v you_o whereupon_o he_o appeal_v to_o rome_n to_o which_o appellation_n they_o refuse_v to_o obey_v for_o which_o cause_n he_o complain_v to_o vrban_n employ_v his_o help_n that_o he_o will_v be_v please_v to_o write_v to_o the_o archbishop_n and_o his_o suffragans_fw-la in_o his_o behalf_n that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o send_v a_o legate_n into_o france_n to_o provide_v for_o these_o and_o the_o like_a matter_n but_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n while_o they_o unite_v themselves_o together_o for_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o french_a church_n king_n philip_n the_o first_o send_v to_o the_o pope_n for_o a_o dispensation_n to_o marry_v his_o concubine_n bertrade_n and_o so_o withdraw_v his_o hand_n and_o command_v you_o to_o be_v establish_v in_o his_o bishopric_n thus_o it_o oftentimes_o fall_v out_o that_o the_o private_a vice_n of_o prince_n do_v great_o prejudice_v their_o public_a dignity_n in_o these_o epistle_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n it_o be_v worth_a the_o note_n that_o you_o do_v not_o always_o agree_v in_o doctrine_n with_o vrban_n for_o whereas_o diverse_a bishop_n have_v condemn_v the_o investiture_n of_o lay_a person_n for_o heresy_n because_o by_o this_o mean_v the_o great_a prelate_n get_v unto_o themselves_o the_o right_n and_o prerogative_n of_o lay_a founder_n and_o patron_n 1099._o an._n 1099._o you_o nevertheless_o have_v get_v the_o bishopric_n and_o be_v out_o of_o their_o reach_n maintain_v against_o hugh_n the_o pope_n legate_n the_o primate_n of_o lion_n and_o other_o 235.238.239_o you_o carnuten_v epist_n 235.238.239_o that_o it_o be_v no_o heresy_n since_o there_o be_v nothing_o here_o that_o concern_v faith_n which_o have_v nothing_o common_a with_o order_n this_o be_v you_o who_o otherwise_o hold_v with_o vrban_n and_o do_v omit_v no_o occasion_n whereby_o he_o may_v serve_v he_o and_o do_v careful_o advertise_v he_o to_o assist_v manasses_n with_o his_o authority_n for_o his_o confirmation_n in_o the_o bishopric_n of_o rheimes_n 48._o idem_n epist_n 48._o because_o say_v he_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n shall_v have_v one_o in_o that_o see_v that_o shall_v be_v a_o true_a and_o trusty_a servant_n unto_o he_o he_o arm_v he_o likewise_o in_o such_o a_o sort_n with_o his_o counsel_n against_o those_o obstacle_n that_o may_v any_o way_n hinder_v the_o course_n of_o his_o legate_n or_o decree_n in_o france_n that_o he_o fear_v not_o to_o say_v of_o himself_o i_o think_v of_o myself_o that_o there_o be_v no_o man_n on_o this_o side_n the_o mountain_n that_o have_v suffer_v great_a wrong_n endure_v more_o contumely_n for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o your_o command_n and_o that_o fidelity_n that_o be_v due_a unto_o you_o yea_o richard_n the_o archbishop_n of_o sens_n be_v dead_a and_o daribert_n canonical_o nominate_v to_o his_o place_n you_o be_v prohibit_v by_o hugh_n primate_n of_o lion_n and_o legate_n to_o vrban_n to_o consecrate_v he_o bishop_n because_o he_o have_v not_o perform_v unto_o he_o his_o due_a obedience_n you_o deal_v sharp_o with_o the_o legate_n by_o letter_n give_v he_o to_o understand_v that_o he_o will_v not_o obey_v he_o to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o the_o ancient_a canon_n and_o the_o venerable_a authority_n of_o his_o forefather_n he_o therefore_o bitter_o reprove_v he_o but_o baronius_n who_o have_v hitherto_o approve_v he_o begin_v now_o to_o chide_v he_o because_o he_o have_v not_o speak_v of_o investiture_n as_o be_v fit_v 8._o baron_fw-fr a_o 1099_o art_n 8._o that_o which_o remain_v say_v he_o in_o this_o epistle_n of_o you_o be_v more_o harsh_a as_o speak_v too_o abject_o of_o the_o ancient_a investiture_n yea_o of_o many_o thing_n he_o speak_v with_o contempt_n which_o if_o they_o be_v not_o correct_v in_o other_o epistle_n of_o the_o same_o author_n will_v call_v into_o question_n that_o his_o glorious_a reputation_n which_o he_o have_v get_v by_o defend_v the_o apostolic_a see_v and_o the_o catholic_a verity_n so_o much_o do_v reason_n and_o affection_n disagree_v even_o in_o great_a personage_n 1093._o an._n 1093._o in_o england_n anselme_n by_o nation_n a_o italian_a be_v choose_v archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n by_o the_o consent_n of_o king_n william_n the_o second_o crave_v leave_v of_o he_o to_o go_v to_o rome_n to_o receive_v his_o pall_n of_o pope_n vrban_n wherewith_o the_o king_n be_v great_o offend_v answer_v that_o no_o archbishop_n or_o bishop_n in_o his_o realm_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n or_o to_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o he_o have_v that_o liberty_n in_o his_o realm_n that_o the_o emperor_n have_v in_o his_o empire_n anselme_n therefore_o be_v accuse_v of_o high_a treason_n all_o the_o bishop_n consent_v thereunto_o except_o gondoulfe_n bishop_n of_o rochester_n vrban_n hereupon_o send_v gualther_n bishop_n of_o alba_n into_o england_n to_o bring_v he_o the_o pall_n and_o to_o reconcile_v he_o to_o king_n william_n but_o anselme_n be_v still_o desirous_a to_o go_v to_o rome_n king_n william_n answer_v he_o in_o plain_a term_n that_o if_o he_o will_v promise_v and_o bind_v himself_o by_o a_o oath_n upon_o the_o book_n neither_o to_o go_v nor_o to_o appeal_v to_o rome_n for_o any_o affair_n whatsoever_o he_o shall_v then_o well_o and_o peaceable_o enjoy_v his_o bishopric_n if_o not_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v free_a for_o he_o to_o pass_v the_o sea_n but_o never_o to_o return_v and_o this_o he_o speak_v in_o common_a council_n he_o nevertheless_o go_v to_o rome_n where_o by_o his_o counsel_n the_o decree_n be_v renew_v under_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n against_o the_o investiture_n of_o layman_n 2._o mathias_n paris_n in_o guilielmo_n 2._o and_o so_o he_o continue_v at_o lion_n so_o long_o as_o william_n live_v let_v we_o add_v hereunto_o in_o these_o time_n the_o report_n of_o the_o monk_n of_o malmesburie_n touch_v the_o roman_n the_o roman_n sometime_o lord_n of_o the_o world_n 5._o malme_n l._n 5._o a_o people_n that_o go_v in_o long_a gown_n be_v now_o of_o all_o other_o the_o most_o ignorant_a 1097._o an._n 1097._o sell_v justice_n for_o gold_n and_o the_o canon_n rule_n for_o silver_n we_o must_v not_o forget_v that_o it_o be_v at_o this_o very_a time_n that_o pope_n vrban_n grant_v to_o roger_n earl_n of_o calabria_n and_o sicilia_n those_o letter_n patent_n so_o much_o dispute_v by_o baronius_n against_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n sequent_a baron_fw-fr a_o 1097_o art_n 20._o 21._o &_o sequent_a who_o now_o possess_v the_o kingdom_n both_o of_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o sicily_n where_o in_o consideration_n of_o his_o good_a and_o loyal_a service_n do_v unto_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o against_o the_o saracen_n he_o make_v he_o the_o son_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o by_o a_o special_a privilege_n he_o grant_v unto_o he_o and_o to_o his_o son_n simon_n or_o any_o other_o his_o lawful_a heir_n that_o they_o shall_v never_o have_v during_o their_o life_n within_o their_o dominion_n
decree_n they_o degrade_v he_o and_o put_v his_o son_n into_o his_o place_n the_o circumstance_n be_v set_v down_o by_o krantzius_n and_o helmoldus_n saxon._n helmold_n l._n 1._o cap._n 32._o krantzius_n l._n 5._o ca._n 20._o in_o saxon._n which_o let_v not_o the_o reader_n think_v tedious_a to_o read_v the_o bishop_n say_v he_o of_o mence_n cologne_n and_o worm_n be_v command_v to_o go_v unto_o he_o and_o to_o bring_v from_o he_o howsoever_o unwilling_a the_o imperial_a ensign_n the_o cross_n sceptre_n halberd_n kingdom_n sword_n and_o crown_n but_o the_o emperor_n inquire_v the_o cause_n thereof_o they_o answer_v he_o that_o he_o commit_v simony_n in_o confer_v of_o bishopricke_n and_o abbey_n to_o who_o the_o emperor_n reply_v tell_v i_o you_o bishop_n of_o mence_n and_o cologne_n by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o eternal_a god_n what_o i_o have_v receive_v from_o you_o they_o answer_v nothing_o glory_n to_o god_n on_o high_a say_v the_o emperor_n that_o in_o this_o point_n we_o be_v find_v faithful_a doubtless_o your_o great_a dignity_n may_v have_v bring_v great_a gain_n into_o our_o chamber_n if_o we_o have_v seek_v after_o it_o my_o lord_n of_o worm_n know_v &_o we_o be_v not_o ignorant_a whether_o free_o or_o for_o gain_v we_o receive_v he_o my_o good_a father_n violate_v not_o your_o faith_n we_o now_o wax_v old_a have_v patience_n a_o little_a and_o end_v not_o our_o glory_n with_o confusion_n we_o require_v a_o general_a court_n if_o we_o must_v yield_v we_o will_v deliver_v our_o crown_n to_o our_o son_n with_o our_o own_o hand_n but_o they_o make_v offer_n to_o enforce_v he_o he_o retire_v himself_o a_o little_a and_o put_v on_o his_o imperial_a ensign_n and_o return_v unto_o they_o the_o goodness_n of_o the_o eternal_a god_n say_v he_o &_o the_o election_n of_o the_o prince_n give_v they_o unto_o i_o god_n be_v able_a to_o preserve_v they_o unto_o i_o and_o to_o withhold_v your_o hand_n from_o this_o your_o enterprise_n although_o we_o want_v our_o force_n to_o defend_v we_o not_o doubt_v of_o any_o such_o violence_n but_o yet_o let_v the_o fear_n of_o god_n bridle_v you_o since_o piety_n can_v and_o if_o neither_o of_o they_o will_v behold_v here_o be_o i_o unable_a to_o withstand_v your_o force_n hereupon_o the_o bishop_n pause_v a_o while_n but_o at_o the_o last_o the_o one_o encourage_v the_o other_o they_o go_v to_o the_o emperor_n take_v the_o crown_n from_o his_o head_n and_o take_v he_o out_o of_o his_o seat_n spoil_v he_o of_o all_o his_o royal_a robe_n the_o emperor_n fetch_v a_o deep_a sigh_n speak_v in_o this_o manner_n the_o god_n of_o vengeance_n behold_v and_o revenge_v this_o iniquity_n you_o commit_v against_o i_o i_o suffer_v a_o ignominy_n the_o like_a whereof_o be_v never_o hear_v of_o before_o but_o it_o be_v god_n the_o just_a judge_n that_o punish_v i_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o my_o youth_n but_o yet_o you_o be_v not_o free_a from_o this_o offence_n because_o you_o have_v break_v your_o oath_n and_o therefore_o you_o shall_v not_o avoid_v the_o revenge_n of_o a_o just_a judge_n god_n never_o prosper_v you_o upon_o the_o earth_n but_o let_v your_o portion_n be_v with_o he_o that_o betray_v christ_n this_o say_v krantzius_n be_v the_o narration_n of_o our_o annal_n and_o sigonius_n describe_v this_o matter_n almost_o in_o the_o same_o word_n italia_n sigon_n l._n 9_o de_fw-la regno_fw-la italia_n by_o which_o narration_n it_o plain_o appear_v that_o this_o poor_a emperor_n be_v not_o depose_v because_o he_o have_v invest_v bishop_n for_o money_n which_o they_o of_o their_o own_o accord_n acknowledge_v but_o pure_o and_o simple_o because_o according_a to_o the_o ancient_a law_n of_o his_o predecessor_n he_o do_v invest_v they_o which_o the_o synod_n call_v the_o henrician_n heresy_n or_o of_o guibert_n alias_o clement_n 3_o the_o guibertine_n by_o which_o account_n all_o prince_n be_v in_o those_o day_n heretic_n but_o so_o farforth_o do_v the_o cruelty_n of_o paschal_n extend_v 68_o krantz_n saxon._n l._n 5._o cap._n 21._o henric._n herford_n cap._n 68_o that_o he_o cause_v all_o that_o be_v invest_v by_o henry_n to_o be_v dig_v out_o of_o their_o grave_n six_o year_n after_o their_o death_n but_o he_o demand_v penance_n of_o the_o legate_n be_v proud_o reject_v until_o he_o do_v humble_o submit_v himself_o to_o paschal_n but_o paschal_n every_o thing_n thus_o fall_v out_o according_a to_o his_o own_o mind_n by_o a_o honourable_a embassage_n be_v entreat_v to_o come_v into_o germany_n while_o the_o emperor_n be_v deprive_v of_o his_o kingdom_n be_v leave_v to_o lead_v a_o private_a life_n in_o the_o castle_n of_o ingelheim_n but_o yet_o short_o after_o by_o the_o help_n of_o some_o of_o his_o friend_n he_o retire_v himself_o into_o cologne_n and_o be_v conduct_v by_o the_o citizen_n to_o liege_n he_o be_v honourable_o receyve_v by_o othbert_n bishop_n of_o that_o place_n and_o henry_n duke_n of_o lorraine_n and_o from_o thence_o he_o dispatch_v orator_n to_o all_o christian_a prince_n especial_o philip_n the_o first_o king_n of_o france_n to_o lay_v open_a unto_o they_o this_o miserable_a tragedy_n but_o his_o son_n pursue_v he_o even_o to_o that_o place_n notwithstanding_o those_o protestation_n he_o make_v that_o he_o only_o fight_v some_o little_a place_n of_o rest_n where_o he_o may_v end_v his_o life_n and_o at_o the_o last_o by_o his_o endeavour_n he_o bring_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o he_o get_v he_o again_o by_o force_n into_o his_o power_n where_o his_o estate_n be_v such_o at_o the_o last_o that_o he_o entreat_v the_o bishop_n of_o spire_n sometime_o his_o dear_a friend_n and_o advance_v by_o he_o to_o give_v he_o a_o place_n where_o he_o may_v live_v as_o a_o clerk_n in_o the_o church_n of_o s._n mary_n which_o he_o have_v found_v which_o be_v cruel_o deny_v he_o and_o so_o a_o few_o day_n after_o be_v overcome_v with_o grief_n he_o die_v and_o that_o it_o may_v appear_v that_o the_o impiety_n of_o his_o son_n have_v not_o altogether_o extinguish_v his_o love_n and_o piety_n towards_o he_o he_o send_v unto_o he_o for_o his_o last_o present_n &_o testimony_n of_o his_o fatherlie_a love_n his_o seale-ring_n and_o his_o sword_n who_o nevertheless_o in_o favour_n of_o the_o pope_n 33._o auent_n l._n 5._o annalium_fw-la boior_fw-la helmold_n l._n 1._o cap._n 33._o and_o to_o express_v his_o obedience_n towards_o he_o keep_v his_o father_n for_o five_o year_n together_o unbury_v in_o a_o solitary_a chapel_n of_o the_o house_n here_o say_v helmoldus_n the_o historiographer_n he_o be_v very_o good_a to_o those_o church_n which_o he_o find_v to_o be_v faithful_a unto_o he_o but_o as_o for_o gregory_n and_o other_o who_o lie_v in_o ambush_n against_o his_o honour_n as_o they_o endeavour_v the_o worst_a they_o can_v against_o he_o so_o he_o the_o like_a against_o they_o extreme_a necessity_n as_o many_o affirm_v enforce_v he_o thereunto_o for_o who_o will_v willing_o endure_v the_o least_o loss_n of_o honour_n we_o read_v of_o many_o that_o have_v sin_v who_o have_v be_v relieve_v by_o repentance_n david_n sin_v and_o repent_v continue_v a_o king_n and_o a_o prophet_n but_o king_n henry_n cast_v himself_o down_o at_o the_o pope_n foot_n pray_v and_o repent_v be_v tread_v under_o foot_n and_o can_v not_o obtain_v that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o grace_n that_o david_n obtain_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o law_n but_o let_v those_o dispute_v hereof_o that_o dare_v or_o know_v these_o thing_n this_o only_a one_o thing_n we_o may_v know_v that_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n at_o this_o day_n rue_v that_o fact_n for_o as_o many_o as_o since_o that_o time_n have_v reign_v of_o that_o stock_n have_v use_v their_o best_a endeavour_n to_o humble_a the_o church_n lest_o they_o shall_v gather_v strength_n against_o king_n and_o attempt_v as_o much_o against_o they_o as_o they_o have_v do_v against_o their_o forefather_n but_o henry_n the_o junior_a reign_v for_o his_o father_n and_o there_o be_v peace_n between_o the_o kingdom_n and_o the_o priesthood_n but_o yet_o not_o long_o for_o neither_o do_v he_o prosper_v be_v all_o his_o life_n time_n ensnare_v as_o his_o father_n be_v by_o the_o apostolic_a see_n and_o he_o be_v a_o priest_n that_o here_o speak_v this_o henry_n according_a to_o most_o writer_n be_v call_v the_o four_o we_o follow_v onuphrius_n and_o sigonius_n make_v he_o the_o three_o all_o this_o happen_v from_o the_o year_n 1099_o to_o 1106._o 1106._o an._n 1106._o but_o let_v we_o not_o forget_v a_o epistle_n of_o this_o paschal_n write_v to_o the_o archbishop_n of_o polonia_n at_o the_o entrance_n of_o this_o age_n 1102._o an._n 1102._o about_o the_o allegation_n of_o counsel_n poloniae_fw-la pascha_fw-la l._n epist_n ad_fw-la archiep._n poloniae_fw-la as_o if_o say_v he_o any_o counsel_n may_v
with_o full_a authority_n who_o without_o repair_v to_o lewis_n the_o gross_a who_o then_o succeed_v to_o the_o crown_n put_v himself_o in_o possession_n of_o the_o bishopric_n but_o the_o say_v lewis_n though_o great_o busy_v at_o his_o entrance_n chron._n richard_n de_fw-fr vassenburg_n in_o chron._n by_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o baron_n of_o the_o realm_n against_o he_o will_v in_o no_o wise_a approve_v of_o he_o but_o on_o the_o contrary_n make_v himself_o to_o be_v crown_v at_o orleans_n by_o giselbert_n archbishop_n of_o sens_n notwithstanding_o the_o complaint_n that_o rodolph_n make_v of_o the_o wrong_n do_v to_o his_o bishopric_n and_o provide_v and_o invest_v archbishop_n of_o rheimes_n one_o geruais_n choose_v from_o among_o his_o domestical_a servant_n by_o reason_n whereof_o the_o city_n be_v toss_v with_o many_o trouble_n and_o for_o receive_v geruais_n be_v interdict_v and_o excommunicate_v this_o we_o learn_v of_o you_o bishop_n of_o chartres_n in_o his_o epistle_n namely_o in_o the_o 206_o direct_v to_o paschal_n we_o have_v say_v he_o opportune_o and_o importunate_o request_v the_o king_n of_o france_n to_o reestablish_v rodolph_n in_o the_o metropolitan_a church_n of_o rheimes_n receive_v he_o into_o favour_n and_o that_o he_o shall_v put_v out_o geruais_n usurper_n of_o the_o same_o thus_o he_o speak_v the_o pope_n language_n he_o have_v in_o the_o end_n condescend_v to_o our_o prayer_n and_o permit_v that_o we_o shall_v bring_v he_o safe_o to_o his_o court_n which_o shall_v be_v hold_v on_o christmas_n day_n at_o orleans_n there_o to_o treat_v with_o he_o and_o with_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o realm_n of_o the_o affair_n of_o rheimes_n but_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o contradiction_n of_o the_o court_n notwithstanding_o our_o request_n and_o intercession_n multiply_v we_o have_v not_o be_v able_a to_o obtain_v a_o full_a peace_n except_o rodolph_n do_v yield_v fealty_n to_o the_o king_n 206._o you_o carnuten_v epist_n 206._o per_fw-la manum_fw-la &_o sacramentum_fw-la by_o hand_n and_o oath_n such_o as_o to_o the_o king_n his_o predecessor_n from_o all_o time_n the_o archbishop_n of_o rheimes_n and_o other_o bishop_n of_o the_o realm_n of_o france_n have_v do_v how_o religious_a and_o holy_a soever_o they_o be_v etc._n etc._n we_o therefore_o entreat_v thou_o even_o with_o bend_a knee_n that_o in_o regard_n of_o charity_n and_o peace_n your_o fatherlie_a moderation_n will_v hold_v for_o venial_a that_o which_o the_o eternal_a law_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o law_n of_o god_n make_v not_o unlawful_a but_o the_o only_a prohibition_n of_o those_o that_o do_v preside_v that_o be_v the_o pope_n with_o a_o intention_n of_o gain_v liberty_n 239._o idem_n epist_n 238._o &_o 239._o and_o this_o agree_v with_o that_o which_o he_o defend_v afterward_o against_o john_n bishop_n of_o lion_n that_o in_o this_o investiture_n there_o be_v nothing_o that_o concern_v heresy_n and_o with_o that_o which_o he_o write_v to_o hugh_n the_o pope_n legate_n in_o france_n in_o his_o 65_o epistle_n complain_v of_o a_o archbishop_n of_o sens_n invest_v by_o the_o king_n for_o as_o much_o as_o it_o have_v not_o any_o force_n of_o a_o sacrament_n whether_o admit_v or_o omit_v we_o see_v not_o how_o it_o can_v any_o way_n be_v hurtful_a to_o faith_n or_o religion_n especial_o when_o we_o read_v that_o king_n be_v wont_v to_o be_v entreat_v by_o the_o pope_n to_o grant_v bishopricke_n to_o those_o that_o be_v canonical_o choose_v and_o that_o the_o pope_n defer_v the_o consecration_n of_o those_o which_o have_v not_o as_o yet_o be_v admit_v by_o the_o king_n and_o that_o king_n intend_v not_o the_o gift_n of_o any_o spiritual_a thing_n but_o yield_v at_o the_o request_n of_o the_o petitioner_n temporal_a thing_n only_o to_o those_o that_o be_v elect_v which_o the_o church_n obtain_v from_o the_o bounty_n of_o king_n for_o proof_n whereof_o he_o allege_v s._n augustine_n upon_o s._n john_n in_o his_o first_o treatise_n so_o likewise_o write_v to_o paschal_n himself_o who_o endeavour_v to_o alienat_fw-la those_o of_o tournay_n from_o the_o bishopric_n of_o noyon_n he_o say_v we_o your_o faithful_a son_n humble_o beseech_v 138._o you_o epist_n 138._o and_o advise_v you_o to_o suffer_v the_o church_n of_o france_n to_o continue_v in_o the_o same_o state_n wherein_o they_o have_v be_v for_o almost_o these_o four_o hundred_o year_n lest_o by_o this_o occasion_n that_o schism_n grow_v strong_a in_o france_n which_o have_v already_o take_v root_n in_o germany_n against_o the_o apostolic_a see_v etc._n etc._n for_o your_o holiness_n can_v but_o know_v that_o when_o the_o kingdom_n and_o the_o priesthood_n agree_v together_o the_o world_n be_v well_o govern_v and_o the_o church_n flourish_v and_o fructifi_v but_o when_o they_o be_v at_o discord_n one_o against_o the_o other_o not_o only_o small_a thing_n do_v not_o prosper_v but_o the_o great_a that_o be_v do_v miserable_o vanish_v and_o pass_v away_o and_o the_o self_n same_o judgement_n of_o paschal_n give_v sigebert_n abbot_n of_o gemblous_a in_o brabant_n 1111._o sigebert_n in_o chron._n a_o 1111._o a_o man_n of_o that_o singular_a commendation_n that_o platina_n doubt_v not_o to_o place_v he_o in_o the_o same_o rank_n with_o s._n bernard_n and_o think_v that_o ageblessed_a wherein_o he_o live_v yea_o in_o plain_a term_n king_n henry_n say_v he_o go_v to_o rome_n to_o appease_v the_o discord_n betwixt_o the_o kingdom_n and_o the_o priesthood_n begin_v by_o pope_n gregory_n the_o seven_o who_o be_v call_v hildebrand_n and_o renew_v by_o his_o successor_n victor_n and_o vrban_n and_o especial_o by_o paschal_n who_o be_v a_o scandal_n to_o the_o whole_a world_n the_o king_n will_v use_v the_o authority_n custom_n and_o privilege_n of_o the_o emperor_n who_o since_o charles_n the_o great_a for_o three_o hundred_o year_n and_o upward_o govern_v the_o roman_n under_o sixty_o three_o pope_n lawful_o confer_v bishopricke_n and_o abbey_n by_o the_o ring_n and_o the_o staff_n against_o this_o authority_n of_o the_o elder_n the_o pope_n ordain_v by_o a_o synodall_n censure_n that_o bishopricke_n or_o any_o other_o ecclesiastical_a investiture_n can_v not_o nor_o aught_o to_o be_v give_v by_o the_o ring_n and_o the_o staff_n by_o any_o lie_v man_n and_o whosoever_o do_v so_o receive_v any_o such_o investiture_n be_v excommunicate_v moreover_o trithemius_n say_v ecclesiasticis_fw-la trithemius_n de_fw-fr scriptoribus_fw-la ecclesiasticis_fw-la that_o he_o make_v a_o apology_n for_o the_o emperor_n against_o gregory_n the_o seven_o and_o another_o against_o the_o epistle_n of_o paschal_n in_o which_o he_o show_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v no_o superiority_n over_o the_o emperor_n that_o it_o be_v heresy_n to_o absolve_v the_o subject_n of_o their_o oath_n and_o allegiance_n to_o their_o prince_n and_o he_o note_v beside_o in_o the_o time_n of_o paschal_n many_o extraordinary_a prodigious_a wonder_n which_o all_o the_o chronicler_n of_o those_o time_n do_v likewise_o observe_v in_o england_n paschal_n proceed_v in_o the_o execution_n of_o his_o decree_n which_o anselme_n with_o no_o good_a success_n have_v begin_v and_o when_o henry_n the_o first_o maintain_v in_o the_o year_n 1103_o his_o investiture_n against_o paschal_n protest_v that_o he_o will_v rather_o hazard_v his_o kingdom_n than_o yield_v unto_o paschal_n neither_o will_v i_o say_v paschal_n for_o the_o redemption_n of_o my_o own_o head_n suffer_v he_o free_o to_o obtain_v they_o but_o yet_o by_o the_o mediation_n of_o anselme_n he_o merciful_o dispense_v with_o those_o prelate_n who_o have_v receive_v their_o investiture_n of_o henry_n henry_n math._n paris_n in_o henry_n but_o matthew_n paris_n expound_v this_o mercy_n this_o merciful_a chair_n say_v he_o which_o be_v never_o want_v to_o those_o that_o bring_v with_o they_o either_o white_a or_o red_a reestablish_v those_o bishop_n and_o abbot_n that_o be_v suspend_v to_o their_o ancient_a dignity_n and_o receive_v they_o with_o joy_n anselme_n think_v that_o this_o office_n he_o have_v do_v unto_o the_o king_n will_v have_v be_v well_o accept_v of_o and_o he_o the_o better_a welcome_n into_o england_n but_o the_o king_n understanding_n that_o neither_o paschal_n nor_o anselme_n abate_v any_o thing_n of_o their_o purpose_n therein_o he_o join_v the_o archbishopricke_n to_o his_o own_o domain_v and_o confiscate_v the_o good_n of_o anselme_n 1107._o an._n 1107._o who_o nevertheless_o in_o the_o year_n 1107_o he_o reestablish_v and_o in_o a_o council_n hold_v at_o london_n it_o be_v agree_v that_o from_o thenceforward_o no_o bishop_n or_o abbot_n shall_v be_v invest_v by_o the_o king_n with_o the_o ring_n and_o the_o staff_n the_o archbishop_n likewise_o agree_v thereunto_o and_o that_o for_o their_o homage_n do_v unto_o the_o king_n they_o shall_v not_o be_v deprive_v of_o their_o charge_n the_o letter_n of_o paschal_n to_o henry_n be_v worth_a the_o note_n that_o by_o occasion_n
the_o cause_n to_o delay_v and_o prolong_v it_o whereupon_o he_o threaten_v to_o excommunicate_a he_o and_o to_o interdict_v his_o realm_n richardo_n mat._n paris_n in_o richardo_n if_o he_o do_v not_o the_o soon_o agree_v matthew_n paris_n the_o author_n of_o the_o english_a history_n say_v he_o make_v he_o this_o answer_n that_o he_o nothing_o fear_v his_o sentence_n as_o be_v uphold_v with_o no_o equity_n he_o add_v that_o it_o belong_v not_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o punish_v by_o sentence_n any_o king_n especial_o of_o france_n if_o the_o say_a king_n be_v dispose_v to_o revenge_v himself_o upon_o his_o ill_a deserve_n untamed_a people_n and_o rebellious_a to_o his_o kingdom_n he_o add_v moreover_o that_o the_o cardinal_n of_o anagne_n his_o legate_n have_v smell_v the_o starling_n of_o the_o king_n of_o england_n by_o who_o odour_n be_v attract_v according_a to_o the_o fashion_n of_o the_o roman_n he_o become_v more_o favourable_a to_o he_o and_o therefore_o have_v the_o more_o reason_n to_o suspect_v he_o to_o be_v his_o judge_n moreover_o the_o earl_n richard_n do_v hardly_o contain_v himself_o and_o as_o hardly_o can_v the_o lord_n hold_v his_o hand_n but_o that_o with_o his_o sword_n draw_v he_o have_v furious_o assault_v the_o cardinal_n insomuch_o that_o the_o cardinal_n retire_v and_o hide_v himself_o for_o fear_n verba_fw-la continuit_fw-la ampullosa_fw-la stay_v his_o swell_a word_n both_o these_o king_n hoist_v up_o sail_n and_o richard_n of_o england_n arrive_v within_o the_o river_n of_o tiber_n where_o meet_v he_o octavian_n cardinal_n of_o ostia_n send_v from_o clement_n the_o three_o to_o who_o as_o roger_n hovenden_n say_v he_o speak_v many_o reproachful_a word_n blame_v the_o simony_n of_o the_o roman_n that_o to_o consecrate_v the_o bishop_n of_o man_n they_o have_v take_v 700_o mark_n posteriore_fw-la rogerus_fw-la hovenden_n in_o annalium_fw-la parte_fw-la posteriore_fw-la and_o 1500_o for_o the_o legation_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o elie_n and_o beside_o a_o great_a sum_n for_o not_o depose_v the_o bishop_n of_o bordeaux_n accuse_v by_o his_o clergy_n but_o he_o say_v beside_o that_o he_o arrive_v at_o messine_n about_o the_o same_o time_n that_o philip_n king_n of_o france_n go_v with_o a_o desire_n to_o see_v joachim_n abbot_n of_o courace_n of_o the_o order_n of_o the_o cistertiens_n a_o man_n in_o that_o age_n very_o famous_a and_o think_v to_o have_v a_o prophetical_a spirit_n who_o he_o request_v to_o expound_v unto_o he_o and_o his_o follower_n the_o vision_n of_o s._n john_n in_o the_o apocalyps_n wherein_o he_o receive_v much_o content_n posteriore_fw-la apud_fw-la rogerum_fw-la de_fw-fr hovenden_n annal._n parte_fw-la posteriore_fw-la especial_o when_o he_o speak_v of_o seven_o king_n whereof_o one_o be_v not_o yet_o come_v he_o say_v unto_o he_o this_o man_n be_v antichrist_n who_o be_v now_o in_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n and_o be_v set_v on_o high_a in_o the_o apostolic_a seat_n and_o of_o this_o antichrist_n say_v the_o apostle_n he_o be_v a_o adversary_n and_o exalt_v himself_o against_o all_o that_o be_v call_v god_n etc._n etc._n the_o king_n reply_v unto_o he_o i_o think_v that_o antichrist_n shall_v be_v bear_v in_o antioch_n or_o in_o babylon_n of_o the_o progeny_n of_o dan_n and_o shall_v reign_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n at_o jerusalem_n etc._n etc._n but_o joachim_n persist_v in_o his_o exposition_n add_v that_o the_o seven_o diadem_n signify_v the_o king_n and_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n who_o shall_v believe_v in_o antichrist_n etc._n etc._n but_o he_o say_v in_o the_o time_n of_o this_o antichrist_n many_o of_o the_o christian_n shall_v preserve_v the_o christian_a faith_n in_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o den_n and_o cave_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o in_o solitary_a rock_n and_o desert_a place_n even_o until_o the_o consummation_n of_o antichrist_n all_o this_o he_o speak_v notwithstanding_o the_o archbishop_n of_o rouen_n pamiers_n and_o dauch_n who_o be_v there_o present_a have_v endeavour_v to_o prove_v the_o contrary_a and_o to_o this_o purpose_n it_o be_v that_o the_o abbot_n speak_v upon_o jeremie_n there_o be_v another_o fig_n tree_n who_o through_o the_o malediction_n of_o his_o prevarication_n be_v now_o wither_a the_o latin_a church_n or_o the_o little_a bark_n of_o s._n peter_n who_o leaf_n be_v temporal_a thing_n whereof_o they_o make_v breech_n to_o hide_v their_o wicked_a conversation_n wherewith_o they_o excuse_v the_o dishonesty_n and_o shame_n of_o their_o life_n as_o well_o of_o adam_n the_o high_a priest_n as_o eve_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o church_n subject_n unto_o they_o and_o miserable_o hide_v themselves_o in_o the_o wood_n of_o ecclesiastical_a glory_n now_o baronius_n touch_v this_o history_n 12._o boron_n a_o 1190_o art_n 2._o lom_o 12._o but_o he_o take_v good_a heed_n for_o disclose_v the_o principal_a clause_n which_o express_o decipher_v the_o pope_n of_o rome_n king_n richard_n returning_z from_o palestina_n be_v stay_v by_o the_o duke_n of_o austria_n pass_v through_o his_o country_n who_o deliver_v he_o to_o the_o emperor_n henry_n the_o sixth_o who_o will_v not_o release_v he_o without_o a_o great_a ransom_n queen_n elinor_n his_o mother_n think_v that_o pope_n celestine_n be_v content_a to_o wink_v at_o this_o shameful_a act_n because_o of_o the_o friendship_n that_o be_v yet_o between_o he_o and_o henry_n write_v three_o letter_n unto_o he_o which_o we_o may_v read_v in_o the_o epistle_n of_o peter_n of_o blois_n the_o last_o for_o as_o much_o as_o he_o seem_v to_o neglect_v the_o former_a be_v more_o sharp_a and_o in_o more_o express_a term_n as_o follow_v deliver_v unto_o i_o say_v she_o thou_o man_n of_o god_n my_o son_n 144.145.146_o petrus_n blaesens_n epist_n 144.145.146_o if_o thou_o be_v a_o man_n of_o god_n and_o not_o rather_o a_o man_n of_o blood_n if_o thou_o be_v careless_a and_o negligent_a in_o give_v liberty_n to_o my_o son_n that_o the_o omnipotent_a god_n may_v require_v his_o blood_n at_o thy_o hand_n oh_o and_o alas_o that_o the_o sovereign_a pastor_n shall_v become_v mercenary_a that_o he_o shall_v fly_v from_o the_o face_n of_o the_o wolf_n that_o he_o shall_v leave_v his_o sheep_n commit_v to_o his_o charge_n yea_o a_o choose_a bell-wether_n the_o leader_n of_o the_o lord_n flock_v in_o the_o jaw_n of_o a_o cruel_a beast_n hardly_o true_o will_v thou_o adventure_v thy_o soul_n for_o he_o for_o who_o thou_o have_v not_o dain_v to_o speak_v or_o write_v one_o word_n and_o now_o three_o time_n we_o have_v be_v promise_v legate_n and_o yet_o they_o be_v not_o send_v that_o to_o say_v the_o truth_n i_o may_v think_v they_o rather_o ligati_fw-la than_o legati_fw-la bind_v that_o they_o shall_v not_o come_v than_o appoint_v to_o come_v if_o my_o son_n be_v in_o prosperity_n they_o have_v come_v with_o all_o possible_a speed_n because_o out_o of_o his_o great_a bounty_n and_o the_o public_a profit_n they_o make_v of_o the_o kingdom_n they_o expect_v plentiful_a reward_n of_o their_o legation_n and_o what_o great_a glory_n can_v there_o be_v than_o to_o set_v free_a a_o captive_a king_n to_o bring_v peace_n to_o the_o people_n safety_n to_o the_o religious_a and_o joy_n and_o comfort_n to_o every_o one_o but_o now_o they_o fail_v at_o a_o pinch_n the_o wolf_n hold_v his_o prey_n and_o the_o dog_n either_o can_v or_o will_v not_o bark_v be_v this_o the_o promise_n which_o you_o make_v unto_o we_o at_o the_o castle_n of_o radolphus_n with_o so_o much_o protestation_n of_o love_n and_o fidelity_n what_o can_v it_o profit_v you_o to_o deceive_v simple_a people_n and_o by_o a_o vain_a confidence_n to_o mock_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o innocent_a so_o long_o since_o king_n achab_n make_v a_o covenant_n of_o friendship_n with_o benhadab_n but_o their_o mutual_a love_n have_v a_o dismal_a event_n compare_v the_o pope_n to_o this_o infidel_n king_n and_o god_n prosper_v the_o battle_n of_o judas_n john_n simion_n brother_n of_o the_o maccabee_n but_o so_o soon_o as_o by_o their_o embassage_n they_o make_v a_o contract_n of_o friendship_n with_o the_o roman_n they_o lose_v the_o succour_n and_o help_v of_o god_n and_o not_o once_o but_o often_o their_o mercenary_a familiarity_n be_v turn_v into_o sob_n and_o bitter_a sigh_n etc._n etc._n i_o will_v to_o god_n they_o will_v remember_v that_o for_o the_o negligence_n of_o hely_n their_o priest_n minister_a in_o silo_n the_o glory_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v translate_v from_o israel_n neither_o be_v it_o a_o parable_n of_o the_o time_n past_a but_o the_o time_n present_a because_o god_n forsake_v the_o tabernacle_n of_o silo_n his_o own_o tabernacle_n where_o himself_o dwell_v among_o man_n deliver_v their_o power_n into_o captivity_n and_o their_o beauty_n into_o the_o enemy_n hand_n mean_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n it_o be_v impute_v to_o their_o
other_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n innocent_a the_o three_o as_o say_v the_o abbot_n of_o vrsperge_n vrsperg_n abbas_n vrsperg_n make_v profit_n of_o this_o confusion_n which_o he_o describe_v so_o horrible_a in_o the_o empire_n as_o the_o like_a hardly_o happen_v ever_o in_o any_o age_n that_o a_o man_n say_v he_o can_v not_o safe_o pass_v from_o one_o parish_n to_o another_o for_o there_o be_v scarce_o any_o bishopric_n or_o ecclesiastical_a dignity_n or_o parish_n church_n that_o be_v not_o become_v litigious_a by_o which_o mean_v all_o process_n be_v broughe_v to_o rome_n but_o not_o with_o empty_a hand_n rejoice_v our_o mother_n rome_n for_o the_o floodgate_n of_o the_o treasury_n be_v open_v upon_o the_o earth_n to_o the_o end_n the_o river_n may_v flow_v to_o thou_o and_o thou_o may_v heap_v money_n in_o great_a abundance_n make_v thyself_o merry_a upon_o the_o iniquity_n of_o the_o child_n of_o man_n the_o price_n be_v give_v to_o thou_o as_o a_o recompense_n of_o so_o many_o evil_n take_v comfort_n in_o discord_n thy_o best_a friend_n because_o it_o be_v break_v lose_v from_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n of_o hell_n that_o the_o heap_n of_o thy_o treasure_n may_v be_v raise_v to_o the_o top_n thou_o have_v that_o thou_o have_v long_o thirst_v after_o sing_v a_o song_n for_o through_o the_o envy_n of_o man_n and_o not_o thy_o own_o religion_n thou_o have_v overcome_v the_o world_n it_o be_v not_o for_o devotion_n or_o pure_a conscience_n that_o man_n draw_v unto_o thou_o but_o through_o the_o multiplicity_n of_o evil_n the_o decide_n of_o controversy_n and_o all_o for_o money_n and_o this_o be_v of_o the_o entrance_n of_o innocent_a the_o three_o that_o he_o speak_v and_o here_o end_v the_o annal_n of_o baronius_n neither_o let_v we_o omit_v the_o affair_n of_o the_o east_n under_o the_o schism_n of_o alexander_n the_o three_o and_o victor_n alexander_n send_v a_o legate_n into_o palestina_n that_o he_o may_v there_o be_v acknowledge_v pope_n so_o the_o two_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n and_o jerusalem_n with_o the_o king_n and_o his_o baron_n assemble_v together_o to_o consult_v thereon_o the_o king_n advice_n be_v to_o admit_v neither_o the_o one_o nor_o the_o other_o 29._o guilielm_n tyrius_n l._n 18._o c._n 29._o and_o to_o permit_v the_o legate_n only_a sine_fw-la insignibus_fw-la legationis_fw-la without_o the_o mark_n of_o his_o legation_n to_o visit_v the_o holy_a place_n as_o a_o pilgrim_n if_o he_o think_v good_a thereof_o and_o present_o to_o return_v again_o for_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o a_o legate_n in_o the_o kingdom_n that_o serve_v to_o no_o other_o use_n but_o to_o burden_n the_o church_n with_o a_o great_a charge_n and_o to_o impoverish_v they_o with_o extortion_n but_o the_o great_a number_n carry_v it_o that_o he_o be_v receive_v whereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o to_o those_o to_o who_o he_o be_v best_o welcome_v his_o long_a continuance_n be_v burdensome_a 50._o progression_n the_o contention_n between_o philip_n and_o otho_n procure_v by_o pope_n innocent_n of_o the_o pride_n and_o presumption_n of_o the_o say_v innocent_a and_o the_o bold_a decree_n he_o make_v of_o his_o intrusion_n in_o england_n and_o the_o many_o trouble_v he_o procure_v john_n than_o king_n thereof_o after_o he_o have_v excommunicate_v he_o of_o the_o submission_n in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o say_a king_n who_o resign_v his_o crown_n and_o kingdom_n and_o become_v tributary_n to_o the_o pope_n of_o the_o first_o beginning_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n of_o the_o two_o order_n of_o s._n francis_n and_o s._n dominick_n and_o the_o blasphemous_a comparison_n and_o opinion_n conceive_v of_o they_o now_o as_o innocent_a have_v kindle_v the_o war_n between_o philip_n and_o otho_n he_o take_v this_o man_n part_n against_o the_o other_o and_o the_o worse_a true_o if_o we_o may_v give_v credit_n to_o the_o abbot_n of_o vrsperge_n for_o he_o be_v say_v he_o proud_a and_o foolish_a but_o account_v the_o more_o valiant_a to_o establish_v he_o he_o omit_v nothing_o send_v to_o the_o bishop_n and_o prince_n of_o germany_n to_o obey_v he_o and_o absolve_v they_o of_o their_o oath_n towards_o philip_n and_o will_v not_o give_v the_o pall_n to_o any_o archbishop_n unless_o by_o oath_n he_o will_v acknowledge_v he_o he_o make_v his_o legate_n to_o crown_v he_o in_o germany_n and_o excommunicate_v and_o disgrade_v adulphus_n bishop_n of_o collen_n for_o crown_v philip._n but_o as_o he_o understand_v that_o philip_n have_v win_v the_o field_n and_o that_o in_o diverse_a other_o battle_n otho_n be_v always_o overcome_v procure_v a_o treaty_n of_o peace_n through_o the_o mediation_n of_o hugoline_n bishop_n of_o ostia_n and_o leo_n cardinal_n of_o the_o holy_a cross_n and_o the_o condition_n be_v that_o otho_n shall_v marry_v the_o daughter_n of_o philip_n and_o relinquish_v the_o title_n of_o the_o realm_n during_o his_o life_n and_o after_o his_o death_n to_o succeed_v he_o but_o philip_n continue_v not_o long_o for_o return_v from_o saxony_n into_o swevia_n while_o he_o stay_v at_o banbridge_n for_o his_o ease_n and_o the_o recovery_n of_o his_o health_n be_v let_v blood_n in_o both_o his_o arm_n and_o be_v at_o rest_n in_o his_o chamber_n accompany_v with_o a_o few_o of_o his_o own_o domestical_a servant_n otho_n palatine_n of_o witelspach_n accompany_v with_o certain_a servant_n of_o the_o bishop_n rush_v in_o with_o his_o sword_n draw_v &_o kill_v he_o though_o in_o vain_a his_o chamberlain_n seek_v to_o defend_v here_o the_o abbot_n of_o vrsperge_n note_v that_o innocent_a have_v break_v the_o lawful_a election_n of_o luitpold_a bishop_n of_o mence_n in_o hatred_n of_o philip_n which_o in_o the_o chapter_n bonae_fw-la memoriae_fw-la extr._n de_fw-la electis_fw-la be_v to_o be_v read_v non_fw-fr iudician_n facientem_fw-la chro._n abbas_n vispergen_v in_o chro._n say_v he_o sed_fw-la iniuriam_fw-la not_o do_v justice_n but_o injury_n he_o add_v that_o this_o peace_n be_v make_v as_o he_o understand_v of_o credible_a person_n because_o it_o be_v promise_v the_o pope_n that_o king_n philip_n daughter_n shall_v marry_v his_o nephew_n his_o brother_n richard_n son_n who_o he_o have_v late_o make_v a_o earl_n some_o say_v he_o be_v his_o bastard_n and_o therefore_o resolve_v with_o himself_o not_o to_o request_v the_o land_n which_o his_o predecessor_n often_o use_v to_o demand_v of_o the_o emperor_n both_o in_o tuscan_a spoleto_n and_o ancona_n hope_v they_o shall_v come_v into_o his_o nephew_n possession_n through_o the_o aforesaid_a marriage_n and_o so_o philip_n leave_v otho_n to_o succeed_v he_o a_o man_n qualify_v with_o many_o virtue_n as_o vrsperg_n who_o live_v at_o that_o time_n often_o report_v namely_o for_o his_o great_a clemency_n and_o gentleness_n for_o which_o good_a condition_n he_o be_v never_o the_o better_a thought_n of_o by_o the_o pope_n but_o let_v we_o see_v whether_o otho_n who_o the_o pope_n have_v defend_v against_o philip_n find_v he_o more_o propitious_a when_o he_o challenge_v to_o himself_o the_o right_n of_o the_o empire_n in_o the_o year_n 1209_o otho_n therefore_o convey_v his_o army_n into_o italy_n be_v entertain_v with_o great_a applause_n of_o the_o people_n 1209._o an._n 1209._o receive_v the_o crown_n of_o iron_n at_o milan_n from_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o archbishop_n and_o so_o go_v to_o rome_n to_o be_v crown_v with_o the_o imperial_a diadem_n and_o hitherto_o agree_v well_o with_o innocent_a but_o trust_v to_o the_o counsel_n of_o his_o lawyer_n he_o go_v about_o to_o search_v the_o right_n of_o his_o empire_n in_o tuscan_a and_o to_o recover_v into_o his_o hand_n the_o town_n which_o through_o the_o vacancy_n of_o the_o empire_n the_o pope_n have_v draw_v unto_o themselves_o in_o prejudice_n of_o the_o empire_n whereupon_o innocent_a present_o threaten_v he_o with_o ecclesiastical_a censure_n notwithstanding_o otho_n proceed_v in_o his_o purpose_n take_v viterbe_n montefiascone_n oruieto_fw-la perusia_n and_o all_o that_o be_v account_v the_o patrimony_n of_o mathilda_n moreover_o he_o give_v the_o dukedom_n of_o spoleto_n to_o bertaldus_n his_o favourite_n that_o do_v he_o return_v into_o lombardie_n to_o suppress_v and_o hinder_v new_a revolt_n there_o now_o therefore_o innocent_a upon_o new_a consultation_n be_v resolve_v to_o serve_v his_o turn_n by_o the_o mean_n of_o young_a frederic_n his_o pupil_n king_n of_o sicilia_n who_o he_o cause_v to_o go_v into_o germany_n recommend_v unto_o they_o with_o the_o remembrance_n of_o his_o father_n and_o grandfather_n henry_n and_o frederic_n the_o first_o there_o to_o molest_v otho_n and_o to_o cause_v he_o to_o forsake_v italy_n otho_n be_v otherwise_o not_o great_o belove_v of_o the_o prince_n 7._o auent_n l._n 7._o nor_o much_o esteem_v for_o his_o virtue_n so_o that_o not_o long_o after_o be_v enforce_v to_o go_v into_o saxony_n be_v declare_v through_o all_o
italy_n a_o enemy_n to_o the_o church_n and_o those_o that_o take_v his_o part_n namely_o the_o milanese_n and_o their_o adherent_n be_v exclude_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n innocent_n die_v in_o the_o year_n 1216_o and_o otho_n in_o the_o year_n 1218_o who_o as_o a_o argument_n of_o repentance_n leave_v by_o testament_n the_o ensign_n of_o the_o empire_n to_o young_a frederic_n krantzius_n speak_v of_o the_o cause_n of_o discord_n between_o otho_n and_o innocent_n although_o for_o the_o most_o part_n incline_v towards_o the_o pope_n 34._o krantz_n l._n ●_o c._n 33._o &_o 34._o say_v that_o the_o emperor_n demand_v through_o italy_n the_o ancient_a right_n of_o the_o empire_n whereof_o long_o since_o some_o of_o they_o be_v transfer_v to_o the_o church_n he_o also_o challenge_v that_o great_a inheritance_n of_o mathilda_n a_o woman_n of_o great_a estate_n in_o italy_n as_o appertain_v unto_o he_o by_o a_o double_a right_n for_o he_o seem_v to_o be_v the_o heir_n of_o his_o aunt_n who_o descend_v from_o the_o marquess_n of_o saxony_n and_o also_o as_o fall_v to_o the_o empire_n for_o want_v of_o heir_n and_o hereupon_o innocent_a say_v he_o exhort_v the_o prince_n elector_n that_o forasmuch_o as_o he_o have_v cast_v off_o otho_n first_o excommunicate_v and_o then_o depose_v to_o choose_v unto_o the_o empire_n another_o prince_n offer_v unto_o they_o frederic_n of_o the_o age_n of_o 20_o year_n of_o who_o although_o he_o have_v the_o administration_n of_o his_o gardenship_n he_o covert_v all_o to_o his_o own_o profit_n for_o the_o continuor_n of_o the_o holy_a war_n say_v frederic_n be_v yet_o a_o child_n and_o a_o pupil_n 10._o continuator_fw-la belli_fw-la sacri_fw-la l._n 3._o c._n 10._o be_v deprive_v by_o innocent_a his_o tutor_n of_o the_o inheritance_n of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o be_v free_a be_v make_v tributorie_a without_o respect_n either_o of_o the_o prayer_n of_o henry_n his_o father_n or_o constance_n his_o mother_n or_o his_o own_o promise_n make_v unto_o they_o 6._o blond_n decad._n 2._o l._n 6._o blondus_n note_v two_o bold_a decree_n of_o this_o pope_n the_o first_o so_o often_o as_o one_o prince_n shall_v offend_v another_o that_o the_o correction_n shall_v belong_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o which_o be_v do_v upon_o the_o difference_n between_o the_o king_n of_o france_n and_o england_n and_o be_v insert_v into_o the_o decretal_n the_o second_o that_o two_o strive_v for_o the_o empire_n have_v voice_n alike_o venerabilem_fw-la extra_n de_fw-fr election_n c._n venerabilem_fw-la he_o who_o the_o pope_n allow_v shall_v be_v prefer_v which_o be_v there_o red_a and_o put_v in_o practice_n in_o favour_n of_o otho_n the_o four_o and_o ought_v to_o be_v receyve_v as_o lawful_a &_o by_o this_o mean_v he_o be_v make_v the_o arbitrator_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n but_o the_o book_n especial_o write_v by_o himself_o do_v testify_v how_o much_o this_o mystery_n do_v prick_v he_o forward_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n say_v he_o papae_fw-la innocentius_n 3._o ser_n in_o festo_fw-la syluestri_n papae_fw-la use_v the_o globe_n in_o sign_n of_o empire_n the_o globe_n be_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o empire_n &_o use_v the_o mytre_n in_o sign_n of_o his_o popedom_n but_o the_o mytre_n he_o use_v always_o and_o every_o where_n but_o the_o kingdom_n neither_o every_o where_n nor_o always_o because_o the_o papal_a authority_n be_v both_o the_o first_o and_o the_o worthy_a and_o further_o spread_v than_o the_o imperial_a for_o among_o the_o people_n of_o god_n the_o priesthood_n go_v before_o the_o kingdom_n when_o aaron_n the_o first_o priest_n go_v before_o saul_n the_o first_o king_n papae_fw-la jdem_fw-la serm._n 1._o in_o festo_fw-la gregorij_fw-la papae_fw-la noah_n also_o be_v before_o nembroth_n when_o of_o he_o the_o scripture_n say_v that_o babylon_n be_v the_o beginning_n of_o nembroth_n but_o noah_n build_v a_o altar_n to_o the_o lord_n and_o offer_v sacrifice_n upon_o it_o but_o speak_v of_o the_o priest_n and_o king_n he_o call_v the_o priest_n god_n and_o the_o king_n prince_n from_o the_o god_n he_o say_v thou_o shall_v not_o detract_v and_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o people_n thou_o shall_v not_o curse_v and_o when_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o the_o king_n all_o humane_a creature_n be_v you_o subject_a even_o for_o god_n cause_n to_o your_o king_n as_o the_o most_o excellent_a or_o to_o you_o leader_n as_o send_v by_o he_o the_o lord_n say_v to_o hieremie_n the_o priest_n of_o the_o priest_n of_o anatoth_o i_o have_v appoint_v thou_o over_o nation_n and_o kingdom_n that_o thou_o may_v pull_v down_o and_o destroy_v build_v and_o plant_v etc._n etc._n but_o to_o peter_n especial_o he_o say_v thou_o shall_v be_v call_v cephas_n that_o be_v to_o say_v head_n wherein_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o sense_n consist_v who_o do_v ever_o read_v such_o divinity_n and_o yet_o behold_v there_o be_v worse_o when_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n say_v unto_o s._n peter_n duc_n in_o altum_fw-la petri._n jdem_fw-la in_o serm._n 2._o de_fw-fr festo_fw-la sancti_fw-la petri._n cast_v into_o the_o deep_a this_o deep_a sea_n be_v rome_n which_o obtain_v and_o hold_v the_o priority_n and_o principality_n above_o all_o the_o world_n as_o if_o he_o say_v go_v to_o rome_n and_o transport_v thyself_o with_o all_o thou_o to_o the_o city_n there_o cast_v thy_o net_n abroad_o to_o take_v in_o another_o place_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n owe_v not_o any_o reverence_n to_o any_o person_n but_o the_o pope_n who_o have_v no_o superior_a but_o god_n but_o yet_o see_v here_o his_o companion_n and_o corrival_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n say_v he_o have_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n his_o spouse_n and_o yet_o bring_v in_o other_o church_n subject_n unto_o he_o this_o be_v the_o first_o that_o i_o know_v that_o have_v go_v so_o far_o as_o to_o call_v himself_o the_o spouse_n of_o the_o church_n arrogate_a to_o himself_o the_o true_a and_o incommunicable_a title_n of_o the_o lord_n who_o be_v the_o true_a and_o only_a spouse_n of_o the_o true_a church_n and_o therefore_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n can_v be_v the_o true_a church_n if_o the_o pope_n be_v her_o spouse_n nor_o the_o pope_n her_o spouse_n 237._o bernard_n ad_fw-la eugen_n epist_n 237._o if_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o true_a spouse_n let_v we_o hear_v what_o s._n bernard_n say_v write_v to_o pope_n eugenius_n it_o remain_v now_o that_o thou_o take_v care_n that_o the_o spouse_n of_o thy_o lord_n who_o be_v commit_v to_o thou_o be_v make_v the_o better_a by_o thou_o if_o thou_o be_v a_o friend_n of_o the_o spouse_n thou_o shall_v not_o call_v his_o belove_a my_o princess_n but_o princess_n challenge_v nothing_o to_o thyself_o in_o she_o unless_o if_o occasion_n be_v to_o give_v thy_o life_n for_o she_o if_o christ_n have_v send_v thou_o thou_o must_v make_v account_n thou_o be_v send_v to_o serve_v and_o not_o to_o be_v serve_v can_v a_o man_n think_v that_o it_o be_v sufficient_o excuse_v by_o that_o poor_a distinction_n of_o bellarmine_n 31._o bellarmin_n de_fw-fr romano_n pontif_n l._n 2._o 31._o of_o a_o principal_a or_o subaltern_a spouse_n i_o omit_v his_o comparison_n of_o the_o two_o light_n which_o god_n have_v place_v in_o the_o firmament_n the_o sun_n and_o the_o moon_n the_o sun_n he_o compare_v to_o the_o pope_n the_o moon_n to_o the_o emperor_n for_o doubtless_o he_o that_o fear_v not_o to_o violat_a the_o commandment_n of_o christ_n himself_o the_o king_n of_o king_n we_o may_v think_v he_o will_v little_o spare_v the_o prince_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o true_o under_o the_o pretence_n of_o this_o spiritual_a authority_n he_o require_v at_o the_o same_o time_n the_o temporal_a homage_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o england_n for_o there_o be_v a_o controversy_n between_o the_o bishop_n suffragans_fw-la of_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canturburie_n and_o the_o monk_n touch_v the_o election_n of_o the_o archbishop_n the_o monk_n pretend_v that_o they_o only_o ought_v to_o choose_v he_o and_o the_o bishop_n say_v they_o can_v not_o do_v it_o without_o they_o both_o of_o they_o come_v to_o rome_n innocent_n persuade_v the_o proctor_n of_o the_o monk_n to_o choose_v stephen_n lanthon_n a_o cardinal_n priest_n his_o servant_n and_o albeit_o they_o protest_v they_o can_v not_o do_v it_o without_o the_o king_n and_o their_o convent_n be_v overbear_v with_o his_o threat_n of_o excommunication_n he_o overcome_v they_o and_o pronounce_v sentence_n for_o the_o monk_n against_o the_o bishop_n give_v the_o monk_n likewise_o to_o understand_v that_o he_o will_v excommunicate_a they_o if_o they_o obey_v not_o his_o decree_n king_n john_n who_o then_o reign_v be_v much_o offend_v as_o well_o because_o innocent_n have_v say_v 216._o math._n paris_n in_o johan_n p._n 216._o that_o it_o be_v
know_v multiplici_fw-la experiencia_fw-la by_o dear_a experience_n johan_n math._n paris_n in_o johan_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v ambitious_a and_o proud_a above_o all_o man_n live_v and_o a_o insatiable_a thirster_n after_o money_n et_fw-la ad_fw-la omne_fw-la scelera_fw-la pro_fw-la praemijs_fw-la datis_fw-la vel_fw-la promissis_fw-la cereus_fw-la &_o procliws_fw-la prone_a to_o all_o wickedness_n whatsoever_o for_o reward_n either_o promise_v or_o give_v be_v resolve_v to_o make_v a_o benefit_n of_o this_o his_o ill_a fortune_n purpose_v with_o himself_o a_o revenge_n of_o the_o baron_n and_o bishop_n of_o the_o kingdom_n with_o the_o good_a like_n and_o leave_n of_o innocent_a nay_o he_o be_v the_o author_n whereupon_o he_o send_v ambassador_n unto_o he_o who_o carry_v with_o they_o a_o great_a part_n of_o his_o treasure_n and_o withal_o promise_a more_o swear_v unto_o he_o that_o he_o will_v always_o be_v his_o subject_n and_o tributary_n unto_o he_o so_o that_o he_o will_v find_v some_o subtle_a occasion_n to_o excommunicate_a his_o baron_n and_o bishop_n especial_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canturburie_n for_o who_o the_o pope_n have_v so_o much_o molest_v he_o nicholas_n bishop_n of_o tuscule_n his_o legate_n come_v into_o england_n to_o release_v the_o interdict_v that_o have_v continue_v six_o year_n three_o month_n and_o fourteen_o day_n to_o the_o irrevocable_a loss_n say_v the_o author_n of_o the_o church_n both_o in_o temporal_a matter_n and_o in_o spiritual_a john_n give_v he_o this_o infamous_a resignation_n of_o his_o realm_n no_o more_o in_o wax_n as_o to_o pandolph_n but_o seal_v in_o gold_n and_o because_o there_o be_v make_v a_o question_n of_o the_o loss_n which_o the_o bishop_n have_v receive_v the_o legate_n in_o favour_n of_o the_o king_n defer_v it_o to_o a_o far_a day_n but_o innocent_a who_o desire_v to_o gratify_v the_o king_n by_o his_o legate_n of_o all_o the_o vacant_a church_n to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canturburie_n intrusione_n magis_fw-la quàm_fw-la electione_n canonica_fw-la disponit_fw-la dispose_v of_o they_o rather_o by_o intrusion_n than_o canonical_a election_n hereupon_o this_o archbishop_n appeal_v but_o the_o legate_n reject_v his_o appeal_v &_o proceed_v in_o his_o purpose_n and_o innocent_o ratify_v the_o act_n of_o his_o legate_n speak_v now_o of_o nothing_o but_o the_o praise_n and_o commendation_n of_o the_o prince_n the_o baron_n they_o assemble_v to_o demand_v their_o liberty_n with_o who_o also_o join_v the_o city_n of_o london_n the_o pope_n as_o the_o chief_a lord_n revoke_v they_o and_o because_o they_o will_v not_o present_o obey_v he_o excommunicate_v they_o and_o stir_v up_o all_o the_o subject_n of_o the_o realm_n against_o they_o promise_v they_o remission_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o include_v in_o the_o same_o excommunication_n all_o the_o bishop_n that_o delay_v to_o publish_v the_o anatheme_n but_o because_o stephen_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n have_v late_o be_v his_o favourite_n declare_v that_o he_o can_v not_o publish_v it_o before_o he_o have_v see_v the_o pope_n and_o be_v ready_a to_o take_v ship_v for_o the_o council_n assign_v at_o rome_n because_o tacita_fw-la veritate_fw-la sententia_fw-la erat_fw-la in_o barones_n lata_fw-la the_o sentence_n be_v pronounce_v against_o the_o baron_n truth_n itself_o be_v silent_a the_o bishop_n of_o winchester_n &_o pandolph_n the_o legate_n the_o executioner_n of_o this_o sentence_n forbid_v he_o the_o church_n and_o suspend_v he_o from_o the_o celebration_n of_o his_o office_n of_o so_o great_a force_n and_o efficacy_n be_v the_o money_n king_n john_n pour_v into_o the_o lap_n of_o the_o pope_n but_o beside_o he_o be_v no_o soon_o come_v to_o rome_n but_o the_o sentence_n of_o suspension_n be_v confirm_v by_o innocent_a these_o proceed_n now_o put_v the_o baron_n of_o england_n into_o despair_n who_o say_v the_o history_n see_v all_o hope_n of_o their_o good_a to_o be_v take_v away_o and_o know_v not_o what_o to_o do_v johan_n matth._n paris_n in_o johan_n curse_v the_o fraud_n and_o infidelity_n of_o the_o king_n woe_n be_v to_o thou_o o_o john_n say_v they_o the_o last_o of_o the_o king_n the_o abomination_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o england_n the_o confusion_n of_o the_o english_a nobility_n o_o miserable_a england_n be_v now_o waste_v and_o ready_a to_o be_v more_o waste_v and_o destroy_v o_o woeful_a england_n england_n that_o hitherto_o have_v be_v the_o prince_n of_o province_n in_o all_o good_a thing_n be_v make_v tributary_n not_o only_o subject_a to_o fire_n famine_n and_o sword_n but_o to_o the_o empire_n and_o command_n of_o base_a slave_n and_o stranger_n though_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o unhappy_a than_o to_o be_v enthrall_v to_o such_o people_n we_o read_v that_o many_o other_o king_n yea_o and_o but_o petty_a king_n too_o have_v fight_v for_o the_o liberty_n of_o their_o country_n even_o to_o death_n but_o thou_o john_n of_o a_o mournful_a memory_n to_o all_o posterity_n thy_o country_n that_o have_v be_v free_a for_o many_o year_n thou_o have_v find_v the_o mean_a to_o bring_v it_o into_o bondage_n and_o employ_v thy_o endeavour_n to_o draw_v other_o with_o thou_o into_o slavery_n thou_o have_v first_o debast_n thyself_o be_v make_v of_o a_o free_a king_n a_o tributary_n and_o a_o vessel_n of_o servitude_n thou_o have_v bind_v the_o noble_a of_o all_o country_n with_o a_o band_n of_o eternal_a slavery_n never_o to_o be_v free_v from_o servile_a fetter_n unless_o he_o have_v pity_n upon_o we_o and_o the_o whole_a world_n we_o i_o say_v who_o ancient_a servitude_n have_v hold_v under_o the_o yoke_n of_o sin_n vouchsafe_v at_o the_o last_o to_o set_v we_o at_o liberty_n neither_o do_v they_o less_o complain_v of_o the_o pope_n thou_o say_v they_o who_o ought_v to_o be_v a_o example_n of_o light_n to_o the_o whole_a world_n the_o father_n of_o sanctity_n the_o mirror_n of_o piety_n the_o defender_n of_o justice_n the_o keeper_n of_o verity_n consente_v thou_o to_o such_o a_o thing_n do_v thou_o approve_v and_o defend_v such_o a_o man_n but_o doubtless_o thou_o defende_v he_o because_o he_o have_v exhaust_v the_o money_n of_o england_n exact_v upon_o the_o english_a nobility_n to_o the_o end_n that_o all_o this_o may_v be_v swallow_v up_o in_o the_o gulf_n of_o the_o roman_a avarice_n but_o this_o cause_n and_o excuse_n be_v a_o offence_n and_o accusation_n before_o god_n in_o the_o end_n they_o resolve_v to_o make_v choice_n of_o some_o potent_a prince_n to_o be_v their_o king_n who_o may_v restore_v unto_o they_o their_o ancient_a possession_n and_o liberty_n and_o this_o be_v lewis_n the_o son_n of_o philip_n augustus_n the_o father_n afterward_o of_o s._n lewis_n to_o who_o they_o send_v twenty_o four_o hostage_n to_o assure_v he_o the_o kingdom_n which_o he_o accept_v innocent_a understanding_n hereof_o send_v waldo_n his_o legate_n to_o philip_n into_o france_n will_v he_o that_o he_o suffer_v not_o his_o son_n to_o trouble_v england_n nor_o john_n the_o king_n but_o rather_o to_o defend_v he_o as_o a_o vassal_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o england_n as_o the_o demaine_n thereof_o philip_n plain_o tell_v he_o that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o england_n never_o be_v the_o patrimony_n of_o s._n peter_n nor_o be_v nor_o ever_o shall_v be_v and_o that_o john_n condemn_v of_o treason_n against_o his_o brother_n richard_n be_v not_o nor_o ever_o be_v the_o true_a and_o lawful_a king_n nor_o can_v give_v the_o kingdom_n although_o he_o have_v aspire_v to_o the_o crown_n by_o the_o murder_n of_o arthur_n for_o which_o he_o be_v condemn_v in_o his_o own_o court._n moreover_o no_o king_n or_o prince_n can_v give_v away_o his_o kingdom_n without_o the_o consent_n of_o his_o baron_n who_o be_v bind_v to_o defend_v it_o and_o if_o the_o pope_n be_v determine_v to_o defend_v such_o a_o error_n he_o will_v give_v a_o most_o pernicious_a example_n to_o all_o kingdom_n all_o the_o nobility_n therefore_o of_o the_o kingdom_n cry_v out_o with_o one_o voice_n that_o for_o this_o point_n they_o will_v fight_v even_o to_o death_n this_o be_v at_o lion_n a_o little_a after_o easter_n in_o the_o year_n 1216._o 1216._o an._n 1216._o the_o day_n follow_v philip_n give_v the_o legate_n audience_n command_v his_o son_n lewis_n to_o be_v present_a where_o all_o this_o business_n be_v again_o dispute_v the_o legate_n notwithstanding_o all_o these_o reason_n forbid_v lewis_n to_o enter_v into_o england_n and_o threaten_v the_o father_n under_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n not_o to_o permit_v he_o whereupon_o lewis_n depart_v the_o legate_n demand_v of_o philip_n safe_a conduct_n for_o himself_o which_o philip_n willing_o grant_v unto_o he_o by_o his_o letter_n but_o if_o perhaps_o say_v he_o you_o fall_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o monk_n of_o eustachius_n or_o any_o other_o belong_v unto_o lewis_n which_o keep_v the_o
they_o at_o pamiers_n and_o of_o the_o part_n of_o the_o albigense_n be_v defendant_n theodore_n before_o canon_n of_o nevers_n baldwin_n and_o bernard_n of_o simorre_n and_o other_o but_o their_o adversary_n hide_v from_o we_o here_o the_o point_n in_o controversy_n in_o these_o conference_n if_o they_o have_v be_v manichee_n gnosticke_n cathare_n montanistes_n adamite_n as_o they_o will_v make_v man_n believe_v they_o be_v no_o doubt_n they_o will_v not_o have_v omit_v they_o but_o when_o these_o conference_n do_v little_o satisfy_v the_o lord_n and_o that_o the_o people_n be_v nothing_o move_v at_o the_o preach_n of_o dominicus_n who_o the_o pope_n have_v be_v as_o he_o say_v warn_v in_o a_o dream_n have_v choose_v to_o uphold_v his_o palace_n of_o lateran_n that_o otherwise_o be_v ready_a to_o fall_v to_o ruin_v he_o have_v recourse_n to_o other_o counsel_n which_o these_o fore-proceeding_n do_v but_o colour_n for_o form_n sake_n he_o therefore_o excommunicate_v earl_n raymund_n who_o authority_n be_v chief_a expose_v his_o country_n for_o a_o prey_n discharge_v and_o absolu_v all_o man_n that_o be_v bind_v unto_o he_o by_o necessity_n league_n or_o other_o covenant_n from_o that_o bond_n and_o from_o their_o oath_n of_o fidelity_n and_o that_o by_o apostolic_a authority_n affirm_v that_o to_o he_o that_o have_v not_o keep_v his_o faith_n with_o god_n faith_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v keep_v and_o also_o give_v leave_n to_o all_o man_n to_o attempt_v against_o his_o person_n and_o against_o all_o the_o albigense_n no_o less_o than_o against_o the_o saracen_n large_o promise_v they_o the_o like_a indulgence_n insomuch_o also_o that_o the_o money_n that_o have_v be_v appoint_v for_o the_o holy_a war_n be_v turn_v to_o the_o slaughter_n of_o christian_n the_o cross_n which_o in_o time_n past_a be_v at_o least_o in_o pretence_n assume_v against_o the_o infidel_n be_v now_o take_v up_o for_o to_o crucify_v christ_n in_o his_o member_n by_o a_o new_a and_o horrible_a example_n so_o that_o such_o be_v the_o fury_n or_o ignorance_n of_o that_o age_n he_o incite_v many_o prince_n lord_n and_o prelate_n to_o assemble_v themselves_o on_o all_o part_n to_o set_v upon_o they_o who_o may_v better_v cheap_a and_o easy_o expiate_v their_o vice_n with_o the_o damage_n of_o this_o people_n than_o by_o fight_v against_o the_o saracen_n in_o the_o holy_a land_n at_o their_o come_n with_o the_o fright_n of_o this_o deluge_n earl_n raymund_n be_v astonish_v and_o promise_v obedience_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o mark_v here_o the_o manner_n almarick_n the_o pope_n legate_n general_n of_o this_o army_n drag_v he_o into_o the_o church_n by_o a_o steal_v cast_v about_o his_o neck_n and_o with_o scourge_n from_o thence_o the_o country_n be_v lay_v waist_n town_n be_v sack_v and_o all_o place_n fill_v with_o slaughter_n fire_n and_o ruin_n nevertheless_o the_o albigense_n courage_n fail_v not_o utter_o but_o many_o time_n renew_v the_o war_n earl_n raymund_n also_o after_o this_o so_o great_a disgrace_n find_v himself_o no_o gently_o use_v by_o the_o pope_n take_v arm_n again_o with_o they_o assist_v with_o the_o earl_n of_o foix_n and_o of_o comminges_n till_o such_o time_n as_o there_o come_v new_a supply_n from_o all_o part_n of_o bishop_n and_o lord_n of_o france_n into_o the_o pope_n army_n sign_v with_o cross_n earl_n raymund_n be_v constrain_v to_o withdraw_v himself_o into_o arragon_n and_o the_o albigense_n force_v to_o forsake_v the_o champain_n country_n and_o fly_v unto_o the_o mountain_n and_o some_o unwarlike_a family_n to_o seek_v new_a country_n to_o inhabit_v mean_a time_n it_o be_v here_o to_o be_v note_v that_o although_o this_o war_n be_v make_v in_o france_n yet_o king_n philip_n augustus_n be_v not_o the_o head_n thereof_o but_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o legate_n who_o make_v it_o his_o own_o conquest_n that_o be_v win_v in_o this_o war_n the_o king_n only_o suffer_v his_o subject_n to_o enrol_v themselves_o for_o the_o pope_n war_n and_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o kingdom_n to_o lead_v troop_n of_o soldier_n thither_o 1215._o an._n 1215._o for_o in_o the_o year_n 1215_o peter_n benevent_v the_o pope_n legate_n in_o a_o synod_n hold_v at_o monpellier_n in_o the_o name_n of_o innocent_a appoint_v simon_n earl_n of_o montfort_n prince_n and_o lord_n of_o his_o conquest_n other_o say_v guardian_n until_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n shall_v more_o full_o determine_v of_o it_o the_o albigeois_n history_n also_o note_v that_o lewis_n the_o king_n elder_a son_n come_v at_o that_o time_n into_o the_o army_n the_o legate_n be_v not_o well_o please_v at_o it_o fear_v lest_o he_o will_v dispose_v of_o the_o land_n by_o right_a of_o war_n get_v to_o the_o pope_n which_o the_o sovereign_a lord_n himself_o have_v so_o long_a time_n abandon_v to_o the_o poison_n of_o heresy_n therefore_o in_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n the_o pope_n pronounce_v simon_n earl_n montfort_n lord_n of_o all_o that_o have_v be_v raymunds_n yet_o on_o condition_n that_o he_o shall_v do_v homage_n for_o it_o to_o the_o king_n which_o also_o the_o king_n admit_v but_o present_o after_o all_o the_o town_n from_o auignon_n to_o thoulouse_n revolt_v from_o simon_n to_o raymund_n his_o son_n and_o by_o this_o mean_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o albigense_n be_v restore_v so_o that_o new_a work_n be_v make_v the_o war_n reviue_v again_o bishop_n and_o cross_v soldier_n send_v for_o from_o all_o part_n and_o while_o they_o lose_v in_o one_o place_n and_o gain_v victory_n in_o another_o the_o earl_n of_o montfort_n have_v nine_o month_n besiege_v the_o city_n of_o thoulouse_n in_o a_o sally_n receive_v a_o blow_n with_o a_o stone_n whereof_o the_o same_o day_n he_o die_v so_o that_o the_o city_n be_v deliver_v from_o siege_n and_o the_o albigense_n get_v the_o upperhand_n this_o simon_n de_fw-fr montfort_n be_v indeed_o a_o man_n of_o courage_n and_o a_o great_a captain_n but_o particular_o note_v of_o ignorance_n which_o perpetual_a enemy_n of_o truth_n we_o have_v also_o find_v in_o our_o day_n so_o as_o they_o only_o have_v persecute_v it_o as_o never_o have_v nor_o will_v have_v the_o care_n to_o search_v after_o it_o and_o thus_o much_o brieflly_n out_o of_o the_o albigense_n history_n of_o peter_n des_fw-fr vallee_n and_o out_o of_o the_o chronicle_n of_o montfort_n itself_o in_o the_o mean_a season_n whether_o it_o be_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o dispersion_n of_o the_o waldense_n or_o for_o that_o in_o other_o province_n god_n have_v make_v the_o truth_n know_v at_o the_o same_o time_n in_o diverse_a place_n the_o like_a sermon_n be_v hear_v and_o by_o consequence_n have_v the_o like_a persecution_n 41._o chronic._n hirsaug_n naucler_n 2._o vol._n gener._n 41._o for_o trithemius_n and_o other_o both_o before_o and_o after_o he_o recite_v that_o in_o the_o city_n of_o strasbourge_n for_o the_o same_o be_v burn_v to_o the_o number_n of_o fourscore_o and_o in_o the_o country_n about_o it_o be_v slay_v a_o hundred_o in_o one_o day_n nauclerus_fw-la say_v that_o in_o italy_n this_o doctrine_n which_o he_o call_v heresy_n wonderful_o increase_v as_o well_o among_o the_o nobility_n as_o the_o common_a people_n and_o that_o every_o year_n they_o send_v to_o milan_n some_o collection_n for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o their_o teacher_n bruschius_n say_v that_o at_o mentz_n be_v burn_v nine_o and_o thirty_o and_o from_o this_o time_n forth_o nothing_o be_v more_o frequent_a these_o ash_n have_v be_v as_o it_o be_v by_o the_o breath_n of_o god_n spirit_n strew_v into_o all_o the_o corner_n of_o europe_n and_o yet_o this_o can_v be_v ascribe_v to_o any_o connivance_n annalibus_fw-la trithem_n in_o chron._n hirsaug_fw-mi godofrid_n monach_n in_o annalibus_fw-la or_o toleration_n of_o it_o for_o trithemius_n and_o the_o monk_n godfrey_n tell_v we_o plain_o that_o conrade_n of_o marpurg_n a_o apostolic_a inquisitor_n be_v w●nt_a to_o prove_v these_o man_n attaint_v of_o heresy_n if_o they_o deny_v it_o judicio_fw-la ferri_fw-la candentis_fw-la by_o touch_v of_o red_a hot_a iron_n and_o those_o who_o the_o iron_n burn_v he_o deliver_v over_o to_o the_o secular_a power_n as_o heretic_n to_o be_v burn_v so_o all_o a_o few_o except_v that_o be_v once_o accuse_v &_o bring_v to_o this_o trial_n be_v condemn_v to_o the_o fire_n some_o believe_v that_o he_o have_v condemn_v many_o innocent_n because_o the_o hot_a iron_n find_v not_o any_o free_a from_o sin_n though_o not_o infect_v with_o any_o spot_n of_o heresy_n and_o a_o few_o page_n after_o he_o add_v in_o this_o time_n many_o noble_a and_o ignoble_a clergy_n man_n monk_n nun_n burgess_n citizen_n and_o country_n people_n in_o diverse_a place_n of_o germany_n be_v under_o the_o name_n of_o heresy_n condemn_v to_o the_o fire_n by_o a_o sentence_n as_o some_o thought_n too_o
rash_a &_o headlong_o and_o that_o by_o a_o friar_n of_o marpurg_n of_o the_o order_n of_o preacher_n who_o have_v be_v appoint_v by_o the_o apostolic_a see_v general_a inquisitor_n of_o heretic_n for_o as_o one_o write_v the_o same_o day_n that_o any_o man_n be_v accuse_v whether_o just_o or_o unjust_o no_o refuge_n of_o any_o appeal_v or_o defence_n be_v able_a to_o help_v he_o he_o be_v condemn_v and_o cast_v into_o the_o cruel_a flame_n and_o a_o little_a before_o speak_v of_o the_o great_a number_n of_o they_o discover_v in_o germany_n italy_n and_o principal_o in_o lombardie_n he_o say_v they_o which_o have_v be_v take_v at_o strasbourg_n confess_v open_o before_o all_o the_o people_n and_o clergy_n that_o the_o number_n of_o they_o be_v so_o great_a that_o if_o any_o of_o they_o be_v to_o go_v from_o cologne_n to_o milan_n he_o shall_v find_v every_o night_n by_o the_o way_n a_o host_n of_o their_o sect_n and_o that_o they_o have_v little_a token_n about_o the_o door_n of_o their_o house_n and_o roof_n whereby_o they_o know_v how_o to_o find_v the_o dwelling_n of_o their_o complice_n now_o he_o ascribe_v unto_o they_o the_o enormity_n above_o refuted_a but_o i_o pray_v you_o who_o will_v believe_v that_o they_o will_v voluntary_o undergo_v the_o fire_n for_o such_o thing_n none_o other_o true_o but_o monk_n can_v write_v these_o thing_n who_o no_o man_n hardly_o will_v be_v find_v so_o sottish_a as_o to_o believe_v at_o length_n say_v trithemius_n this_o conrade_n have_v make_v himself_o hateful_a to_o all_o both_o noble_a and_o ignoble_a especial_o for_o that_o he_o persecute_v the_o earl_n of_o seine_n false_o defame_v of_o heresy_n he_o be_v slay_v not_o far_o from_o marpurge_n notwithstanding_o his_o safe_a conduct_n by_o certain_a gentleman_n who_o have_v find_v no_o place_n of_o pardon_n or_o favour_n with_o he_o whereas_o we_o say_v that_o they_o be_v principal_o in_o lombardie_n let_v we_o add_v thereto_o the_o testimony_n of_o a_o author_n of_o those_o time_n though_o a_o adversary_n in_o all_o the_o city_n say_v he_o of_o lombardie_n and_o in_o other_o kingdom_n and_o land_n they_o have_v many_o auditor_n and_o dispute_v in_o public_a and_o call_v the_o people_n to_o solemn_a station_n in_o a_o hall_n and_o in_o the_o field_n and_o preach_v on_o the_o top_n of_o house_n there_o be_v none_o that_o dare_v hinder_v they_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o power_n and_o multitude_n of_o their_o favourer_n i_o have_v be_v often_o present_a at_o the_o inquisition_n and_o at_o their_o examination_n and_o there_o have_v be_v reckon_v up_o forty_o church_n infect_v with_o their_o heresy_n and_o in_o one_o only_a parish_n of_o cammach_n be_v ten_o school_n of_o heretic_n and_o this_o so_o notable_a a_o opposition_n happen_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n so_o famous_a for_o new_a invention_n and_o of_o innocent_a the_o three_o who_o they_o be_v wont_v in_o all_o quality_n to_o compare_v with_o hildebrand_n 51._o progression_n the_o voyage_n of_o frederick_n the_o emperor_n to_o the_o holy_a land_n and_o of_o the_o affair_n and_o accident_n there_o with_o the_o wicked_a practice_n of_o pope_n gregory_n the_o nine_o against_o he_o in_o his_o absence_n &_o of_o the_o tumult_n &_o faction_n in_o italy_n stir_v up_o by_o the_o say_v gregory_n of_o his_o malicious_a mind_n towards_o the_o emperor_n and_o how_o he_o procure_v his_o own_o son_n to_o rebel_v against_o he_o of_o innocent_a the_o four_o that_o he_o depose_v the_o emperor_n frederick_n and_o corrupt_v diverse_a of_o his_o own_o domestic_a servant_n to_o poison_v he_o of_o the_o death_n of_o the_o say_a emperor_n and_o of_o his_o great_a virtue_n magnanimity_n and_o prudence_n frederick_n the_o second_o be_v sometime_o bring_v up_o under_o innocent_a the_o three_o seruantur_fw-la apud_fw-la sigon_n de_fw-fr regno_fw-la jtal._n l._n 7._o inter_fw-la literas_fw-la frederici_fw-la 2._o quae_fw-la apud_fw-la bononiens_n seruantur_fw-la as_o soon_o as_o he_o come_v to_o the_o empire_n find_v as_o little_a courtesy_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o honorius_n the_o three_o gregory_n the_o nine_o and_o innocent_a the_o four_o as_o his_o grandfather_n and_o father_n henry_n and_o frederick_n the_o first_o have_v find_v before_o at_o the_o hand_n of_o their_o predecessor_n for_o when_o as_o purpose_v with_o himself_o to_o go_v into_o italy_n in_o the_o year_n 1220_o he_o have_v send_v before_o conradus_n bishop_n of_o spires_n his_o chancellor_n with_o a_o large_a commission_n honorius_n construe_v this_o as_o a_o alarm_n and_o much_o distaste_v the_o tenor_n of_o his_o commission_n wherein_o he_o style_v himself_o king_n of_o the_o roman_n and_o sicilia_n direct_v the_o same_o to_o all_o prelate_n marquess_n and_o earl_n in_o lombardie_n romaniola_n tuscan_n and_o throughout_o all_o italy_n and_o declare_v thereby_o that_o he_o have_v send_v before_o conradus_n his_o lieutenant_n bishop_n of_o spires_n and_o chancellor_n of_o the_o empire_n to_o take_v fealty_n of_o they_o and_o other_o right_n belong_v to_o he_o without_o appeal_n to_o any_o other_o be_v so_o exceed_o offend_v thereat_o the_o rather_o for_o that_o conradus_n in_o his_o proceed_n term_v himself_o frederick_n lieutenant_n general_a throughout_o all_o italy_n that_o he_o seek_v by_o all_o mean_v he_o can_v to_o cross_v frederick_n voyage_n into_o italy_n for_o they_o of_o milan_n by_o the_o persuasion_n of_o honorius_n shut_v the_o gate_n of_o the_o city_n against_o he_o and_o other_o city_n by_o his_o procurement_n do_v the_o like_a but_o he_o set_v light_n by_o they_o pass_v on_o to_o rome_n command_v the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o city_n to_o follow_v he_o thither_o now_o because_o it_o be_v not_o safe_a for_o honorius_n to_o refuse_v the_o coronation_n of_o frederick_n who_o be_v ready_a to_o take_v the_o accustom_a oath_n he_o wrest_v another_o oath_n from_o he_o that_o by_o a_o day_n limit_v he_o shall_v make_v a_o voyage_n to_o the_o holy_a land_n desire_v nothing_o more_o than_o to_o keep_v he_o far_o from_o italy_n frederick_n therefore_o make_v a_o step_n into_o sicilia_n settle_v that_o kingdom_n and_o leave_v conradus_n in_o italy_n return_n into_o germany_n where_o he_o spend_v two_o year_n much_o to_o the_o pope_n discontentment_n but_o in_o this_o interim_n johannes_n bremensis_n king_n of_o jerusalem_n come_v to_o rome_n desire_v aid_n and_o succour_v from_o the_o pope_n to_o support_v the_o decline_a state_n of_o the_o christian_n in_o syria_n the_o pope_n embrace_v this_o opportunity_n persuade_v john_n to_o tender_a yolanda_n his_o daughter_n unto_o frederick_n and_o to_o give_v he_o with_o she_o in_o marriage_n the_o kingdom_n of_o jerusalem_n upon_o condition_n that_o he_o shall_v undertake_v to_o recover_v the_o same_o from_o the_o infidel_n which_o frederic_n accept_v of_o require_v only_o two_o year_n respite_n for_o settle_v the_o state_n of_o lombardie_n this_o be_v conclude_v on_o upon_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n which_o be_v present_o denounce_v by_o the_o cardinal_n and_o shall_v actual_o take_v effect_n upon_o frederick_n breach_n of_o covenant_n now_o while_o frederick_n for_o the_o settle_n of_o the_o affair_n of_o lombardie_n have_v assemble_v the_o estate_n and_o to_o that_o end_n have_v send_v for_o his_o son_n henry_n out_o of_o germany_n the_o confederate_a city_n of_o lombardie_n grow_v jealous_a hereof_o and_o thereupon_o combine_v themselves_o in_o a_o straight_a league_n against_o frederick_n stop_v the_o passage_n of_o henry_n and_o increase_v their_o force_n honorius_n himself_o do_v much_o mislike_v hereof_o foresee_v that_o frederick_n will_v hereby_o excuse_v the_o delay_n of_o his_o voyage_n to_o the_o holy_a land_n and_o at_o this_o time_n in_o the_o year_n 1227_o die_v honorius_n and_o cardinal_n hugoline_n 1227._o an._n 1227._o call_v gregory_n the_o nine_o succeed_v he_o who_o without_o any_o respect_n do_v so_o press_n frederick_n as_o he_o command_v all_o those_o of_o the_o croysado_n to_o be_v ready_a at_o brundisium_n on_o the_o day_n of_o the_o assumption_n where_o he_o present_o imbarke_v his_o whole_a army_n but_o fall_v sick_a after_o three_o day_n sail_v return_v back_o again_o not_o without_o some_o loss_n of_o his_o fleet_n and_o force_n whereupon_o gregory_n will_v admit_v no_o excuse_n but_o complain_v to_o all_o prince_n that_o frederick_n be_v convict_v of_o perjury_n by_o breach_n of_o his_o contract_n make_v with_o honorius_n &_o therefore_o stand_v ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la excommunicate_v on_o the_o other_o side_n frederick_z excuse_v himself_o by_o his_o letter_n yet_o extant_a in_o vrsperge_n complain_v much_o that_o the_o pope_n refuse_v to_o give_v audience_n to_o the_o cardinal_n of_o brundisium_n who_o he_o send_v of_o purpose_n to_o the_o council_n to_o make_v his_o defence_n 4._o collenutius_n ex_fw-la ricobal●_n l._n 4._o it_o be_v not_o my_o purpose_n here_o to_o justify_v
frederick_n but_o ricobaldus_n discover_v the_o ground_n of_o this_o malice_n that_o whereas_o gregory_n be_v desirous_a to_o make_v frederick_n more_o firm_a unto_o he_o by_o a_o alliance_n of_o marriage_n this_o offer_n be_v reject_v by_o the_o emperor_n child_n and_o frederick_n be_v afraid_a lest_o in_o his_o absence_n he_o shall_v invade_v the_o kingdom_n of_o sicilia_n vrsperg_n abbas_n vrsperg_n the_o abbot_n of_o vrsperge_n be_v a_o man_n of_o note_n in_o that_o age_n have_v give_v this_o judgement_n of_o he_o this_o gregory_n say_v he_o be_v a_o proud_a man_n in_o the_o first_o year_n of_o his_o popedom_n begin_v to_o excommunicate_a frederick_n the_o emperor_n upon_o false_a and_o frivolous_a cause_n and_o contrary_a to_o all_o order_n of_o judicious_a proceed_n he_o upbraid_v he_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n under_o the_o tuition_n of_o innocent_a the_o three_o have_v be_v a_o mother_n unto_o he_o frederick_n answer_v that_o she_o be_v rather_o a_o stepmother_n be_v the_o root_n and_o fountain_n of_o all_o his_o trouble_n and_o therefore_o he_o set_v before_o the_o eye_n of_o prince_n her_o rapine_n sacrilege_n simony_n and_o injurious_a attempt_n against_o king_n and_o kingdom_n allege_v for_o instance_n how_o cruel_o she_o deal_v with_o john_n king_n of_o england_n and_o other_o 3_o math._n paris_n in_o henrico_n 3_o conclude_v at_o the_o last_o that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v fear_v lest_o the_o church_n who_o foundation_n be_v lay_v in_o poverty_n and_o simplicity_n shall_v by_o her_o wealth_n and_o abundance_n be_v bring_v to_o ruin_v and_o that_o therefore_o it_o be_v high_a time_n for_o they_o that_o see_v their_o neighbour_n house_n on_o fire_n to_o look_v to_o their_o own_o let_v we_o note_v by_o the_o way_n that_o the_o pope_n earnest_n solicit_v of_o this_o voyage_n to_o the_o holy_a land_n promise_v pardon_n of_o all_o their_o sin_n to_o such_o as_o shall_v go_v thither_o be_v suspect_v by_o those_o of_o best_a judgement_n which_o do_v not_o only_o foresee_v the_o mischief_n that_o will_v follow_v thereof_o but_o feel_v the_o present_a evil_n which_o already_o it_o have_v wrought_v vrsperg_n abbas_n vrsperg_n the_o same_o abbot_n say_v thus_o cardinal_n conradus_n bishop_n of_o portua_n when_o he_o go_v ambassador_n into_o germany_n to_o advance_v the_o service_n of_o the_o croysado_n as_o they_o call_v it_o and_o do_v appoint_v preacher_n for_o the_o publish_n thereof_o then_o a_o certain_a friar_n predicant_n call_v john_n come_v from_o strasbourge_n preach_v daily_o and_o earnest_o lay_v man_n sin_n to_o their_o conscience_n with_o great_a vehemency_n and_o for_o the_o intangle_a of_o their_o soul_n broach_v certain_a doctrine_n before_o unheard_a of_o which_o albeit_o in_o some_o sort_n they_o may_v be_v maintain_v yet_o it_o be_v find_v by_o experience_n that_o much_o evil_n ensue_v thereof_o be_v misconceive_v by_o the_o hearer_n who_o be_v thereby_o encourage_v to_o commit_v many_o enormous_a crime_n and_o offence_n for_o at_o that_o time_n engilbert_n archbishop_n of_o collen_n be_v slay_v by_o his_o own_o kinsman_n and_o many_o priest_n murder_v for_o some_o damnable_a companion_n say_v i_o will_v commit_v villainy_n for_o by_o the_o take_n of_o the_o cross_n i_o shall_v be_v not_o only_o absolve_v from_o they_o but_o shall_v also_o deliver_v the_o soul_n of_o many_o wicked_a man_n whereupon_o aventine_n speak_v of_o the_o same_o john_n and_o such_o like_a say_v 7._o auent_n l._n 7._o that_o to_o encourage_v man_n to_o undergo_v the_o hazard_n of_o this_o dangerous_a war_n they_o deliver_v many_o strange_a doctrine_n that_o whatsoever_o sin_n a_o man_n have_v commit_v be_v it_o parricide_n incest_n or_o sacrilege_n as_o soon_o as_o he_o have_v sow_v a_o cross_n upon_o his_o coat_n he_o be_v present_o absolve_v both_o from_o the_o fault_n and_o punishment_n and_o for_o proof_n hereof_o he_o bring_v many_o example_n let_v we_o now_o return_v to_o frederick_n gregory_n upon_o that_o day_n which_o be_v common_o call_v coena_fw-la domini_fw-la excommunicat_o he_o the_o frangipane_n be_v a_o honourable_a family_n in_o rome_n take_v offence_n thereat_o incite_v the_o people_n against_o he_o and_o drive_v gregory_n out_o of_o rome_n who_o retire_v himself_o to_o perusia_n now_o frederick_n have_v settle_v his_o affair_n in_o sicilia_n with_o as_o much_o speed_n as_o he_o can_v to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v approve_v his_o action_n to_o the_o whole_a world_n upon_o christmas_n eve_o he_o arrive_v with_o his_o whole_a army_n in_o palestina_n and_o therefore_o gregory_n may_v well_o have_v pacify_v his_o anger_n have_v not_o somewhat_o else_o than_o the_o zeal_n of_o christ_n inflame_v he_o but_o sigonius_n himself_o tell_v we_o that_o gregory_n be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o incense_a against_o he_o that_o he_o dare_v undertake_v that_o voyage_n before_o he_o be_v reconcile_v to_o he_o wherefore_o take_v opportunity_n of_o his_o absence_n under_o the_o conduct_n of_o johannes_n bremensis_n he_o invade_v apulia_n stir_v up_o the_o confederate_a city_n of_o lombardie_n against_o frederick_n divide_v or_o rather_o rent_n asunder_o all_o italy_n into_o the_o faction_n of_o the_o guelph_n and_o gibelline_n the_o one_o hold_v for_o the_o pope_n the_o other_o for_o the_o emperor_n that_o scarce_o any_o city_n or_o town_n be_v to_o be_v find_v where_o the_o high_a part_n against_o the_o low_a one_o quarter_n against_o another_o the_o commons_o against_o the_o nobility_n &_o the_o nobility_n against_o the_o commons_o do_v not_o exercise_v hostility_n with_o all_o manner_n of_o cruelty_n so_o that_o this_o fire_n can_v scarce_o be_v quench_v without_o the_o utter_a ruin_n of_o italy_n frederick_n for_o all_o this_o desist_v not_o from_o his_o purpose_n which_o he_o so_o effectual_o pursue_v that_o he_o do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o think_v of_o italy_n before_o he_o have_v recover_v the_o city_n of_o jerusalem_n but_o so_o soon_o as_o he_o have_v take_v the_o city_n and_o cause_v himself_o to_o be_v crown_v king_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o have_v settle_v his_o affair_n there_o be_v inform_v that_o the_o pope_n play_v rex_fw-la in_o his_o dominion_n for_o redress_v thereof_o in_o the_o year_n 1229_o he_o return_v into_o italy_n matthew_n paris_n a_o writer_n of_o that_o age_n though_o favour_v gregory_n say_v thus_o 3_o matthaeus_n paris_n in_o henric._n 3_o he_o take_v it_o in_o evil_a part_n that_o the_o emperor_n of_o rome_n be_v excommunicate_v and_o rebel_a against_o he_o go_v to_o the_o holy_a land_n do_v not_o a_o little_a despair_n of_o his_o repentance_n and_o satisfaction_n and_o return_v again_o to_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o he_o determine_v to_o depose_v he_o from_o his_o empire_n for_o his_o contumacy_n and_o rebellion_n and_o to_o place_n in_o his_o room_n some_o other_o that_o will_v be_v a_o peaceable_a and_o obedient_a son_n unto_o he_o and_o yet_o a_o little_a before_o he_o have_v tell_v we_o that_o frederick_n at_o his_o arrival_n in_o the_o holy_a land_n find_v they_o in_o such_o a_o desperate_a case_n that_o the_o templar_n &_o hospitaller_n at_o his_o come_n adore_v he_o upon_o their_o knee_n &_o kiss_v his_o knee_n moreover_o he_o produce_v a_o letter_n of_o the_o earl_n of_o aterne_n advertise_v frederic_n that_o johannes_n bremensis_n his_o father_n in_o law_n by_o the_o instigation_n of_o gregory_n have_v invade_v his_o dominion_n &_o set_v on_o fire_n his_o town_n and_o village_n etc._n etc._n and_o if_o any_o man_n make_v mention_v of_o the_o emperor_n unto_o he_o he_o say_v there_o be_v no_o other_o emperor_n but_o himself_o your_o friend_n say_v he_o wonder_v hereat_o most_o mighty_a emperor_n especial_o those_o of_o the_o clergy_n upon_o what_o ground_n and_o with_o what_o conscience_n the_o pope_n can_v do_v thus_o histor._n cuspinian_n in_o frederico_n abbas_n vrsperg_n collenutius_n l._n 4._o neapol_n histor._n and_o war_n against_o christian_n the_o abbot_n of_o vrsperge_n and_o some_o other_o say_v further_o that_o gregory_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v weaken_v the_o force_n of_o frederic_n in_o the_o holy_a land_n forbid_v those_o of_o the_o croysado_n in_o apulia_n and_o lombardie_n to_o go_v thither_o and_o cause_v the_o lombarde_n in_o their_o journey_n thitherward_o to_o be_v ransack_v and_o spoil_v and_o that_o he_o may_v cross_v the_o good_a success_n of_o these_o war_n scatter_a letter_n in_o frederick_n camp_n admonish_v his_o soldier_n to_o take_v heed_n of_o he_o &_o moreover_o that_o he_o do_v write_v to_o the_o sultan_n to_o be_v of_o good_a courage_n and_o not_o to_o restore_v any_o thing_n to_o frederic_n whereupon_o this_o good_a abbot_n break_v out_o into_o these_o speech_n who_o will_v not_o say_v he_o both_o bewail_v and_o detest_v these_o deal_n which_o be_v manifest_a forerunner_n and_o prodigious_a sign_n of_o the_o church_n ruin_n he_o say_v further_a
thither_o and_o declare_v that_o he_o will_v give_v no_o safe_a conduct_n to_o such_o as_o shall_v undertake_v that_o journey_n especial_o for_o that_o he_o have_v understand_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v have_v advertisement_n that_o his_o agent_n have_v collect_v great_a sum_n of_o money_n in_o england_n and_o in_o france_n be_v resolve_v to_o break_v truce_n with_o he_o here_o it_o be_v good_a to_o hear_v the_o same_o author_n speak_v 3_o matth._n paris_n in_o henrico_n 3_o cardinal_n john_n columna_fw-la have_v be_v author_n of_o the_o truce_n gregory_n receive_v letter_n from_o the_o legate_n that_o in_o france_n alone_o he_o have_v gather_v already_o so_o much_o money_n as_o whereby_o he_o may_v be_v undoubted_o able_a to_o wage_v war_n against_o the_o emperor_n for_o a_o whole_a year_n whereupon_o repent_v and_o grieve_v that_o he_o have_v accept_v the_o truce_n call_v for_o the_o excellent_a cardinal_n john_n de_fw-fr columna_fw-la and_o raymund_n mediator_n of_o the_o same_o i_o be_o ashamed_a in_o myself_o say_v he_o to_o they_o that_o i_o grant_v truce_n to_o frederic_n the_o enemy_n of_o the_o church_n go_v then_o in_o haste_n thou_o speak_v to_o columna_fw-la which_o waste_v the_o spokesman_n betwixt_o we_o and_o tell_v he_o bold_o that_o i_o will_v not_o hold_v it_o and_o that_o i_o will_v be_v his_o enemy_n and_o do_v defy_v he_o god_n forbid_v answer_v columna_fw-la that_o in_o the_o mouth_n of_o so_o great_a a_o man_n such_o light_a word_n shall_v be_v report_v to_o so_o great_a a_o prince_n especial_o by_o we_o which_o be_v of_o no_o common_a rank_n for_o i_o can_v consent_v to_o this_o counsel_n of_o instability_n and_o unfaithfulnesse_n but_o do_v constant_o contradict_v the_o same_o to_o who_o the_o pope_n reply_v and_o i_o hold_v thou_o not_o henceforth_o for_o cardinal_n nor_o i_o thou_o for_o pope_n say_v columna_fw-la and_o so_o depart_v and_o of_o a_o friend_n become_v his_o adversary_n but_o it_o very_o fit_o fall_v out_o add_v the_o author_n that_o the_o french_a king_n lewis_n have_v intelligence_n of_o it_o make_v to_o be_v stay_v in_o his_o kingdom_n all_o that_o money_n which_o have_v be_v glean_v from_o the_o clergy_n by_o his_o permission_n mellitis_fw-la sermonibus_fw-la &_o fellitis_fw-la comminationibus_fw-la by_o honey_a speech_n and_o bitter_a threaten_n that_o by_o this_o mean_v the_o pope_n who_o be_v call_v christ_n vicar_n on_o earth_n may_v be_v find_v faithful_a though_o against_o his_o will_n now_o it_o so_o fall_v out_o that_o frederic_n be_v not_o unarm_v or_o unprepared_a against_o he_o for_o he_o have_v at_o that_o very_a time_n five_o army_n a_o foot_n the_o first_o before_o fayenza_n which_o he_o himself_o in_o person_n command_v the_o second_o on_o the_o tuscan_a sea_n under_o hencius_fw-la king_n of_o sardinia_n against_o the_o genoese_n the_o three_o upon_o the_o frontier_n of_o germany_n against_o the_o tartarian_n under_o the_o conduct_n of_o conrade_n king_n of_o germany_n the_o four_o in_o the_o marca_n de_fw-fr ancona_n and_o valley_n of_o spoletum_n the_o five_o in_o palestina_n under_o rodolph_n marshal_n of_o the_o empire_n for_o to_o defend_v the_o kingdom_n of_o jerusalem_n which_o he_o do_v notwithstanding_o the_o traverse_n and_o hindrance_n of_o the_o pope_n for_o the_o space_n of_o fifteen_o year_n the_o war_n then_o continue_v the_o siege_n of_o fayenza_n dure_v a_o long_a time_n neither_o have_v he_o little_a cause_n to_o revenge_v himself_o of_o the_o inhabitant_n who_o some_o time_n before_o have_v shut_v the_o gate_n of_o their_o city_n before_o and_o behind_o upon_o he_o violent_o assail_v he_o and_o wicked_o slay_v another_o disguise_v like_o unto_o he_o in_o imperial_a armour_n think_v it_o have_v be_v their_o lord_n yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o implore_v his_o mercy_n he_o give_v they_o their_o city_n and_o the_o like_a liberty_n as_o to_o other_o city_n of_o the_o empire_n which_o be_v speak_v to_o they_o that_o accuse_v he_o of_o be_v prone_a to_o revenge_v the_o legate_n also_o return_v accompany_v with_o many_o bishop_n for_o the_o council_n they_o he_o request_v to_o turn_v towards_o he_o and_o promise_v they_o all_o safe-conduct_n desirous_a only_o to_o make_v know_v the_o justice_n of_o his_o cause_n unto_o they_o now_o they_o refuse_v it_o and_o choose_v rather_o to_o commit_v themselves_o to_o the_o safeguard_n of_o the_o genoese_n his_o enemy_n hencius_fw-la who_o watch_v to_o surprise_v they_o take_v they_o at_o sea_n and_o lead_v they_o prisoner_n to_o naples_n 4._o collenucius_fw-la l._n 4._o at_o which_o success_n and_o other_o prosperous_o perform_v in_o the_o marca_n de_fw-fr ancona_n and_o in_o romania_n gregory_n the_o nine_o conceive_v so_o great_a discontent_n be_v withal_o very_o ancient_a that_o for_o grief_n thereof_o he_o die_v it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n to_o be_v forget_v that_o the_o pope_n to_o colour_v their_o affair_n the_o better_a have_v ever_o sound_v in_o their_o mouth_n the_o holy_a land_n that_o when_o under_o honorius_n the_o three_o king_n john_n of_o brenna_n have_v take_v the_o famous_a city_n of_o damieta_n cardinal_n pelagius_n the_o pope_n legate_n pretend_v that_o he_o be_v to_o have_v the_o chief_a command_n over_o the_o army_n whereat_o the_o king_n incense_v retire_a himself_o through_o despite_n to_o ptolomais_n whereby_o be_v lose_v the_o best_a opportunity_n to_o do_v good_a and_o in_o the_o end_n after_o many_o bad_a success_n damieta_n be_v forsake_v again_o when_o as_o under_o gregory_n the_o nine_o richard_n earl_n of_o cornwall_n the_o king_n of_o england_n brother_n be_v bend_v to_o the_o holy_a war_n with_o a_o army_n at_o his_o instance_n for_o recovery_n of_o these_o loss_n and_o be_v come_v to_o s._n giles_n in_o languedock_n ready_a to_o embark_v himself_o there_o come_v a_o legate_n to_o he_o from_o gregory_n with_o the_o archbishop_n of_o arles_n command_v in_o his_o name_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o pass_v the_o sea_n all_o which_o be_v to_o despite_n frederic_n whereat_o this_o prince_n much_o offend_v say_v unto_o they_o i_o think_v there_o have_v be_v firmness_n of_o truth_n in_o the_o apostolic_a word_n and_o in_o the_o preacher_n that_o he_o send_v unto_o i_o and_o now_o i_o be_o ready_a to_o enter_v on_o shipboard_n this_o pope_n who_o they_o call_v the_o successor_n and_o vicar_n of_o jesus_n christ_n who_o never_o fail_v of_o his_o word_n forbid_v i_o to_o march_v forward_o in_o his_o service_n and_o nevertheless_o resolve_v detestans_fw-la romanae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la duplicitatem_fw-la detest_a the_o double_a deal_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n with_o great_a bitterness_n of_o mind_n to_o go_v embark_v himself_o at_o marseille_n give_v the_o emperor_n to_o understand_v by_o robert_n tue_v knight_n and_o other_o his_o ambassador_n papalem_fw-la muscipulationem_fw-la the_o juggling_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o legate_n the_o same_o have_v he_o do_v a_o little_a before_o to_o the_o cross_a soldier_n in_o france_n and_o other_o nation_n who_o be_v come_v to_o lion_n that_o from_o thence_o they_o may_v take_v their_o journey_n into_o the_o holy_a land_n find_v there_o the_o pope_n legate_n who_o make_v they_o the_o like_a prohibition_n and_o deliver_v a_o commandment_n in_o writing_n that_o every_o man_n shall_v return_v back_o to_o his_o own_o home_n this_o give_v occasion_n to_o exclaim_v vnde_fw-la haec_fw-la in_o romana_fw-la curia_fw-la &_o in_o papa_n multiplicitas_fw-la whence_o come_v this_o variety_n in_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o in_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o this_o here_o both_o the_o time_n and_o place_n prefix_v and_o appoint_v by_o his_o legate_n and_o preach_a friar_n upon_o their_o promise_n we_o have_v set_v forward_o our_o journey_n have_v sell_v and_o engage_v our_o house_n bid_v our_o friend_n farewell_n send_v our_o money_n before_o etc._n etc._n and_o little_o want_v they_o from_o lay_v violent_a hand_n upon_o the_o legate_n if_o the_o discretion_n of_o some_o prelate_n have_v not_o restrain_v the_o fury_n of_o the_o people_n to_o provide_v for_o the_o election_n of_o a_o successor_n to_o gregory_n there_o remain_v but_o ten_o cardinal_n at_o rome_n they_o therefore_o entreat_v frederick_n to_o permit_v they_o two_o who_o he_o keep_v prisoner_n to_o come_v to_o they_o and_o to_o be_v present_a at_o the_o election_n which_o he_o gracious_o grant_v unto_o they_o yet_o on_o condition_n they_o shall_v both_o return_n except_o one_o of_o they_o be_v create_v pope_n now_o there_o be_v nominate_v godfrey_n bishop_n of_o the_o sabine_n call_v celestine_n the_o four_o who_o die_v seventeen_o day_n after_o before_o he_o be_v consecrate_v the_o cardinal_n assemble_v again_o and_o as_o they_o be_v divide_v some_o for_o the_o church_n other_o for_o the_o empire_n that_o they_o can_v not_o agree_v the_o two_o prisoner_n to_o perform_v their_o promise_n give_v return_v till_o at_o
some_o remedy_n for_o these_o mischief_n they_o write_v letter_n to_o the_o bishop_n and_o chapiters_n with_o this_o subscription_n to_o such_o a_o bishop_n or_o such_o a_o chapter_n vniversitas_fw-la the_o whole_a body_n of_o they_o that_o have_v rather_o die_v than_o be_v confound_v by_o the_o roman_n send_v greeting_n in_o these_o letter_n they_o particular_o complain_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v command_v the_o bishop_n under_o pain_n of_o suspension_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o give_v a_o benefice_n to_o any_o home-born_a of_o the_o kingdom_n till_o first_o five_o roman_n in_o every_o church_n be_v provide_v of_o benefice_n throughout_o all_o diocese_n to_o the_o value_n of_o a_o hundred_o pound_n sterling_a the_o year_n neither_o do_v they_o design_n they_o by_o their_o name_n but_o the_o son_n of_o rumfred_n or_o of_o such_o a_o one_o as_o if_o they_o will_v fulfil_v that_o pprophecy_n they_o have_v spoil_v the_o egyptian_n for_o to_o enrich_v the_o hebrew_n wherefore_o see_v they_o have_v resolve_v with_o themselves_o to_o deliver_v the_o church_n the_o king_n and_o the_o kingdom_n from_o so_o great_a a_o tyranny_n unless_o they_o themselves_o the_o bishop_n will_v feel_v and_o suffer_v in_o their_o good_n that_o which_o they_o prepare_v for_o the_o person_n of_o the_o roman_n ere_o long_o to_o suffer_v they_o shall_v not_o entermedle_v in_o their_o affair_n in_o like_a manner_n they_o write_v unto_o they_o that_o have_v their_o land_n at_o farm_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o pay_v they_o their_o yearly_a revenue_n and_o their_o letter_n be_v seal_v with_o a_o seal_n wherein_o be_v grave_v two_o sword_n with_o this_o inscription_n ecce_fw-la duo_fw-la gladij_fw-la hic_fw-la 3_o matthew_z paris_z in_o henrico_n 3_o here_o be_v two_o sword_n and_o the_o matter_n come_v to_o that_o pass_n that_o their_o corn_n be_v take_v away_o throughout_o all_o england_n free_o and_o without_o contradition_n they_o distribute_v they_o in_o large_a alm_n to_o the_o poor_a and_o sometime_o cast_v their_o money_n about_o on_o the_o ground_n and_o exhort_v the_o poor_a to_o gather_v it_o up_o the_o roman_a clergyman_n hide_v themselves_o in_o abbay_n not_o dare_v once_o to_o mutter_v at_o the_o injury_n do_v they_o choose_v rather_o to_o lose_v their_o good_n then_o incur_v the_o sentence_n of_o death_n until_o at_o length_n gregory_n be_v advertise_v of_o these_o thing_n write_v unto_o the_o king_n that_o under_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n and_o interdict_v he_o shall_v proceed_v against_o the_o author_n thereof_o nevertheless_o he_o write_v letter_n of_o recommendation_n to_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o behalf_n of_o robert_n de_fw-fr tinghe_n knight_n their_o head_n that_o he_o may_v more_o easy_o obtain_v absolution_n but_o gregory_n give_v not_o over_o for_o all_o that_o but_o the_o next_o year_n after_o send_v his_o nuncio_n with_o legantine_n power_n into_o all_o part_n one_o while_o pretend_v the_o ruin_n of_o frederick_n another_o while_n for_o the_o recovery_n of_o the_o holy_a land_n for_o to_o exact_a money_n on_o all_o side_n 3_o matth._n paris_n in_o henrico_n 3_o invent_v say_v the_o history_n and_o multiply_v argumentosas_fw-la extorsiones_fw-la extorsion_n fortify_v with_o argument_n especial_o in_o england_n he_o appoint_v his_o legate_n in_o show_n simple_a messenger_n yet_o have_v power_n legantine_n who_o as_o if_o it_o be_v for_o succour_v of_o the_o holy_a land_n exact_v very_o much_o money_n by_o preach_v entreat_v command_v threaten_a excommunicate_a and_o exact_v procuration_n whereby_o infinite_a many_o in_o england_n be_v bring_v to_o forsake_v their_o country_n and_o to_o beg_v and_o yet_o the_o church_n have_v never_o any_o advancement_n thereby_o and_o here_o he_o give_v we_o a_o copy_n of_o his_o letter_n excellent_a word_n say_v he_o able_a to_o pierce_v the_o stony_a heart_n of_o man_n have_v they_o not_o be_v follow_v with_o deed_n notorious_o contrary_a to_o humility_n and_o justice_n he_o will_v have_v say_v have_v it_o not_o be_v for_o that_o it_o be_v mere_a hypocrisy_n of_o such_o as_o represent_v in_o their_o bull_n as_o it_o be_v on_o a_o stage_n the_o pason_a of_o christ_n and_o desolation_n of_o the_o holy_a land_n not_o so_o much_o for_o to_o move_v the_o people_n as_o to_o pull_v out_o their_o bowel_n he_o therefore_o add_v to_o these_o man_n be_v give_v power_n to_o press_v cross_v soldier_n and_o for_o money_n also_o to_o release_v they_o of_o that_o vow_n wherefore_o many_o without_o number_n cross_v themselves_o but_o the_o friar_n preacher_n &_o minorite_n who_o have_v choose_v with_o humility_n a_o voluntary_a poverty_n be_v in_o a_o short_a time_n advance_v to_o so_o great_a nobility_n that_o i_o say_v not_o arrogancy_n that_o they_o make_v themselves_o be_v receive_v into_o covent_n and_o city_n with_o solemn_a procession_n with_o banner_n and_o light_a taper_n each_o man_n in_o his_o best_a apparel_n and_o due_a order_n and_o they_o have_v power_n to_o grant_v pardon_n for_o many_o day_n to_o their_o auditor_n and_o such_o as_o to_o day_n be_v cross_v for_o the_o war_n in_o give_v money_n they_o absolve_v the_o morrow_n after_o from_o that_o vow_n and_o in_o a_o short_a space_n so_o great_a a_o exchange_n be_v make_v and_o exaction_n of_o money_n so_o many_o way_n neither_o can_v it_o be_v know_v into_o what_o bottomless_a gulf_n so_o much_o money_n as_o the_o pope_n agent_n do_v gather_v can_v be_v drown_v so_o that_o the_o business_n of_o the_o holy_a land_n go_v not_o forward_o and_o the_o charity_n of_o the_o faithful_a yea_o of_o all_o in_o general_a wax_v cold_a cardinal_n otho_n come_v as_o a_o legate_n into_o england_n at_o his_o first_o arrival_n refuse_v all_o gift_n contrary_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o roman_n say_v the_o author_n and_o with_o his_o gesture_n win_v the_o good_a like_n of_o the_o people_n but_o scarce_o have_v he_o give_v this_o taste_n of_o he_o but_o he_o take_v all_o thing_n with_o both_o the_o hand_n from_o the_o bishop_n of_o winchester_n alone_o fifty_o fat_a ox_n a_o hundred_o measure_n of_o wheat_n eight_o butt_n of_o the_o best_a wine_n and_o so_o from_o the_o other_o bishop_n and_o when_o there_o be_v a_o council_n to_o be_v hold_v he_o command_v there_o shall_v be_v set_v up_o in_o the_o church_n of_o s._n paul_n a_o seat_n nimis_fw-la fastigiosam_fw-la &_o solemnem_fw-la too_o solemn_a and_o too_o high_a raise_v up_o mount_v with_o many_o step_n there_o he_o propound_v new_a invention_n to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o nobility_n from_o the_o nobility_n he_o take_v away_o the_o right_n of_o patronage_n &_o seize_v it_o for_o the_o pope_n and_o from_o the_o other_o he_o take_v away_o part_n of_o their_o benefice_n and_o give_v it_o unto_o stranger_n and_o hence_o arise_v new_a complaint_n of_o the_o state_n against_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n but_o he_o tax_v also_o all_o the_o ecclesiastical_a live_n for_o the_o succour_n of_o the_o pope_n against_o the_o emperor_n and_o exact_v it_o under_o pain_n of_o most_o rigorous_a censure_n and_o for_o money_n absolu_v from_o the_o vow_n of_o the_o holy_a land_n and_o a_o certain_a sum_n be_v set_v by_o the_o friar_n preacher_n &_o minorite_n according_a to_o the_o rate_n the_o same_o voyage_n over_o sea_n may_v cost_v they_o thence_o say_v matthew_n paris_n a_o great_a scandal_n be_v make_v among_o the_o people_n with_o a_o schism_n even_o the_o most_o simple_a observe_v the_o absurdity_n quam_fw-la diversis_fw-la muscipulis_fw-la by_o how_o many_o mousetrap_n the_o court_n of_o rome_n endeavour_v to_o deprive_v the_o simple_a people_n of_o god_n of_o their_o substance_n require_v nothing_o but_o gold_n and_o silver_n he_o exact_v moreover_o of_o all_o the_o clergy_n the_o five_o part_n of_o their_o revenue_n to_o be_v employ_v against_o frederick_n and_o wrest_v it_o away_o perforce_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o kingdom_n in_o vain_a cry_v out_o to_o the_o king_n most_o renown_v prince_n why_o suffer_v thou_o england_n to_o be_v make_v a_o prey_n and_o desolation_n of_o stranger_n as_o a_o vineyard_n without_o enclosure_n common_a to_o all_o that_o pass_v by_o and_o for_o the_o wild_a bore_n to_o root_v up_o the_o king_n answer_v they_o i_o neither_o will_v nor_o dare_v gainsay_v the_o pope_n in_o any_o thing_n and_o thereupon_o a_o lamentable_a despair_n grow_v among_o the_o people_n we_o must_v not_o omit_v that_o at_o the_o same_o time_n be_v take_v at_o cambridge_n a_o certain_a carthusian_n monk_n bear_v the_o habit_n and_o gesture_n of_o a_o honest_a and_o austeer_v life_n who_o will_v not_o enter_v into_o the_o church_n he_o be_v bring_v unto_o the_o legate_n to_o be_v commit_v prisoner_n to_o the_o tower_n of_o london_n and_o be_v question_v by_o he_o he_o say_v gregory_n be_v not_o pope_n be_v not_o head_n of_o the_o church_n the_o church_n be_v profane_v
occasion_n fall_v out_o whence_o it_o come_v that_o some_o say_v he_o have_v many_o paper_n unwritten_a yet_o seal_v that_o he_o may_v write_v in_o they_o what_o he_o please_v which_o far_o be_v it_o but_o iste_fw-la legatus_fw-la sophisticus_fw-la that_o sophistical_a legate_n come_v to_o the_o king_n beseech_v he_o that_o he_o himself_o will_v diligent_o labour_v in_o the_o pope_n behalf_n that_o the_o prelate_n of_o england_n may_v general_o give_v consent_n to_o make_v contribution_n to_o the_o pope_n of_o at_o least_o ten_o thousand_o mark_n the_o king_n answer_v that_o his_o baron_n and_o prelate_n be_v so_o often_o spoil_v of_o their_o good_n under_o diverse_a pretence_n that_o they_o neither_o will_v nor_o can_v thenceforth_o promise_v any_o thing_n they_o will_v not_o neither_o be_v they_o able_a to_o contribute_v either_o to_o i_o their_o king_n or_o to_o the_o pope_n who_o yet_o have_v promise_v to_o aid_v i_o and_o at_o this_o master_n martin_n be_v great_o trouble_v depart_v from_o the_o king_n presence_n and_o when_o he_o present_v his_o letter_n to_o the_o prelate_n they_o say_v unto_o he_o the_o king_n our_o lord_n and_o patron_n and_o founder_n and_o repairer_n of_o many_o of_o our_o church_n be_v destitute_a of_o treasure_n demand_v aid_n of_o we_o for_o the_o strength_n and_o defence_n of_o the_o realm_n that_o be_v of_o the_o commonwealth_n the_o same_o also_o do_v the_o pope_n instant_o request_v we_o for_o the_o king_n and_o there_o come_v moreover_o another_o unexpected_a demand_n from_o the_o pope_n so_o that_o on_o this_o side_n we_o be_v assail_v on_o that_o side_n we_o be_v distress_v on_o this_o side_n we_o be_v tread_v down_o on_o that_o side_n sore_o press_v we_o be_v bruise_v as_o it_o be_v betwixt_o the_o anvil_n and_o the_o hammer_n and_o torment_v as_o between_o two_o millstone_n nevertheless_o master_n martin_n urge_v and_o be_v instant_n vigilantissimè_fw-la &_o incessantèr_fw-la vigilant_o and_o incessant_o for_o the_o gather_n and_o bestow_v of_o revenue_n in_o what_o fashion_n they_o will_v for_o the_o use_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o kindred_n and_o of_o his_o sauciness_n and_o injurious_a extotion_n i_o think_v it_o honest_a and_o safe_a for_o reverence_n of_o the_o holy_a church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v silent_a than_o to_o offend_v the_o ear_n of_o the_o hearer_n and_o trouble_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o faithful_a in_o rehearse_v such_o thing_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o port_n of_o england_n be_v very_o narrow_o observe_v that_o the_o pope_n carrier_n may_v bring_v no_o more_o dispatch_n from_o rome_n and_o there_o be_v one_o of_o they_o stay_v a_o dover_n who_o bring_v many_o bull_n multas_fw-la abominationes_fw-la de_fw-la diversis_fw-la argumentis_fw-la emungendi_fw-la pecuniam_fw-la continentes_fw-la say_v the_o author_n contain_v many_o abomination_n for_o to_o wrest_v away_o money_n so_o that_o the_o king_n detest_a the_o insatiable_a covetousness_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n resolve_v to_o provide_v a_o remedy_n and_o to_o that_o end_n send_v certain_a honourable_a person_n ambassador_n to_o the_o council_n of_o lion_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n and_o to_o master_n martin_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n be_v signify_v by_o one_o fulke_n warin_n that_o he_o shall_v forthwith_o depart_v out_o of_o england_n he_o ask_v from_o who_o he_o have_v that_o commandment_n he_o be_v answer_v from_o they_o which_o of_o late_o be_v assemble_v in_o arm_n at_o luithon_n and_o that_o if_o he_o be_v wise_a he_o shall_v not_o tarry_v three_o year_n long_o then_o go_v he_o to_o the_o king_n and_o ask_v if_o that_o be_v do_v by_o his_o authority_n the_o king_n answer_v no_o but_o that_o he_o can_v hardly_o withhold_v his_o baron_n from_o rise_v up_o against_o he_o for_o have_v endure_v such_o robbery_n in_o his_o kingdom_n martin_n tremble_v reque_v of_o he_o safe-conduct_n for_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o pope_n the_o king_n answer_v in_o anger_n the_o devil_n lead_v and_o carry_v thou_o into_o hell_n yet_o he_o command_v his_o knight_n marshal_n to_o bring_v he_o safe_a to_o the_o sea_n side_n so_o soon_o as_o he_o be_v come_v to_o rome_n he_o declare_v this_o his_o ill_a success_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o behold_v with_o what_o repentance_n he_o be_v touch_v the_o king_n say_v he_o of_o france_n and_o the_o king_n of_o arragon_n have_v forbid_v our_o nuncios_fw-la entrance_n into_o their_o kingdom_n we_o must_v therefore_o say_v he_o in_o great_a anger_n make_v peace_n with_o prince_n frederic_n that_o we_o may_v break_v in_o piece_n these_o petty_a king_n ut_fw-la hos_fw-la regulos_fw-la conteramus_fw-la which_o kick_v against_o we_o for_o the_o dragon_n foil_v or_o appease_v the_o little_a serpent_n will_v soon_o be_v tread_v down_o voice_fw-la sursurra_n say_v the_o historiographer_n oculos_fw-la obliquando_fw-la &_o nares_fw-la corrugando_fw-la thus_o describe_v he_o his_o choler_n which_o word_n be_v spread_v among_o the_o people_n beget_v a_o scandal_n of_o indignation_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o many_o but_o the_o embassador_n of_o the_o realm_n of_o england_n be_v arrive_v at_o the_o council_n of_o lion_n partly_o by_o the_o word_n of_o william_n of_o powerick_n partly_o by_o a_o most_o large_a letter_n declare_v quantum_fw-la est_fw-la extortum_fw-la tributum_fw-la iniuriosè_fw-la how_o great_a be_v the_o tribute_n wrongful_o extort_a and_o after_o some_o accustom_a compliment_n to_o the_o pope_n behold_v say_v they_o by_o you_o and_o your_o predecessor_n not_o have_v any_o consideration_n beside_o the_o subsidy_n abovesayd_a italian_n now_o be_v enrich_v in_o england_n of_o who_o there_o be_v already_o a_o infinite_a number_n in_o church_n the_o patronage_n whereof_o belong_v to_o the_o religious_a person_n themselves_o and_o be_v call_v rector_n of_o church_n leave_v the_o foresay_a religious_a person_n who_o they_o ought_v to_o defend_v altogether_o undefended_a have_v not_o any_o care_n of_o soul_n but_o suffer_v most_o ravenous_a wolf_n to_o disperse_v the_o flock_n and_o devour_v the_o sheep_n whence_o it_o may_v true_o be_v say_v that_o they_o be_v not_o good_a pastor_n for_o they_o know_v not_o their_o sheep_n neither_o their_o sheep_n they_o they_o abide_v not_o in_o the_o church_n for_o to_o keep_v good_a hospitality_n and_o to_o give_v alm_n as_o be_v appoint_v yet_o they_o receive_v yearly_a in_o england_n sixty_o thousand_o mark_n and_o more_o diverse_a other_o receipt_n except_v they_o reap_v more_o profit_n of_o the_o mere_a revenue_n of_o the_o kingdom_n than_o the_o king_n himself_o who_o be_v the_o defender_n of_o the_o church_n and_o governor_n of_o the_o realm_n now_o we_o firm_o hope_v and_o yet_o do_v hope_n bear_v that_o affiance_n of_o you_o that_o we_o shall_v rejoice_v by_o mean_n of_o the_o mercy_n of_o your_o fatherhood_n that_o our_o say_a alm_n deed_n shall_v in_o your_o day_n be_v reform_v to_o the_o due_a and_o former_a estate_n it_o have_v be_v but_o we_o can_v conceal_v our_o grievance_n wherewith_o we_o be_v not_o only_o grieve_v but_o also_o beyond_o measure_n oppress_v conclude_v with_o entreaty_n that_o he_o will_v remedy_v the_o same_o so_o soon_o as_o may_v be_v especial_o that_o violent_a oppression_n intolerable_a grief_n and_o impudent_a exaction_n which_o be_v commit_v by_o that_o hateful_a clause_n often_o insert_v in_o the_o pope_n letter_n non_fw-la obstante_fw-la etc._n etc._n but_o the_o pope_n put_v they_o off_o to_o a_o long_a day_n for_o their_o answer_n neither_o can_v he_o dissemble_v the_o passion_n of_o his_o mind_n for_o that_o they_o complain_v to_o the_o council_n threaten_v among_o his_o familiar_n that_o if_o he_o have_v once_o repress_v frederic_n he_o will_v trample_v under_o his_o foot_n the_o english_a man_n and_o their_o king_n the_o english_a ambassador_n than_o be_v urgent_a for_o a_o answer_n to_o who_o by_o a_o three_o he_o answer_v that_o they_o can_v not_o obtain_v what_o they_o demand_v and_o thereupon_o they_o protest_v that_o they_o will_v never_o pay_v that_o detestable_a tribute_n he_o privy_o send_v secret_a messenger_n into_o england_n who_o make_v every_o bishop_n particular_o to_o subscribe_v to_o that_o lamentable_a charter_n of_o king_n john_n namely_o as_o it_o be_v likely_a to_o supply_v the_o want_n of_o the_o original_n burn_v at_o lion_n with_o a_o copy_n thus_o make_v authentical_a but_o the_o king_n hear_v of_o it_o make_v a_o oath_n that_o whatsoever_o the_o bishop_n do_v he_o will_v never_o pay_v it_o though_o it_o cost_v he_o his_o life_n paris_n math._n paris_n and_o the_o author_n add_v that_o in_o the_o conference_n that_o innocent_n have_v with_o the_o king_n s_o lewis_n at_o clugni_n he_o use_v all_o the_o be_v he_o can_v to_o persuade_v the_o king_n to_o revenge_v he_o of_o this_o jury_n and_o to_o make_v war_n against_o ipsum_fw-la regulum_fw-la anglorum_fw-la the_o petty_a king_n of_o the_o
english_a either_o for_o to_o deprive_v he_o of_o his_o kingdom_n or_o to_o make_v he_o will_v he_o will_v he_o submit_v himself_o to_o the_o pleasure_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n which_o if_o he_o will_v do_v the_o church_n with_o the_o papal_a authority_n shall_v to_o the_o uttermost_a of_o his_o power_n assist_v he_o but_o yet_o that_o the_o king_n of_o frannce_n constant_o refuse_v he_o in_o the_o year_n follow_v be_v make_v new_a admonishment_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o cardinal_n by_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o king_n state_n and_o prelate_n of_o the_o kingdom_n whereby_o be_v represent_v unto_o they_o innumerable_a grievance_n the_o article_n of_o which_o be_v rehearse_v by_o the_o same_o author_n these_o among_o other_o be_v new_a that_o the_o pope_n by_o his_o letter_n enjoin_v the_o prelate_n that_o they_o shall_v every_o man_n at_o their_o own_o proper_a charge_n furnish_v forth_o one_o man_n five_o another_o ten_o and_o another_o fifteen_o etc._n etc._n man_n of_o war_n well_o horse_v and_o arm_v for_o to_o do_v he_o service_n wheresoever_o he_o shall_v command_v to_o who_o they_o shall_v give_v a_o year_n pay_v which_o be_v a_o military_a service_n due_a to_o the_o king_n alone_o and_o from_o which_o nevertheless_o they_o may_v be_v dispense_v for_o money_n also_o that_o to_o the_o end_n the_o king_n may_v not_o hinder_v it_o the_o pope_n nuncios_fw-la fraudulent_o have_v forbid_v the_o prelate_n under_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o reveal_v this_o exaction_n to_o any_o in_o six_o month_n innocent_a then_o be_v so_o far_o off_o from_o revoke_v they_o that_o in_o despite_n of_o the_o king_n he_o make_v a_o new_a statute_n in_o england_n that_o the_o good_n of_o such_o as_o die_v intestate_a shall_v be_v convert_v to_o his_o use_n and_o appoint_v the_o preach_a friar_n diligent_o to_o put_v the_o same_o in_o execution_n which_o the_o king_n have_v intelligence_n of_o express_o forbid_v detest_a romanae_fw-la curiae_fw-la augmentosam_fw-la multiplicem_fw-la ac_fw-la multiformem_fw-la avaritiam_fw-la the_o augment_v multiply_a and_o every_o way_n manifold_a covetuousnesse_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n he_o also_o forbid_v thenceforth_o to_o pay_v tribute_n to_o the_o pope_n whereat_o the_o pope_n be_v great_o move_v resolve_v to_o excommunicate_a the_o king_n and_o kingdom_n hereupon_o cardinal_n john_n a_o englishman_n a_o cistertian_n monk_n say_v unto_o he_o for_o god_n sake_n my_o lord_n refrain_v your_o anger_n which_o be_v if_o i_o may_v so_o speak_v undiscreet_a and_o with_o temperance_n bridle_v the_o passion_n of_o your_o will_n consider_v that_o the_o day_n be_v evil_a the_o holy_a land_n lie_v open_a to_o danger_n the_o greek_a church_n be_v depart_v from_o we_o frederic_n be_v our_o adversary_n than_o who_o none_o among_o the_o christian_a prince_n be_v mighty_a or_o yet_o like_a unto_o he_o you_o and_o we_o which_o be_v the_o high_a of_o the_o church_n be_v banish_v from_o the_o papal_a seat_n yea_o from_o the_o city_n itself_o yea_o from_o italy_n hungary_n and_o the_o adjacent_a province_n expect_v nothing_o but_o utter_a ruin_n from_o the_o tartarian_n germany_n be_v shake_v with_o civil_a war_n spain_n be_v grow_v to_o that_o cruelty_n as_o to_o cut_v off_o the_o tongue_n of_o bishop_n france_n be_v by_o we_o already_o bring_v to_o poverty_n and_o have_v conspire_v against_o we_o and_o england_n so_o oftentimes_o hurt_v by_o our_o injury_n as_o balaams_n ass_n spur_v and_o beat_v with_o a_o staff_n at_o last_o speak_v and_o speak_v against_o and_o complain_v that_o she_o be_v overmuch_o and_o intolerable_o weary_v and_o unrestoreable_o damnify_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o ishmael_n be_v hateful_a to_o all_o we_o procure_v all_o man_n to_o hate_v we_o and_o when_o for_o all_o that_o the_o pope_n mind_n be_v not_o appease_v nor_o incline_v to_o compassion_n or_o humility_n but_o be_v inflame_v to_o punishment_n and_o revenge_n there_o come_v messenger_n from_o england_n who_o mitigate_v the_o pope_n mind_n gape_v after_o profit_n assure_v he_o that_o by_o his_o most_o special_a friend_n in_o england_n the_o king_n heart_n be_v bow_v so_o that_o he_o remit_v it_o to_o the_o clergy_n to_o effect_v his_o wish_n the_o joy_n whereof_o wonderful_o calm_v his_o mind_n and_o countenance_n yet_o whilst_o he_o wait_v and_o expect_v the_o same_o take_v boldness_n of_o this_o hope_n he_o command_v the_o prelate_n of_o england_n solito_fw-la imperiosius_fw-la more_o imperious_o than_o he_o be_v wont_v that_o they_o shall_v cause_v to_o be_v pay_v he_o from_o all_o benefice_a person_n resident_a the_o three_o part_n of_o their_o revenue_n and_o by_o nonresident_n the_o one_o half_a with_o this_o detestable_a clause_n non_fw-la obstante_fw-la etc._n etc._n which_o abolish_v all_o justice_n and_o for_o to_o urge_v these_o exaction_n be_v send_v john_n and_o alexander_n friar_n minorite_n who_o arm_v with_o bull_n from_o the_o pope_n and_o cover_v under_o sheep_n clothing_n their_o wolvish_a raven_n present_v themselves_o to_o the_o king_n and_o with_o a_o simple_a look_n humble_a countenance_n and_o fawn_a speech_n entreat_v leave_v of_o the_o king_n to_o wander_v throughout_o the_o realm_n ad_fw-la opus_fw-la domini_fw-la papae_fw-la charitatem_fw-la petituri_fw-la to_o demand_v a_o charity_n for_o the_o need_n of_o the_o pope_n promise_v that_o they_o will_v do_v nothing_o by_o constraint_n but_o a_o while_n after_o they_o become_v proud_a with_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o clergy_n mount_v upon_o noble_a horse_n with_o golden_a saddle_n deck_v in_o most_o costly_a apparel_n and_o with_o soldier_n shoe_n vulgar_o call_v heusee_n shod_a and_o spur_v after_o a_o secular_a or_o rather_o a_o prodigal_a manner_n which_o turn_v to_o the_o hurt_n and_o opprobrie_n of_o their_o order_n and_o profession_n exercise_v the_o office_n and_o tyranny_n of_o legate_n and_o exact_v and_o extort_v procuration_n and_o account_v twenty_o shilling_n for_o a_o procuration_n but_o a_o small_a matter_n first_o then_o they_o go_v to_o the_o chief_a prelate_n of_o england_n and_o shameful_o exact_a money_n from_o they_o for_o the_o pope_n use_n under_o terrible_a pain_n set_v too_o short_a a_o time_n for_o answer_n or_o payment_n and_o show_v the_o pope_n thunder_a letter_n as_o so_o many_o threaten_a horn_n put_v forth_o in_o so_o much_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o lincoln_n who_o have_v ever_o protect_v the_o order_n of_o the_o minorite_n and_o be_v mind_v to_o have_v make_v himself_o one_o of_o they_o see_v such_o a_o monstrous_a transformation_n be_v whole_o astonish_v and_o that_o so_o much_o the_o more_o for_o that_o they_o demand_v of_o his_o only_a bishopric_n six_o thousand_o mark_n neither_o yet_o be_v the_o pope_n move_v at_o the_o complaint_n make_v unto_o he_o thereof_o at_o lion_n but_o although_o they_o appeal_v unto_o he_o yet_o be_v they_o constrain_v with_o all_o kind_n of_o rigour_n but_o we_o must_v bring_v here_o the_o whole_a author_n throughout_o if_o we_o shall_v set_v down_o all_o that_o he_o say_v of_o these_o tyrannical_a exaction_n it_o suffice_v we_o here_o for_o conclusion_n to_o show_v the_o description_n that_o he_o make_v of_o the_o miserable_a state_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n under_o gregory_n and_o innocent_n under_o gregory_n in_o these_o word_n in_o those_o time_n faith_n wax_v cold_a and_o scarce_o seem_v to_o sparkle_v be_v almost_o bring_v to_o ash_n for_o simony_n be_v practise_v without_o blush_v usurer_n open_o by_o diverse_a occasion_n do_v shameless_o extort_v money_n from_o the_o mean_a sort_n of_o people_n charity_n be_v dead_a the_o liberty_n of_o the_o church_n be_v wither_v away_o religion_n be_v become_v vile_a and_o base_a and_o the_o daughter_n zion_n be_v as_o a_o boldfaced_a harlot_n have_v no_o shame_n and_o of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n he_o proper_o speak_v plentiful_a set_v forth_o the_o injury_n thereof_o which_o he_o conclude_v in_o this_o one_o word_n armato_n supplicat_fw-la ense_fw-mi potens_fw-la he_o entreat_v we_o with_o a_o sword_n set_v to_o our_o throat_n it_o be_v better_o for_o we_o to_o die_v than_o to_o see_v the_o evil_n of_o our_o nation_n &_o of_o the_o saint_n but_o these_o be_v scourge_n to_o englishman_n they_o have_v commit_v many_o offence_n and_o god_n be_v angry_a make_v the_o hypocrite_n reign_n and_o the_o tyrant_n rule_v for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o people_n but_o under_o innocent_n heu_n heu_fw-la alas_o alas_o now_o the_o natural_a inhabitant_n of_o the_o kingdom_n be_v despise_v man_n holy_a learned_a and_o religious_a and_o stranger_n be_v intrude_v that_o be_v unworthy_a of_o all_o honour_n altogether_o ignorant_a of_o the_o letter_n and_o language_n of_o the_o country_n whole_o unprofitable_a for_o confession_n and_o preach_n not_o stay_v neither_o in_o gesture_n nor_o in_o manner_n extorter_n of_o money_n and_o contemner_n of_o soul_n in_o time_n
past_o holy_a religious_a and_o learned_a the_o holy_a ghost_n work_v with_o they_o and_o inspire_v they_o be_v unwilling_o draw_v into_o the_o chair_n which_o now_o be_v violent_o occupy_v per_fw-la fas_fw-la &_o nefas_fw-la by_o courtier_n wrangler_n in_o law_n and_o barbarous_a all_o the_o house_n of_o which_o the_o election_n pertain_v to_o the_o pope_n be_v thereby_o destroy_v patronage_n be_v now_o a_o burden_n not_o a_o honour_n a_o damage_n not_o a_o profit_n o_o pope_n father_n of_o father_n why_o suffer_v thou_o the_o climate_n of_o christian_n to_o be_v defile_v with_o such_o person_n worthy_o therefore_o worthy_o be_v chase_v from_o thy_o own_o city_n and_o seat_n as_o another_o vagabond_n cain_n thou_o be_v force_v to_o banishment_n thy_o enemy_n prosper_v thou_o fly_v before_o the_o partaker_n of_o frederick_n and_o they_o which_o persecute_v thou_o be_v swift_a and_o mighty_a every_o where_o thy_o bull_n do_v shine_v as_o lightning_n against_o they_o that_o obey_v thou_o and_o be_v of_o no_o esteem_n with_o such_o as_o rebel_v prelate_n be_v every_o where_o suspend_v that_o other_o may_v he_o provide_v of_o their_o benefice_n which_o be_v unworthy_a barbarous_a and_o unknown_a who_o seek_v the_o milk_n of_o the_o sheep_n of_o the_o lord_n fold_v sheer_a they_o flay_v they_o and_o pluck_v out_o their_o bowel_n o_o lord_n god_n of_o vengeance_n when_o will_v thou_o sharpen_v thy_o sword_n as_o lightning_n and_o make_v it_o drink_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o such_o man_n in_o france_n under_o the_o reign_n of_o s._n lewis_n innocent_n spare_v we_o not_o the_o more_o although_o he_o sojourn_v there_o hear_v what_o the_o same_o author_n say_v he_o be_v no_o soon_o come_v to_o lion_n but_o without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o chapter_n he_o will_v give_v away_o the_o vacant_a prebend_n the_o canon_n resist_v he_o to_o his_o face_n &_o threaten_v those_o to_o who_o he_o give_v they_o that_o if_o they_o come_v thither_o the_o archbishop_n shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o hinder_v they_o from_o cast_v they_o headlong_o into_o the_o river_n rhosne_n but_o as_o the_o matter_n pass_v further_o other_o more_o intermeddle_v in_o it_o for_o say_v he_o all_z and_o every_o one_o see_v and_o perceive_v that_o the_o pope_n do_v insatiable_o gape_v after_o money_n and_o spoil_n to_o the_o damage_n and_o impoverishment_n of_o many_o and_o many_o already_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o he_o have_v the_o same_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o looss_v as_o be_v grant_v from_o heaven_n to_o s._n peter_n be_v know_v to_o be_v altogether_o unlike_a to_o s._n peter_n in_o france_n many_o nobleman_n conspire_v against_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o church_n which_o we_o never_o remember_v to_o have_v happen_v before_o as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o this_o charter_n write_v in_o the_o french_a tongue_n which_o be_v there_o at_o large_a express_v the_o sum_n of_o it_o be_v this_o all_z the_o confederate_n who_o seal_n do_v hang_v at_o that_o writing_n unite_z themselves_o together_o for_o to_o defend_v their_o right_n and_o prerogative_n against_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o there_o be_v name_v for_o head_n of_o the_o league_n the_o duke_n of_o bourgondie_n the_o earl_n perron_n of_o britain_n and_o the_o earl_n of_o angolesme_n and_o of_o s._n paul_n who_o if_o any_o of_o the_o league_n have_v need_n be_v to_o help_v they_o with_o necessary_a force_n and_o that_o say_v they_o because_o the_o clergy_n make_v they_o of_o worse_a condition_n than_o the_o heathen_n of_o who_o god_n say_v give_v unto_o caesar_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v caesar_n and_o unto_o god_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v god_n and_o by_o these_o new_a custom_n abolish_v their_o ancient_a privilege_n whereas_o indeed_o the_o kingdom_n have_v not_o be_v get_v by_o the_o pride_n of_o the_o clergy_n but_o by_o the_o soldier_n and_o man_n of_o war_n which_o when_o the_o pope_n understand_v fear_v lest_o that_o be_v do_v by_o intelligence_n with_o frederick_n he_o think_v it_o his_o wise_a course_n to_o content_v they_o in_o their_o grievance_n and_o to_o appease_v the_o chief_a by_o give_v they_o store_n of_o benefice_n yet_o nevertheless_o he_o send_v the_o friar_n preacher_n and_o minor_n to_o all_o the_o prelate_n of_o france_n who_o require_v of_o they_o to_o lend_v he_o money_n promise_v to_o restore_v it_o they_o so_o soon_o as_o he_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o take_v his_o breath_n but_o king_n lewis_n suspect_v the_o covetousness_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n forbid_v all_o the_o prelate_n of_o his_o kingdom_n under_o pain_n of_o lose_v all_o their_o good_n that_o none_o shall_v in_o any_o such_o sort_n impoverish_v his_o land_n and_o so_o these_o sophistical_a legate_n of_o the_o pope_n depart_v out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n hiss_v at_o and_o deride_v of_o all_o man_n yet_o true_a it_o be_v say_v the_o author_n that_o after_o infinite_a extortion_n in_o france_n worthy_a of_o eternal_a silence_n the_o pope_n consent_v to_o king_n lewis_n in_o favour_n of_o his_o voyage_n to_o the_o holy_a land_n that_o he_o may_v collect_v a_o ten_o for_o three_o year_n on_o condition_n that_o himself_o may_v also_o for_o other_o three_o year_n follow_v receive_v the_o like_a which_o be_v with_o such_o rigour_n extort_a that_o the_o churchman_n that_o have_v yearly_a but_o twenty_o shilling_n come_v in_o and_o be_v ready_a to_o perish_v for_o hunger_n be_v constrain_v without_o all_o pity_n to_o pay_v two_o of_o they_o and_o of_o this_o cruelty_n he_o bring_v many_o example_n and_o for_o that_o king_n s._n lewis_n do_v permit_v or_o tolerate_v the_o pope_n to_o make_v these_o extortion_n in_o his_o kingdom_n it_o be_v undoubted_o believe_v that_o his_o voyage_n to_o the_o holy_a land_n take_v such_o unfortunat_a success_n now_o of_o all_o these_o as_o we_o have_v abovesaid_a these_o new_a friar_n preacher_n and_o minorite_n be_v the_o executor_n be_v the_o pope_n ordinary_a publican_n or_o toll-gatherers_a who_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n also_o devour_v one_o another_o and_o which_o be_v terrible_a and_o of_o unlucky_a presage_n say_v he_o no_o monastic_a order_n in_o the_o space_n of_o three_o or_o four_o hundred_o year_n or_o upward_o have_v grow_v so_o much_o and_o so_o soon_o near_o a_o downfall_n as_o be_v their_o order_n in_o twenty_o four_o year_n that_o their_o mansion_n be_v first_o found_v in_o england_n when_o any_o great_a and_o rich_a man_n lie_v at_o point_n of_o death_n they_o come_v diligent_o about_o they_o to_o draw_v profit_n and_o riches_n from_o they_o not_o without_o the_o hurt_n and_o hindrance_n of_o the_o ordinary_n and_o wrest_v from_o they_o confession_n and_o secret_a testament_n only_o recommend_v unto_o they_o their_o order_n and_o prefer_v it_o before_o all_o other_o so_o that_o no_o faithful_a man_n believe_v to_o be_v save_v unless_o he_o be_v govern_v by_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o preacher_n and_o minorite_n who_o be_v careful_a of_o get_v privilege_n be_v counsellor_n chamberlain_n and_o treasurer_n in_o the_o court_n of_o king_n and_o potentate_n paranymphe_n and_o mariage-maker_n executor_n of_o the_o pope_n extortion_n in_o their_o preach_n either_o flatterer_n or_o most_o bite_a reprover_n and_o in_o confession_n either_o discloser_n or_o undiscreet_a reprehender_n who_o do_v not_o here_o perceive_v the_o true_a picture_n of_o the_o jesuite_n and_o there_o he_o further_o set_v down_o the_o great_a privilege_n give_v by_o the_o pope_n for_o to_o be_v serve_v of_o they_o which_o in_o this_o and_o other_o place_n may_v be_v read_v matthew_n note_v that_o when_o they_o have_v discover_v that_o the_o king_n of_o norway_n be_v devout_a with_o great_a industry_n they_o provide_v a_o certain_a stone_n of_o white_a marble_n which_o they_o say_v they_o have_v buy_v for_o a_o great_a price_n wherein_o they_o feign_v be_v print_v the_o sole_a of_o the_o foot_n of_o our_o lord_n ascend_v up_o into_o heaven_n that_o other_o of_o they_o show_v some_o of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o milk_n of_o the_o virgin_n marie_n in_o those_o first_o age_n of_o the_o church_n gentle_a reader_n when_o all_o thing_n be_v fresh_a how_o come_v it_o that_o there_o be_v no_o speech_n of_o any_o such_o thing_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n this_o good_a monk_n add_v in_o these_o day_n multi_fw-la generati_fw-la per_fw-la incubos_fw-la many_o child_n be_v beget_v by_o spirit_n which_o see_v it_o follow_v together_o in_o the_o same_o place_n there_o be_v none_o but_o may_v understand_v what_o be_v mean_v thereby_o gregory_n attempt_v to_o stretch_v forth_o his_o hand_n unto_o the_o east_n part_n and_o behold_v with_o what_o success_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o conquest_n make_v of_o constantinople_n by_o the_o western_a people_n the_o emperor_n baldwin_n have_v submit_v the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n to_o that_o of_o rome_n in_o hope_n to_o
wonder_n that_o the_o pope_n then_o preach_v go_v from_o thence_o he_o confirm_v all_o the_o city_n of_o romania_n and_o tuscan_n leave_v cardinal_n octaviano_n behind_o in_o lombardie_n with_o a_o army_n but_o yet_o be_v very_o doubtful_a in_o mind_n he_o delay_v his_o entry_n into_o rome_n for_o the_o roman_n through_o his_o absence_n augment_v in_o reputation_n &_o the_o pope_n leave_v rome_n have_v now_o for_o many_o year_n hold_v their_o seat_n in_o diverse_a other_o place_n as_o at_o viterbe_n oruietto_n perugia_n anagnia_n assisia_n that_o there_o they_o may_v rule_v and_o govern_v over_o other_o province_n be_v uncertain_a what_o authority_n or_o power_n they_o shall_v retain_v within_o the_o city_n and_o at_o this_o very_a instant_n the_o roman_n call_v brancalone_n from_o bologna_n a_o man_n very_o famous_a for_o his_o justice_n and_o equity_n to_o be_v a_o senator_n of_o rome_n who_o doubt_v the_o petulancy_n and_o insolency_n of_o their_o youth_n will_v not_o accept_v of_o it_o without_o be_v confirm_v therein_o for_o three_o year_n and_o pledge_n give_v he_o of_o thirty_o of_o the_o chief_a citizen_n son_n as_o also_o they_o themselves_o bind_v by_o solemn_a oath_n to_o do_v their_o uttermost_a endeavour_n that_o they_o may_v faithful_o obey_v he_o who_o he_o present_o send_v to_o bologna_n there_o to_o be_v keep_v under_o safe_a custody_n and_o questionless_a he_o bear_v himself_o so_o strict_o in_o this_o charge_n as_o he_o strike_v terror_n into_o the_o best_a of_o they_o but_o the_o more_o authority_n be_v ascribe_v to_o he_o the_o more_o the_o same_o be_v extenuate_v towards_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o mean_a while_o the_o roman_n begin_v to_o grieve_v that_o the_o mighty_a gain_n which_o daily_o accrue_v by_o the_o wonderful_a concourse_n to_o the_o roman_a court_n do_v now_o through_o the_o pope_n absence_n both_o cease_v &_o be_v otherwhere_o divert_v and_o so_o at_o length_n they_o suppose_v that_o without_o singular_a imputation_n they_o can_v not_o for_o so_o long_a time_n have_v their_o bishop_n want_v wherefore_o they_o send_v ambassador_n to_o innocent_a be_v at_o perugia_n to_o entreat_v he_o that_o he_o will_v return_v to_o rome_n that_o so_o he_o may_v help_v his_o flock_n 3_o matth_n paris_n in_o henrico_n 3_o like_o a_o good_a pastor_n and_o that_o rome_n may_v enjoy_v her_o bishop_n as_o other_o city_n enjoy_v their_o prelate_n for_o they_o think_v it_o a_o great_a abuse_n and_o error_n that_o only_a rome_n which_o be_v instile_v the_o empress_n of_o other_o city_n shall_v among_o so_o many_o other_o city_n for_o so_o long_a time_n be_v deprive_v of_o her_o prelate_n and_o bishop_n for_o say_v matthew_n paris_n while_o he_o live_v beyond_o the_o alps_n gape_v after_o the_o profit_n of_o concurrent_n and_o open_v his_o bosom_n to_o gift_n he_o be_v vagrant_a and_o altogether_o unsettle_a by_o be_v resident_a among_o the_o cisalpines_n but_o he_o frame_v delay_n they_o once_o again_o urge_v he_o after_o a_o prevalent_a manner_n intimate_v to_o he_o how_o they_o great_o wonder_v that_o he_o will_v run_v up_o and_o down_o here_o and_o there_o like_o a_o wander_a and_o instable_a person_n &_o leave_v rome_n his_o pontifical_a seat_n together_o with_o his_o sheep_n whereof_o he_o be_v to_o yield_v a_o strict_a account_n to_o the_o supreme_a judge_n he_o leave_v they_o to_o be_v rend_v &_o tear_v by_o the_o incursion_n of_o wolf_n himself_o only_o gape_v and_o thirst_v after_o coin_n as_o also_o with_o this_o peremptory_a clause_n annex_v that_o he_o shall_v either_o come_v then_o or_o never_o but_o when_o he_o see_v that_o the_o roman_n threaten_v the_o perugian_o &_o assisians_n both_o with_o siege_n &_o ruin_n if_o they_o long_o detain_v he_o depart_v from_o perugia_n he_o go_v towards_o rome_n yet_o tremble_v &_o fearful_a he_o make_v his_o entry_n because_o it_o be_v report_v that_o the_o roman_n will_v present_o redemaund_v of_o he_o that_o money_n which_o at_o his_o instigation_n they_o have_v disburse_v in_o the_o attempt_n against_o frederick_n and_o in_o effect_n not_o long_o after_o the_o people_n require_v at_o his_o hand_n the_o damage_n which_o they_o have_v sustain_v through_o his_o absence_n for_o say_v they_o the_o world_n know_v well_o enough_o that_o he_o be_v neither_o bishop_n of_o lion_n perugia_n nor_o angiers_n where_o he_o do_v often_o reside_v but_o of_o rome_n in_o which_o very_a word_n we_o may_v see_v they_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v he_o for_o universal_a bishop_n and_o out_o of_o doubt_n have_v not_o the_o senator_n pacify_v the_o people_n he_o will_v have_v undergo_v some_o great_a trouble_n now_o on_o the_o other_o side_n conrade_n frederick_n son_n pass_v over_o into_o italy_n the_o more_o to_o encourage_v his_o adherent_n and_o diverse_a time_n conflict_n and_o slaughter_n fall_v out_o in_o the_o city_n while_o the_o guelph_n rise_v against_o the_o gibelline_n and_o the_o church_n rage_v against_o the_o empire_n both_o of_o they_o cruel_o prosecute_n and_o subvert_v one_o another_o and_o the_o more_o horrible_a this_o war_n be_v in_o that_o it_o fall_v out_o within_o the_o selfsame_o wall_n and_o under_o one_o roof_n and_o building_n that_o the_o like_a plot_n and_o example_n of_o revenge_n be_v never_o read_v of_o throughout_o all_o antiquity_n afterward_o march_v further_o up_o into_o his_o kingdom_n he_o take_v in_o naples_n which_o have_v former_o yield_v itself_o to_o the_o pope_n overthrow_v his_o army_n over_o which_o his_o kinsman_n william_n be_v general_n and_o put_v to_o the_o sword_n four_o thousand_o foot_n which_o be_v even_o the_o flower_n of_o the_o italian_a youth_n he_o recover_v all_o his_o city_n reduce_v his_o subject_n under_o due_a obedience_n and_o thus_o bring_v the_o pope_n to_o a_o very_a hard_a point_n but_o amid_o these_o anxiety_n the_o pope_n think_v good_a to_o excite_v a_o opposite_a against_o conrade_n which_o be_v richard_n earl_n of_o cornwall_n brother_n to_o the_o king_n of_o england_n be_v a_o prince_n according_a as_o the_o fame_n run_v of_o he_o of_o indomptable_a courage_n wherefore_o to_o this_o end_n and_o scope_n he_o offer_v unto_o he_o the_o kingdom_n of_o naples_n and_o sicily_n to_o be_v hold_v in_o homage_n of_o he_o use_v herein_o as_o the_o historiographer_n say_v his_o diabolical_a sophistication_n who_o say_v all_o this_o will_v i_o give_v thou_o if_o fall_v down_o thou_o will_v worship_v i_o beside_o his_o bull_n shall_v not_o be_v spare_v against_o conrade_n wherein_o he_o shall_v be_v anathematise_v and_o his_o subject_n absolve_v of_o their_o oath_n of_o obedience_n with_o other_o like_a interdiction_n for_o he_o have_v former_o denounce_v he_o a_o heretic_n and_o the_o heresy_n be_v in_o that_o he_o obey_v not_o his_o interdict_v and_o leave_v not_o the_o kingdom_n to_o his_o disposition_n richard_n though_o he_o be_v earnest_o solicit_v by_o legate_n albertus_n who_o be_v send_v to_o this_o end_n and_o purpose_n not_o remain_v satisfy_v in_o word_n require_v pledge_n to_o be_v give_v he_o of_o the_o most_o eminent_a person_n of_o his_o family_n as_o also_o sufficient_a sum_n of_o money_n to_o defray_v the_o charge_n of_o the_o war_n certain_a hold_v also_o which_o lie_v on_o the_o frontier_n of_o his_o kingdom_n he_o demand_v to_o be_v deliver_v into_o his_o hand_n whereinto_o be_v urge_v he_o may_v at_o any_o time_n retire_v otherwise_o say_v he_o speak_v to_o the_o legate_n it_o be_v as_o much_o as_o one_o shall_v say_v i_o sell_v or_o give_v unto_o thou_o the_o moon_n ascend_v and_o lay_v hold_v on_o she_o when_o therefore_o they_o can_v no_o way_n agree_v upon_o the_o matter_n he_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o king_n of_o england_n himself_o richard_n brother_n a_o prince_n say_v matthew_n very_o credulous_a and_o apt_a to_o embrace_v his_o own_o prejudice_n to_o who_o he_o make_v offer_v of_o all_o the_o croisado_fw-mi force_n destine_v for_o palestina_n and_o they_o shall_v serve_v in_o this_o expedition_n hereupon_o grow_v a_o wonderful_a discontent_n and_o murmur_n of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o all_o the_o prelate_n of_o palestina_n together_o with_o the_o templar_n and_o hospitaler_n who_o fall_v into_o a_o great_a detestation_n of_o the_o pope_n delusion_n that_o have_v long_a time_n be_v feed_v with_o such_o large_a hope_n he_o go_v now_o about_o not_o to_o forsake_v but_o rather_o to_o betray_v they_o yet_o the_o king_n of_o england_n proceed_v on_o and_o accept_v of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o sicily_n offer_v in_o his_o son_n edmond_n name_n whatsoever_o money_n he_o be_v able_a to_o raise_v either_o of_o the_o christian_n or_o jew_n he_o send_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o give_v he_o authority_n to_o raise_v what_o treasure_n soever_o he_o can_v or_o at_o what_o rate_v soever_o any_o where_n in_o his_o name_n and_o hereunto_o he_o oblige_v himself_o upon_o
pain_n of_o deposition_n from_o his_o crown_n and_o state_n with_o which_o sum_n of_o money_n the_o pope_n be_v back_v he_o levy_v a_o army_n conrade_z on_o the_o other_o side_n be_v no_o whit_n hereat_o dismay_v but_o intend_v to_o resist_v the_o pope_n and_o therefore_o he_o the_o more_o encourage_v his_o noble_n and_o subject_n and_o here_o our_o historiographer_n a_o monk_n burst_v out_o into_o these_o word_n whether_o the_o pope_n do_v well_o herein_o or_o no_o let_v the_o judge_n of_o all_o judge_n decide_v but_o for_o a_o abridgement_n of_o this_o war_n this_o miserable_a prince_n have_v poison_n present_v he_o who_o waste_v away_o by_o little_a and_o little_a when_o he_o draw_v near_o to_o his_o last_o breath_n in_o complain_v manner_n he_o utter_v these_o word_n the_o church_n which_o shall_v be_v a_o mother_n to_o my_o father_n and_o i_o be_v rather_o a_o stepmother_n and_o so_o he_o leave_v behind_o he_o a_o son_n who_o be_v but_o two_o year_n old_a some_o impute_v this_o poison_n to_o a_o brother_n of_o he_o other_o to_o the_o pope_n minister_n which_o of_o the_o two_o be_v most_o likely_a as_o may_v be_v presume_v by_o the_o state_n and_o condition_n of_o the_o present_a affair_n matthew_n say_v that_o have_v hear_v this_o news_n with_o great_a joy_n of_o heart_n cheerfulness_n of_o countenance_n and_o elevation_n of_o voice_n he_o utter_v these_o word_n i_o rejoice_v certain_o and_o so_o let_v all_o the_o upholder_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n exult_v together_o with_o i_o because_o two_o of_o our_o great_a enemy_n be_v now_o dead_a one_o ecclesiastical_a the_o other_o of_o the_o laity_n robert_n bishop_n of_o lincoln_n and_o conrade_n king_n of_o sicily_n he_o therefore_o embrace_v this_o opportunity_n find_v it_o a_o easy_a matter_n to_o recover_v into_o his_o hand_n naples_n capua_n and_o a_o part_n of_o the_o kingdom_n but_o manfred_n be_v assist_v by_o the_o noble_n of_o the_o kingdom_n he_o both_o cross_v he_o in_o this_o prosperous_a course_n of_o his_o proceed_n and_o dare_v to_o wage_v battle_n vanquish_v and_o overthrow_v he_o in_o the_o same_o and_o so_o his_o last_o error_n be_v worse_a than_o the_o first_o whereupon_o innocent_n take_v such_o sorrow_n to_o heart_n that_o within_o a_o few_o day_n after_o he_o die_v at_o naples_n suruive_a conrade_n but_o a_o few_o month_n and_o be_v molest_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o lincoln_n mean_n even_o to_o his_o last_o gasp_n as_o in_o proper_a place_n shall_v plain_o appear_v these_o thing_n occur_v in_o the_o year_n 1254_o 1254._o an._n 1254._o in_o the_o month_n of_o december_n and_o so_o both_o the_o king_n of_o england_n treasure_n and_o ambitious_a design_n perish_v together_o with_o he_o the_o volume_n of_o the_o decretal_n be_v ascribe_v to_o this_o innocent_a wherein_o his_o drift_n and_o main_a scope_n be_v that_o whatsoever_o have_v be_v by_o his_o predecessor_n out_o of_o wonderful_a pride_n digest_v and_o decree_v against_o the_o temporal_a monarchy_n by_o they_o it_o may_v be_v ratify_v and_o make_v authentic_a as_o also_o whatsoever_o profane_a or_o sacrilegious_a act_n they_o have_v perform_v against_o the_o spiritual_a it_o may_v be_v in_o they_o as_o it_o be_v hallow_v and_o consecrate_v to_o he_o also_o the_o canonist_n have_v reference_n over_o who_o he_o be_v head_n and_o principal_a have_v promote_v they_o to_o some_o of_o the_o high_a dignity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o many_o of_o they_o also_o he_o raise_v to_o the_o cardinal_n hat_n out_o of_o which_o fountain_n spring_v that_o hideous_a gulf_n of_o forensiall_a contention_n and_o first_o of_o all_o that_o detestable_a clause_n of_o non_fw-la obstante_fw-la of_o which_o matthew_n so_o often_o make_v mention_n after_o the_o induction_n whereof_o all_o the_o ancient_a canon_n of_o the_o counsel_n and_o decree_n of_o the_o old_a pope_n as_o also_o the_o very_a liberty_n and_o privilege_n of_o the_o church_n begin_v at_o length_n to_o be_v put_v down_o so_o that_o this_o abuse_n break_v afterward_o into_o the_o civil_a court_n it_o wrought_v wonderful_a subversion_n of_o equity_n and_o justice_n from_o hence_o proceed_v that_o common_a complaint_n out_o alas_o alas_o why_o look_v we_o after_o these_o day_n behold_v the_o court_n civil_a be_v now_o corrupt_v according_a to_o the_o example_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a and_o the_o river_n be_v poison_v by_o a_o sulphurous_a fountain_n now_o the_o manner_n be_v that_o the_o money_n ordain_v for_o war_n in_o the_o holy_a land_n and_o the_o indulgence_n of_o the_o croysadoe_n be_v then_o in_o their_o use_n by_o the_o pope_n divert_a against_o the_o emperor_n and_o other_o prince_n this_o man_n that_o he_o may_v exceed_v all_o other_o divulge_v out_o of_o the_o pulpit_n that_o whosoever_o take_v up_o arm_n against_o conrade_n he_o shall_v obtain_v more_o ample_a remission_n of_o sin_n than_o if_o he_o fight_v against_o the_o sultan_n so_o that_o if_o any_o man_n be_v cross_v against_o conrade_n both_o he_o his_o father_n and_o mother_n shall_v gain_v full_a pardon_n of_o all_o their_o sin_n he_o marry_v also_o his_o niece_n very_o high_o and_o among_o the_o rest_n one_o he_o marry_v to_o henry_n frederick_n son_n and_o nephew_n to_o the_o king_n of_o england_n that_o thus_o he_o may_v be_v adopt_v a_o son_n of_o the_o church_n which_o seem_v a_o thing_n marvelous_a strange_a to_o all_o the_o noble_n of_o the_o empire_n that_o a_o pope_n say_v they_o will_v presume_v so_o to_o disparage_v a_o noble_a &_o royal_a gentleman_n in_o conclusion_n he_o so_o peel_v and_o poll_v the_o christian_a commonwealth_n as_o upon_o due_a competation_n make_v it_o be_v find_v say_v our_o author_n and_o that_o most_o true_o and_o exact_o that_o this_o present_a pope_n innocent_n the_o four_o have_v more_o impoverish_v the_o church_n universal_a than_o all_o his_o other_o predecessor_n from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o primitive_a papacy_n and_o the_o revenue_n of_o the_o clergy_n by_o he_o alienate_v in_o england_n which_o have_v ancient_o be_v endow_v therewith_o by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n amount_v to_o more_o than_o seventie_o thousand_o mark_n whereas_o the_o king_n mere_a revenue_n can_v not_o be_v value_v at_o a_o three_o part_n so_o much_o opposition_n and_o for_o that_o same_o robert_n bishop_n of_o lincoln_n who_o we_o former_o speak_v of_o it_o shall_v seem_v innocent_a have_v command_v he_o to_o perform_v some_o wicked_a office_n which_o say_v matthew_n he_o do_v both_o to_o he_o and_o diverse_a other_o prelate_n of_o england_n wherefore_o he_o make_v answer_v by_o a_o epistle_n which_o he_o produce_v whole_a and_o entire_a in_o this_o tenor_n health_n your_o discretion_n shall_v understand_v 3_o matth._n paris_n in_o henrico_n 3_o that_o devout_o and_o reveren_o i_o obey_v with_o filial_a affection_n the_o apostolical_a injunction_n and_o so_o affect_v reverend_a honour_n i_o oppugn_v and_o resist_v such_o as_o be_v opposite_a to_o command_v apostolical_a for_o to_o both_o these_o course_n i_o be_o oblige_v by_o commandment_n divine_a the_o apostolical_a command_v neither_o can_v be_v nor_o be_v any_o other_o than_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n master_n and_o head_n of_o the_o apostle_n who_o figure_n and_o person_n our_o lord_n the_o pope_n special_o represent_v in_o the_o hierarchy_n of_o the_o church_n be_v consonant_a and_o conformable_a and_o there_o he_o enter_v into_o a_o detestation_n of_o that_o clause_n non_fw-la obstante_fw-la from_o whence_o spring_v up_o say_v he_o the_o head_n and_o fountain_n of_o inconstancy_n boldness_n and_o obstinacy_n of_o shameful_a lie_v deceive_a distrustful_o believe_v or_o give_v credit_n to_o another_o and_o so_o from_o these_o a_o number_n of_o other_o subsequent_a vice_n which_o do_v but_o disturb_v and_o coinquinat_fw-la the_o purity_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o the_o peace_n and_o quiet_a of_o civil_a conversation_n furthermore_o say_v he_o next_o to_o the_o sin_n of_o lucifer_n which_o shall_v be_v the_o same_o of_o antichrist_n the_o son_n of_o perdition_n in_o the_o end_n of_o time_n who_o god_n shall_v destroy_v with_o the_o breath_n of_o his_o mouth_n there_o neither_o be_v nor_o can_v be_v any_o kind_n of_o sin_n so_o opposite_a and_o contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n evangelicall_a and_o of_o the_o apostle_n and_o to_o the_o same_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n so_o odious_a detestable_a and_o abominable_a as_o to_o kill_v and_o destroy_v soul_n by_o defraud_v they_o of_o pastoral_a office_n and_o ministery_n etc._n etc._n the_o introductor_n of_o such_o manqueller_n and_o butchery_n among_o the_o sheep_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v worse_o than_o the_o murderer_n themselves_o near_a both_o to_o lucifer_n and_o antichrist_n and_o particular_o they_o be_v worse_o in_o this_o degree_n in_o that_o be_v supereminent_a of_o place_n out_o of_o
word_n we_o severe_o prohibit_v this_o error_n 3_o matth._n paris_n in_o henrico_n 3_o and_o excommunicate_a the_o maintainer_n and_o defender_n thereof_o as_o man_n say_v our_o author_n that_o dare_v touch_v the_o holy_a hill_n to_o be_v oppress_v with_o god_n glory_n and_o that_o rash_o endeavour_n to_o search_v out_o the_o inscrutable_a secret_n of_o god_n and_o be_v presumptuous_o inquisitive_a into_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n which_o be_v like_o bottomless_a depth_n afterward_o the_o author_n also_o note_v in_o diverse_a place_n how_o they_o labour_v as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lay_v to_o overthrow_v the_o parisian_a academy_n to_o who_o law_n and_o statute_n they_o will_v in_o no_o wise_n be_v subject_a since_o they_o be_v make_v confessor_n and_o counsellor_n to_o king_n the_o student_n therefore_o be_v constrain_v to_o contribute_v and_o make_v a_o collection_n every_o one_o according_a to_o his_o mean_n to_o send_v to_o rome_n and_o every_o one_o week_n allowance_n be_v cut_v short_a but_o they_o find_v the_o pope_n adverse_a to_o their_o project_n as_o also_o the_o cardinal_n of_o the_o same_o stamp_n who_o in_o the_o behalf_n of_o the_o mendicant_n augment_v the_o number_n of_o divinity_n doctor_n that_o so_o they_o may_v be_v bring_v in_o by_o mean_n of_o which_o schism_n the_o university_n be_v in_o great_a danger_n of_o a_o dissipation_n what_o be_v the_o effect_n and_o issue_n of_o all_o these_o turbulency_n will_v afterward_o more_o manifest_o appear_v concern_v the_o waldense_n they_o do_v so_o spread_v abroad_o both_o in_o france_n and_o germany_n that_o throughout_o the_o course_n of_o all_o history_n we_o may_v as_o it_o be_v discern_v their_o print_n and_o footstep_n and_o also_o in_o lombardie_n where_o petrus_n veronensis_n a_o dominican_n use_v all_o rigour_n of_o inquisition_n against_o those_o who_o be_v call_v credentes_fw-la believer_n indict_v upon_o they_o all_o kind_n of_o severe_a punishment_n when_o seize_v on_o some_o of_o the_o principal_a he_o be_v find_v slay_v in_o the_o territory_n of_o milan_n one_o carinus_n be_v apprehend_v for_o this_o slaughter_n who_o notwithstanding_o the_o ten_o day_n after_o be_v dismiss_v by_o the_o praetor_n as_o guiltless_a and_o petrus_n veronensis_n lest_o other_o shall_v be_v discourage_v canonize_v by_o the_o pope_n for_o a_o saint_n but_o we_o must_v not_o omit_v to_o mention_v how_o innocent_a though_o he_o employ_v much_o labour_n and_o study_v to_o this_o end_n and_o in_o authorise_v his_o decretal_n nor_o any_o of_o his_o successor_n can_v ever_o effect_v that_o the_o french_a church_n will_v be_v subject_a to_o they_o as_o concern_v the_o canon_n they_o rest_v in_o the_o ancient_a collection_n of_o they_o which_o common_o be_v call_v corpus_fw-la canonum_fw-la and_o for_o the_o epistle_n of_o the_o pope_n they_o approve_v of_o none_o but_o till_o gregory_n the_o second_o time_n that_o be_v to_o say_v before_o boniface_n archbishop_n of_o magunce_n infringe_v the_o liberty_n of_o the_o french_a synod_n about_o the_o year_n 742_o which_o be_v so_o sound_a and_o good_a law_n 42._o johannes_n andreas_n in_o prologun_n l._n 1._o nichol._n 1._o ad_fw-la episc_n in_o gallia_n constitutos_fw-la in_o epist_n bonifacij_fw-la l._n 3._o epist_n 42._o that_o john_n andreas_n a_o famous_a civilian_n testify_v in_o his_o prologue_n upon_o the_o decretal_n that_o whosoever_o cite_v any_o thing_n not_o conceive_v within_o this_o body_n of_o the_o canon_n he_o be_v to_o be_v esteem_v a_o criminal_a of_o false_a testimony_n the_o which_o be_v far_o from_o that_o opinion_n which_o pope_n nicholas_n the_o first_o hold_v in_o the_o nineteenth_o distinction_n above_o by_o we_o mention_v 53._o progression_n alexander_n the_o four_o succeed_v innocent_a he_o treat_v with_o richard_n earl_n of_o cornwall_n and_o with_o the_o king_n of_o england_n for_o his_o son_n edmond_n investiture_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o apulia_n and_o sicily_n conradinus_n pretend_a emperor_n and_o frederick_n duke_n of_o austria_n not_o much_o differ_v in_o year_n be_v both_o behead_v in_o the_o market_n place_n of_o naples_n a_o duel_n appoint_v between_o peter_n king_n of_o arragon_n and_o charles_n of_o anjou_n diverse_a succession_n of_o pope_n pope_n innocent_a die_v at_o naples_n the_o governor_n shut_v the_o gate_n and_o enjoin_v the_o cardinal_n to_o choose_v a_o successor_n this_o be_v renaldus_n of_o anagnia_n cardinal_n of_o hostia_fw-la who_o be_v call_v alexander_n the_o four_o this_o man_n whether_o out_o of_o the_o late_a vision_n move_v he_o or_o his_o own_o natural_a instinct_n thereto_o incline_v give_v great_a hope_n of_o better_a regiment_n which_o principal_o be_v conceive_v from_o this_o because_o after_o his_o arrival_n he_o solicit_v in_o general_a by_o letter_n to_o make_v prayer_n in_o his_o behalf_n unto_o god_n that_o he_o may_v prove_v fit_a and_o sufficient_a for_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n for_o his_o other_o successor_n say_v matthew_n never_o use_v any_o such_o custom_n as_o also_o for_o that_o in_o his_o letter_n especial_o in_o those_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o germany_n a_o copy_n whereof_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o aventine_n 3_o auent_n l._n 7._o matth._n paris_n in_o henrico_n 3_o he_o sharp_o rebuke_v their_o abuse_n and_o vice_n but_o say_v matthew_n give_v too_o much_o ear_n to_o the_o imposterous_a whisper_n of_o flatterer_n and_o to_o the_o wicked_a suggestion_n of_o man_n avaricious_a that_o be_v to_o his_o cardinal_n his_o simplicity_n be_v sudden_o divert_v and_o mislead_v and_o his_o bull_n which_o be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o earnest_n and_o testimony_n of_o papal_a integrity_n come_v to_o be_v term_v unexpected_a fraud_n although_o in_o these_o point_n also_o i_o can_v excuse_v he_o that_o rely_v on_o the_o advice_n of_o some_o in_o who_o he_o be_v most_o confident_a and_o by_o the_o persuasion_n of_o pope_n innocent_a the_o four_o his_o predecessor_n who_o on_o his_o death_n bed_v animate_v the_o cardinal_n thereunto_o in_o that_o he_o powerful_o determine_v to_o continue_v the_o war_n begin_v against_o frederick_n partaker_n especial_o against_o manfred_n frederick_n natural_a son_n the_o which_o resolution_n be_v pretend_v with_o devotion_n and_o piety_n because_o nocera_n a_o city_n of_o calabria_n be_v then_o hold_v by_o the_o saracen_n and_o in_o that_o it_o be_v not_o fit_v the_o king_n of_o england_n shall_v so_o soon_o discover_v the_o fraud_n intend_v to_o he_o a_o legate_n be_v send_v which_o by_o a_o ring_n invest_v edmond_n his_o son_n king_n of_o apulia_n and_o sicilia_n and_o this_o incircumspect_a prince_n think_v that_o he_o both_o possess_v the_o city_n and_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o subject_n too_o wherefore_o he_o present_o set_v forward_o on_o his_o journey_n take_v care_n for_o nothing_o but_o how_o he_o may_v convey_v his_o treasure_n through_o france_n present_o after_o another_o legate_n call_v rustand_v be_v send_v to_o demand_v a_o ten_o in_o england_n scotland_n and_o ireland_n as_o also_o he_o have_v authority_n to_o absolve_v the_o king_n of_o his_o vow_n of_o go_v to_o the_o holy_a land_n so_o he_o will_v commence_v a_o war_n against_o manfred_n thus_o this_o credulous_a prince_n suffer_v himself_o to_o be_v delude_v with_o these_o art_n nay_o and_o rustand_v moreover_o both_o in_o london_n and_o other_o city_n preach_v the_o cross_n against_o manfred_n in_o express_a word_n and_o christian_n wonder_v say_v the_o author_n when_o they_o hear_v he_o promise_n as_o large_o unto_o they_o for_o the_o effusion_n of_o christian_a blood_n as_o sometime_o he_o do_v for_o kill_v of_o infidel_n and_o the_o preacher_n instability_n move_v mockery_n and_o laughter_n as_o also_o on_o a_o certain_a day_n at_o the_o end_n of_o a_o sermon_n not_o doubt_v to_o add_v be_v son_n of_o obedience_n and_o wherein_o shall_v this_o consist_v i_o pray_v you_o why_o be_v bind_v to_o such_o or_o such_o a_o merchant_n in_o such_o or_o such_o a_o sum_n of_o money_n but_o now_o observe_v the_o catastrophe_n manfred_n defeat_v the_o pope_n force_n in_o apulia_n and_o the_o subject_n of_o the_o kingdom_n understanding_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v constitute_v they_o a_o foreign_a king_n unknown_a to_o their_o nobility_n as_o also_o that_o the_o croisadoe_n be_v divert_v from_o their_o first_o end_n and_o employ_v against_o they_o as_o infidel_n they_o all_o repair_v to_o manfred_n yea_o even_o they_o who_o before_o be_v of_o the_o pope_n partiality_n raise_v against_o he_o a_o mighty_a army_n wherefore_o say_v our_o author_n the_o usual_a respect_n and_o devotion_n bear_v by_o the_o prelate_n and_o people_n towards_o our_o mother_n the_o roman_a church_n and_o our_o lord_n our_o father_n and_o shepherd_n the_o pope_n be_v almost_o expire_v for_o though_o that_o court_n have_v many_o time_n with_o great_a bitterness_n of_o spirit_n terrify_v christ_n faithful_a one_o yet_o it_o never_o so_o mortal_o
confer_v upon_o charles_n on_o this_o condition_n that_o he_o shall_v pay_v 40000_o crown_n yearly_a in_o token_n of_o homage_n which_o he_o reserve_v to_o himself_o as_o also_o further_o that_o he_o shall_v not_o accept_v of_o the_o roman_a empire_n though_o it_o be_v impose_v upon_o he_o 4._o collen_n l._n 4._o charles_n therefore_o go_v forward_o into_o apulia_n the_o bishop_n of_o constance_n who_o be_v clement_n legate_n accomgany_v he_o give_v plenary_a remission_n of_o sin_n to_o those_o that_o shall_v take_v up_o arm_n for_o charles_n near_o to_o benevento_n he_o discomfit_v manfred_n in_o battle_n who_o be_v there_o slay_v by_o mean_n of_o which_o victory_n he_o present_o after_o secure_v to_o himself_o the_o kingdom_n and_o do_v no_o little_a revive_v the_o faction_n of_o the_o guelph_n and_o pope_n which_o before_o be_v prostrate_a and_o tread_v under_o foot_n over_o all_o italy_n but_o the_o gibelline_n on_o the_o other_o side_n rouse_a themselves_n up_o call_v conrade_n frederick_n nephew_n common_o name_v conradinus_n out_o of_o germany_n to_o oppose_v charles_n he_o in_o the_o late_a end_n of_o the_o year_n 1267_o come_v to_o verona_n about_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o spring_n he_o go_v forward_o into_o apulia_n and_o so_o be_v proclaim_v emperor_n by_o all_o the_o gibelline_n faction_n not_o far_o from_o arezzo_n he_o by_o the_o way_n defeat_v part_n of_o charles_n his_o force_n and_o then_o go_v to_o rome_n overslipping_a the_o pope_n that_o lie_v at_o viterbe_n he_o be_v with_o general_a voice_n and_o acclamation_n receive_v by_o all_o the_o people_n but_o not_o long_o after_o join_v battle_n with_o charles_n in_o the_o confine_n of_o the_o kingdom_n upon_o the_o first_o charge_n he_o put_v his_o army_n to_o flight_n but_o while_o his_o man_n be_v attentive_a on_o booty_n and_o spoil_n charles_n reenforce_v the_o fight_n obtain_v victory_n and_o himself_o with_o the_o chief_a of_o his_o noble_n be_v drive_v to_o fly_v he_o fall_v into_o his_o enemy_n hand_n and_o here_o clement_n pastoral_a mercy_n and_o commiseration_n plain_o appear_v sigonius_n glaunce_o use_v these_o word_n conradine_n by_o charles_n command_v and_o definitive_a sentence_n 4._o collen_n l._n 4._o be_v put_v to_o death_n like_o a_o ordinary_a thief_n because_o by_o arm_n he_o make_v claim_v to_o his_o father_n and_o grandfather_n kingdom_n the_o prince_n be_v at_o great_a variance_n among_o themselves_o upon_o ambiguous_a title_n but_o the_o neapolitan_a historiographer_n and_o some_o other_o write_v free_o that_o after_o charles_n have_v keep_v he_o a_o whole_a year_n in_o prison_n he_o consult_v with_o the_o pope_n what_o shall_v be_v do_v with_o he_o who_o brief_o make_v this_o answer_n conradines_n life_n be_v charles_n his_o death_n and_o conradines_n death_n be_v charles_n his_o life_n neapolitano_n collen_n l._n 4._o hist_o neapolitano_n understand_v by_o this_o that_o he_o be_v to_o be_v put_v to_o death_n the_o historiographer_n observe_v that_o diverse_a of_o the_o french_a nobility_n can_v not_o be_v bring_v to_o condescend_v unto_o this_o sentence_n but_o especial_o the_o earl_n of_o flanders_n charles_n his_o son_n in_o law_n who_o think_v it_o fit_a to_o set_v he_o at_o liberty_n and_o have_v he_o oblige_v by_o some_o matrimonial_a affinity_n who_o opinion_n the_o noble_a sort_n be_v of_o especial_o those_o who_o be_v free_a from_o preiudicat_fw-la passion_n but_o say_v he_o the_o more_o cruel_a sentence_n take_v place_n neither_o certain_o happen_v this_o to_o omit_v the_o law_n of_o nation_n without_o some_o superhumane_a instinct_n for_o beside_o the_o vesper_n or_o sicilian_a evensong_n which_o take_v public_a revenge_n hereof_o charles_n prince_n of_o salerno_n son_n to_o the_o above_o mention_v charles_n have_v thirty_o galley_n overthrow_v himself_o with_o a_o number_n of_o other_o noble_n be_v take_v and_o with_o nine_o other_o keep_v close_a prisoner_n and_o two_o hundred_o other_o gentleman_n have_v their_o head_n cut_v off_o at_o messina_n other_o also_o that_o be_v in_o durance_n in_o a_o popular_a tumult_n who_o set_v fire_n on_o every_o part_n of_o the_o prison_n in_o contempt_n of_o the_o pope_n excommunication_n be_v burn_v together_o in_o the_o same_o flame_n and_o the_o civilians_n of_o the_o kingdom_n assume_v a_o precedent_n from_o the_o proceed_n against_o conradine_n sit_v in_o trial_n upon_o charles_n &_o the_o like_a sentence_n &_o execution_n he_o have_v undergo_v but_o only_o for_o queen_n constantia_n wife_n to_o peter_n king_n of_o arragon_n a_o lady_n of_o singular_a prudence_n and_o piety_n who_o under_o pretext_n of_o convey_v he_o into_o catalogna_n to_o the_o king_n prevent_v this_o intend_a just_a revenge_n for_o which_o she_o purchase_v among_o all_o man_n immortal_a praise_n and_o commendation_n to_o return_v to_o our_o former_a subject_n charles_n cause_v conradine_n be_v scarce_o eighteen_o year_n of_o age_n to_o be_v behead_v in_o the_o public_a market_n place_n of_o naples_n who_o call_v god_n to_o witness_v of_o the_o injury_n and_o injustice_n do_v unto_o he_o herein_o and_o so_o throw_v his_o glove_n up_o into_o the_o air_n he_o denounce_v frederick_n of_o castille_n his_o aunt_n son_n heir_n and_o successor_n to_o his_o kingdom_n austriaca_fw-la henricus_fw-la guldelfingensis_n in_o historia_n austriaca_fw-la in_o his_o view_n and_o sight_n frederick_n duke_n of_o austria_n his_o inward_a familiar_a and_o equal_a in_o year_n have_v his_o head_n cut_v off_o that_o by_o his_o death_n he_o may_v the_o more_o be_v daunt_v and_o terrify_v which_o he_o take_v up_o and_o kiss_v then_o after_o he_o eleven_o other_o noble_a man_n italian_n and_o suevians_n the_o historiographer_n add_v that_o charles_n will_v needs_o have_v the_o executioner_n head_n chop_v off_o in_o the_o place_n by_o a_o other_o appoint_v to_o perform_v this_o office_n because_o he_o may_v not_o hereafter_o boast_v of_o the_o cut_n off_o his_o head_n who_o be_v descend_v from_o so_o illustrious_a a_o family_n as_o also_o that_o the_o count_n of_o flaunders_n in_o a_o rage_n slay_v he_o with_o his_o own_o hand_n that_o have_v pronounce_v the_o sentence_n all_o christendom_n hold_v this_o wicked_a deed_n in_o most_o odious_a detestation_n especial_o all_o the_o prince_n in_o that_o they_o remember_v how_o king_n s._n lewis_n and_o this_o charles_n his_o brother_n be_v take_v prisoner_n not_o long_o before_o by_o the_o sultan_n in_o palestina_n be_v courteous_o and_o friendly_o entertain_v and_o from_o hence_o it_o proceed_v that_o peter_n of_o arragon_n exprobrate_v to_o charles_n in_o some_o letter_n of_o he_o tu_fw-la nerone_n neronior_n &_o saracenis_fw-la crudelior_fw-la thou_o be_v more_o bloody_a than_o nero_n and_o more_o cruel_a than_o the_o saracen_n there_o be_v not_o any_o one_o which_o ascribe_v not_o this_o cruelty_n in_o the_o great_a part_n to_o clement_n and_o the_o very_a sentence_n itself_o denounce_v against_o conradinus_n may_v testify_v as_o much_o vineis_fw-la apud_fw-la pertam_fw-la de_fw-la vineis_fw-la which_o be_v for_o disturb_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n and_o false_o usurp_v to_o himself_o the_o royal_a title_n but_o i_o pray_v you_o be_v not_o his_o right_a good_a enough_o for_o the_o claim_v of_o this_o title_n furthermore_o we_o have_v the_o same_o clement_n own_o letter_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o letter_n of_o this_o charles_n king_n of_o sicily_n to_o peter_n of_o arragon_n ordain_v and_o devise_v say_v the_o author_n by_o pope_n clement_n the_o four_o wherein_o he_o proud_o threaten_v peter_n of_o arragon_n be_v back_v by_o this_o pope_n that_o seek_v to_o obtain_v the_o kingdom_n of_o naples_n by_o arm_n thou_o most_o wicked_a man_n say_v he_o do_v thou_o not_o consider_v the_o inexplicable_a excellency_n of_o the_o mother_n the_o church_n who_o be_v to_o command_v over_o all_o nation_n and_o who_o the_o whole_a earth_n and_o all_o the_o people_n in_o the_o same_o do_v obey_v she_o it_o be_v who_o land_n sea_n and_o sky_n obey_v worship_n and_o resound_v to_o who_o all_o that_o live_v under_o her_o sun_n be_v bind_v with_o stoop_a head_n to_o pay_v due_a duty_n and_o tribute_n so_o as_o he_o exprobrate_v &_o cast_v he_o in_o the_o tooth_n with_o conradines_n death_n for_o a_o terror_n to_o himself_o of_o who_o notwithstanding_o he_o shame_v not_o to_o say_v that_o he_o have_v well_o deserve_v who_o be_v take_v in_o fight_n like_o a_o thief_n &_o by_o the_o just_a sentence_n of_o death_n have_v deserve_v the_o gibbet_n yet_o he_o permit_v he_o to_o undergo_v the_o stroke_n of_o cruel_a death_n by_o the_o sword_n of_o a_o bloody_a headsman_n presage_v unto_o he_o also_o the_o same_o ruin_n which_o sound_v not_o like_o the_o stile_n of_o a_o king_n or_o prince_n descend_v of_o the_o french_a royal_a race_n but_o of_o the_o pope_n of_o these_o present_a time_n of_o the_o same_o unclement_n clement_n and_o thus_o much_o
victorious_a where_o he_o have_v no_o opposite_a but_o if_o this_o supreme_a spiritual_a power_n shall_v offend_v whether_o in_o this_o case_n must_v be_v our_o refuge_n i_o pray_v you_o see_v how_o perspicuous_o he_o resolve_v this_o doubt_n if_o this_o supreme_a power_n err_v 15._o 1._o cor._n 1._o v._n 14._o &_o 15._o must_v only_o be_v judge_v by_o god_n and_o not_o by_o man_n the_o apostle_n testify_v the_o spiritual_a man_n judge_v all_o thing_n but_o he_o be_v judge_v of_o no_o man_n but_o be_v this_o spiritual_a man_n of_o paul_n to_o be_v only_o understand_v by_o the_o pope_n do_v he_o not_o there_o rather_o oppose_v one_o to_o another_o the_o man_n mere_o animal_n and_o live_n to_o the_o man_n spiritual_a the_o man_n regenerate_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n to_o one_o unregenerat_a and_o have_v all_o the_o faithful_a this_o power_n to_o judge_v of_o king_n and_o prince_n as_o their_o superior_n be_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n then_o only_o a_o faithful_a one_o in_o that_o he_o only_o assume_v to_o himself_o this_o power_n and_o prerogative_n and_o thus_o in_o their_o decretall_n the_o pope_n make_v as_o mere_a a_o mock_n of_o the_o scripture_n no_o less_o than_o roman_a pasquil_n do_v yet_o notwithstanding_o out_o of_o these_o ridiculous_a antecedent_n he_o impudent_o conclude_v we_o therefore_o affirm_v declare_v determine_v and_o pronounce_v that_o under_o pain_n salvation_n every_o creature_n must_v be_v subject_a to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n but_o now_o let_v we_o see_v how_o wicked_a a_o use_n he_o make_v of_o so_o impious_a a_o decretal_a after_o the_o emperor_n rodulphe_n death_n there_o grow_v a_o schism_n and_o rend_v in_o the_o empire_n there_o concur_v at_o the_o same_o time_n a_o vacancy_n of_o the_o popedom_n for_o part_n of_o the_o prince_n especial_o the_o ecclesiastical_a choose_v adolph_n count_n of_o nassau_n and_o the_o other_o part_n albert_n rodolphe_n son_n but_o when_o boniface_n come_v to_o be_v pope_n he_o reject_v they_o both_o under_o this_o pretext_n that_o without_o his_o approbation_n they_o can_v descend_v to_o no_o election_n hereupon_o grow_v a_o civil_a war_n in_o germany_n and_o at_o a_o last_o a_o battle_n be_v fight_v wherein_o adolph_n be_v slay_v so_o as_o then_o albert_n come_v to_o be_v easy_o confirm_v in_o the_o dignity_n by_o all_o the_o doctor_n when_o the_o jubilee_n be_v end_v he_o send_v ambassador_n to_o rome_n to_o have_v his_o election_n by_o he_o ratify_v and_o confirm_v 36._o krantzius_n in_o saxon._n l._n 8._o c._n 36._o but_o this_o stout_a pralat_n make_v answer_v that_o without_o his_o authority_n the_o election_n past_o be_v not_o validious_a affirm_v that_o he_o have_v in_o his_o hand_n the_o power_n of_o both_o sword_n another_o pregnant_a testimony_n he_o give_v of_o himself_o in_o the_o eastern_a empire_n charles_n count_n of_o valois_n brother_n to_o philip_n le_fw-fr beau_fw-fr king_n of_o france_n marry_v katherine_n daughter_n to_o baldwin_n emperor_n of_o constantinople_n he_o permit_v he_o to_o invade_v the_o eastern_a empire_n out_o of_o which_o his_o father_n in_o law_n be_v drive_v under_o colour_n say_v platina_n of_o use_v his_o aid_n in_o a_o expedition_n to_o the_o holy_a land_n clericus_fw-la platina_n in_o bonifac_o 8._o extra_n in_o sexto_fw-la l._n 5._o c._n 23._o clericus_fw-la but_o rather_o in_o truth_n to_o constitute_v he_o his_o lieutenant_n in_o tuscan_a for_o the_o extirpation_n of_o all_o the_o gibelline_n and_o at_o last_o he_o grow_v to_o that_o height_n of_o insolency_n as_o that_o he_o command_v by_o authority_n apostolical_a all_o prelate_n clerk_n and_o person_n ecclesiastical_a to_o pay_v no_o tribute_n tenthes_o twenty_n nor_o hundred_o to_o any_o lay_v power_n to_o emperor_n king_n duke_n count_n baron_n or_o inferior_a lord_n etc._n etc._n as_o also_o that_o they_o shall_v impose_v nothing_o upon_o they_o upon_o pain_n of_o incur_v excommunication_n enjoin_v the_o like_a to_o all_o community_n and_o governement_n upon_o pain_n of_o interdiction_n from_o which_o they_o can_v not_o be_v absolve_v before_o the_o very_a point_n of_o death_n 1301._o matthaeus_n westmonast_n in_o floribus_fw-la temporum_fw-la a_o 1301._o and_o that_o by_o the_o pope_n himself_o a_o bold_a enterprise_n very_o injurious_a and_o prejudicial_a to_o all_o prince_n and_o magistrate_n which_o notwithstanding_o present_o take_v effect_v in_o england_n where_o the_o clergy_n proud_o answer_v the_o king_n return_v from_o a_o war_n with_o the_o scot_n that_o it_o be_v no_o more_o lawful_a for_o they_o to_o pay_v tribute_n which_o he_o hear_v present_o lay_v hold_n of_o all_o the_o clergy_n temporal_a good_n where_o he_o also_o by_o express_a patent_n forbid_v the_o attempt_n of_o any_o thing_n against_o scotland_n because_o pleno_fw-la jure_fw-la in_o true_a right_n and_o equity_n it_o belong_v to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n thus_o far_o he_o prevail_v without_o any_o resistance_n but_o attempt_v the_o like_a oppression_n in_o france_n he_o light_v upon_o king_n philip_n the_o fair_a who_o make_v no_o such_o extraordinary_a account_n of_o his_o decretal_a to_o the_o great_a benefit_n and_o emolument_fw-fr of_o all_o prince_n curb_v as_o we_o see_v and_o bridle_v his_o unjust_a insolence_n opposition_n in_o the_o year_n therefore_o 1301_o 1301._o an._n 1301._o boniface_n send_v the_o bishop_n of_o pamiers_n into_o france_n to_o philip_n the_o fair_a a_o man_n very_o like_o himself_o in_o pride_n and_o arrogancy_n to_o stir_v he_o up_o to_o a_o sacred_a war_n with_o no_o great_a fidelity_n questionless_a than_o his_o predecessor_n former_o have_v do_v he_o furnish_v his_o legate_n with_o imperious_a and_o menace_a letter_n unless_o he_o stoop_v at_o his_o beck_n to_o thunder_v out_o against_o he_o excommunication_n as_o also_o the_o legate_n out_o of_o his_o own_o froward_a disposition_n insert_v with_o his_o persuasion_n very_o unseemly_a and_o distasteful_a word_n but_o philip_n can_v not_o digest_v so_o great_a arrogancy_n for_o apprehend_v his_o legate_n he_o commit_v he_o in_o custody_n to_o the_o archbishop_n of_o narbon_n while_o he_o shall_v further_o determine_v of_o he_o boniface_n grow_v into_o a_o rage_n herewith_o and_o send_v the_o archdeacon_n of_o narbon_n by_o birth_n a_o roman_a to_z philip_z by_o who_o embassy_n he_o command_v the_o king_n forthwith_o to_o set_v his_o legate_n at_o liberty_n the_o bishop_n and_o peer_n of_o france_n also_o be_v enjoin_v to_o appear_v in_o rome_n at_o a_o council_n by_o a_o certain_a day_n but_o philip_n move_v some_o scruple_n herein_o belge_v henricus_fw-la steron_fw-gr in_o annalib_n ann._n 1301._o chronique_n de_fw-fr s._n denis_n paulus_n aemilius_n in_o philippo_n pulchro_n blondus_n decad._n 2._o l._n 9_o naucler_n vol._n 2._o generate_v 44._o bochellus_n decret_a gallican_n eccles_n l._n 2._o c._n 32._o chronic._n monsort_n theodor._n à_fw-fr nyem_n gulielm_n de_fw-fr nangis_n jean_n le_fw-fr maire_n de_fw-fr belge_v the_o pope_n protest_v that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o france_n do_v belong_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o therefore_o he_o shall_v refrain_v the_o government_n thereof_o commit_v the_o same_o to_o he_o and_o the_o church_n forthwith_o he_o absolve_v his_o subject_n from_o the_o oath_n of_o fidelity_n speak_v to_o they_o personal_o that_o be_v present_a and_o for_o want_v of_o obedience_n in_o this_o point_n he_o suspend_v all_o the_o indulgence_n pardon_n and_o grant_n which_o unto_o that_o day_n the_o pope_n have_v give_v to_o the_o king_n and_o kingdom_n presume_v of_o his_o own_o head_n to_o invent_v and_o devise_v that_o in_o the_o treasury_n of_o rome_n he_o find_v a_o certain_a record_n which_o make_v mention_v that_o france_n belong_v to_o the_o pope_n philip_n be_v exasperate_v with_o these_o threaten_n forbid_v the_o prelate_n to_o go_v out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n the_o pope_n rattle_v out_o his_o excommunication_n the_o more_o against_o he_o because_o he_o have_v lay_v hand_n on_o a_o bishop_n dispose_v of_o the_o good_n of_o seat_n vacant_a and_o invest_v bishop_n true_a it_o be_v that_o philip_n to_o justify_v and_o confirm_v his_o own_o right_a free_v the_o bishop_n out_o of_o prison_n but_o snatch_v the_o bull_n out_o of_o the_o archdeacon_n hand_n while_o he_o read_v it_o he_o give_v the_o same_o to_o robert_n of_o artois_n to_o be_v burn_v in_o the_o palace_n court_n at_o paris_n command_v he_o present_o to_o withdraw_v which_o he_o do_v and_o here_o it_o be_v not_o amiss_o to_o see_v what_o letter_n he_o bring_v and_o what_o he_o return_v these_o of_o boniface_n be_v of_o this_o tenor_n fear_v god_n and_o keep_v his_o commandment_n we_o will_v have_v you_o to_o understand_v that_o both_o in_o spiritual_a and_o temporal_a thing_n you_o be_v subject_a to_o we_o the_o collation_n of_o benefice_n and_o prebend_v no_o way_n belong_v unto_o you_o for_o though_o you_o have_v the_o vacancy_n of_o place_n in_o your_o
custody_n yet_o reserve_v the_o fruit_n and_o profit_n thereof_o to_o the_o due_a successor_n and_o if_o you_o have_v confer_v any_o we_o denounce_v such_o collation_n void_a or_o be_v already_o past_a we_o revoke_v they_o again_o and_o whosoever_o believe_v otherwise_o we_o declare_v they_o heretic_n philip_n of_o return_n be_v to_o this_o effect_n let_v your_o gross_a foolery_n take_v notice_n that_o in_o matter_n temporal_a we_o be_v subject_a to_o none_o the_o collation_n of_o certain_a church_n and_o prebend_n vacant_a belong_v unto_o we_o out_o of_o our_o regal_a prerogative_n and_o the_o fruit_n and_o benefit_n during_o their_o vacancy_n shall_v be_v we_o that_o collation_n former_o confer_v by_o we_o and_o to_o be_v confer_v hereafter_o shall_v be_v validious_a and_o by_o vigour_n and_o force_n of_o those_o grant_v we_o will_v stout_o defend_v their_o possessor_n against_o all_o man_n and_o whosoever_o think_v otherwise_o we_o repute_v they_o to_o be_v but_o fool_n and_o mad_a man_n even_o as_o he_o be_v answer_v by_o peter_n flot_z philip_n ambassador_n to_o the_o like_a menace_n and_o threaten_n your_o sword_n be_v verbal_a but_o my_o sovereign_n sword_n be_v real_a and_o here_o our_o country_n man_n john_n tillet_n bishop_n of_o meaux_n be_v worth_a the_o hear_n let_v we_o but_o behold_v say_v he_o this_o man_n impudency_n who_o dare_v affirm_v the_o kingdom_n of_o france_n to_o be_v feudatarie_a to_o the_o papal_a majesty_n manuscriptum_fw-la platina_n in_o bonifac_o 8._o nauclerus_fw-la vol._n 2._o gener._n 44._o chron._n martin_n manuscriptum_fw-la and_o yet_o more_o foolish_a be_v they_o whosoever_o go_v about_o to_o debate_v whether_o the_o pope_n may_v do_v thus_o much_o or_o no._n during_o these_o controversy_n the_o state_n of_o the_o kingdom_n assemble_v at_o paris_n assist_v with_o all_o the_o archbishop_n bishop_n prelate_n decretist_n divine_n and_o master_n of_o faculty_n before_o all_o who_o the_o bishop_n of_o narbon_n make_v a_o oration_n he_o produce_v ten_o several_a head_n of_o accusation_n against_o boniface_n first_o that_o he_o be_v a_o symonist_n second_o in_o that_o he_o say_v he_o can_v not_o commit_v simony_n three_o that_o he_o be_v a_o homicide_n four_o a_o usurer_n which_o be_v most_o manifest_a five_o that_o he_o give_v no_o belief_n to_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o eucharist_n six_o in_o that_o he_o affirm_v the_o soul_n to_o be_v mortal_a and_o there_o be_v no_o other_o joy_n but_o of_o this_o present_a life_n 37._o albertus_n argentic_a in_o chron._n krantzius_n in_o saxon._n l._n 8._o c._n 37._o seventh_o because_o he_o be_v a_o revealer_n of_o confession_n for_o he_o enforce_v a_o cardinal_n to_o reveal_v unto_o himself_o a_o confession_n that_o be_v make_v unto_o he_o by_o a_o certain_a bishop_n of_o spain_n which_o be_v know_v he_o remove_v the_o bishop_n from_o his_o place_n but_o the_o pope_n afterward_o be_v pacify_v with_o money_n he_o restore_v he_o again_o eighthly_a because_o he_o keep_v two_o of_o his_o own_o niece_n as_o concubine_n and_o have_v beget_v child_n by_o either_o of_o they_o o_o fertile_a and_o lusty_a father_n nine_o because_o he_o have_v grant_v all_o the_o tenthes_o of_o ecclesiastical_a good_n for_o a_o aid_n of_o war_n against_o the_o french_a king_n and_o tenthly_a and_o last_o for_o that_o he_o entertain_v the_o saracen_n into_o pay_n for_o the_o invasion_n of_o sicilia_n wherefore_o he_o appeal_v unto_o the_o see_v apostolical_a as_o he_o say_v then_o vacant_a and_o unto_o the_o next_o council_n in_o the_o mean_a while_o it_o be_v enact_v under_o grievous_a penalty_n that_o no_o man_n may_v transport_v any_o gold_n or_o silver_n out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n to_o the_o use_n or_o service_n any_o way_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n wherewith_o boniface_n burst_v for_o anger_n call_v a_o council_n at_o rome_n he_o impose_v his_o interdiction_n upon_o the_o kingdom_n of_o france_n exclude_v out_o of_o the_o church_n the_o king_n himself_o and_o all_o his_o posterity_n to_o the_o four_o generation_n send_v the_o archdeacon_n of_o constance_n to_o thunder_v out_o these_o thing_n in_o all_o part_n who_o journey_n notwithstanding_o be_v cut_v short_a by_o the_o apprehension_n of_o himself_o and_o of_o his_o bull_n at_o troy_n and_o now_o boniface_n resolve_v to_o confirm_v albert_n in_o the_o empire_n who_o before_o he_o have_v so_o often_o repel_v so_o he_o will_v promise_v to_o undertake_v a_o war_n against_o philip_n and_o to_o invade_v his_o kingdom_n upon_o which_o condition_n he_o give_v he_o both_o the_o title_n of_o king_n of_o roman_n and_o king_n of_o france_n but_o albert_n doubtless_o out_o of_o his_o wisdom_n and_o discretion_n refuse_v these_o offer_n but_o to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v not_o make_v he_o his_o open_a enemy_n his_o answer_n be_v that_o he_o can_v not_o entertain_v these_o offer_n except_o he_o will_v permit_v the_o perpetuation_n of_o the_o diadem_n imperial_a to_o his_o posterity_n and_o family_n but_o in_o the_o mean_a while_o this_o war_n turn_v into_o royal_a nuptial_n and_o so_o reject_v pope_n boniface_n his_o vain_a and_o hollow_a counsel_n he_o embrace_v philip_n affinity_n and_o alliance_n by_o the_o marriage_n of_o his_o daughter_n and_o philip_n see_v himself_o entangle_v with_o a_o implacable_a man_n resolve_v to_o make_v a_o end_n of_o this_o great_a altercation_n &_o strife_n as_o former_o we_o hear_v boniface_n have_v deprive_v the_o cardinal_n colonnaes_n of_o the_o hat_n &_o their_o uncle_n sarra_n wander_v up_o and_o down_o by_o sea_n &_o land_n fall_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o pirate_n who_o now_o have_v nothing_o leave_v but_o only_o his_o will_n and_o desire_v of_o revenge_n a_o certain_a noble_a man_n of_o france_n know_v he_o as_o he_o be_v fasten_v to_o a_o oar_n with_o a_o chain_n in_o the_o tryreme_a of_o a_o pirate_n and_o so_o sue_v for_o his_o liberty_n he_o privy_o convey_v he_o to_o king_n philip._n now_o the_o king_n be_v former_o determine_v to_o send_v william_n nogarete_n of_o narbone_n a_o gentleman_n by_o birth_n into_o italy_n to_o declare_v unto_o pope_n boniface_n presential_o how_o the_o king_n appeal_v from_o he_o to_o a_o council_n and_o whatsoever_o come_v of_o it_o to_o put_v upon_o he_o such_o a_o affront_n as_o his_o insolency_n worthy_o deserve_v philip_n therefore_o join_v sarra_n with_o nogarete_n in_o commission_n and_o nogarete_n make_v some_o stay_n at_o sienna_n about_o take_v up_o some_o money_n out_o of_o the_o bank_n of_o the_o petrucci_n while_o sarra_n in_o disguise_a habit_n visit_v and_o solicit_v his_o old_a friend_n but_o above_o all_o other_o he_o secure_v to_o his_o party_n three_o hundred_o french_a horse_n which_o be_v remainder_n company_n of_o the_o sicilian_a war_n troup_v up_o and_o down_o here_o and_o there_o wherefore_o betimes_o in_o the_o morning_n he_o sudden_o surprise_v anagnia_n where_o boniface_n then_o be_v in_o his_o father_n house_n who_o upon_o so_o sudden_a a_o tumult_n be_v ignorant_a what_o the_o matter_n shall_v be_v roab_v himself_o in_o his_o pontifical_n he_o sit_v on_o a_o throne_n and_o nogarete_n enter_v in_o show_v he_o the_o appeal_v in_o the_o king_n name_n signify_v that_o the_o pope_n must_v come_v to_o lion_n that_o so_o afterward_o he_o may_v be_v depose_v of_o his_o dignity_n in_o france_n and_o take_v he_o by_o the_o neck_n when_o he_o make_v some_o resistance_n he_o give_v he_o a_o good_a blow_n on_o the_o cheek_n with_o his_o gauntlet_n and_o cause_v he_o to_o be_v carry_v to_o rome_n the_o history_n relate_v that_o when_o they_o have_v take_v he_o they_o set_v he_o on_o a_o unbridled_a horse_n his_o face_n turn_v to_o the_o horse_n tail_n and_o so_o they_o make_v he_o run_v as_o long_o as_o he_o have_v any_o breath_n in_o he_o this_o bonifacie_n say_v the_o author_n of_o mounfort_n chronicle_n who_o late_o make_v king_n pope_n prelate_n and_o oftentimes_o the_o people_n to_o tremble_v and_o fear_v now_o sudden_o in_o one_o day_n both_o fear_n tremble_a and_o grief_n assail_v and_o overwhelm_v and_o thirst_v so_o much_o after_o gold_n he_o now_o lose_v the_o same_o that_o all_o superior_a prelate_n may_v learn_v by_o his_o example_n not_o to_o tyrannize_v too_o insolent_o over_o the_o clergy_n and_o people_n but_o rather_o be_v a_o example_n to_o their_o flock_n and_o to_o take_v care_n of_o those_o under_o their_o charge_n strive_v more_o to_o be_v love_v than_o fear_v the_o same_o boniface_n 8._o platin._n in_o bonifac_o 8._o who_o say_v platina_n seek_v rather_o to_o strike_v terror_n and_o fear_n into_o the_o mind_n of_o emperor_n king_n prince_n nation_n and_o people_n than_o there_o to_o plant_v religion_n and_o piety_n as_o he_o that_o at_o his_o pleasure_n will_v give_v and_o take_v away_o kingdom_n expel_v and_o reduce_v man_n back_o again_o greedy_o thirst_v after_o gold_n howsoever_o
of_o the_o sentence_n of_o excommunication_n which_o be_v lay_v upon_o he_o for_o the_o surprise_v of_o pope_n boniface_n a_o further_a clause_n of_o favour_n be_v add_v by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a consistory_n which_o be_v that_o neither_o the_o king_n nor_o kingdom_n of_o france_n can_v not_o be_v subject_a to_o any_o excommunication_n or_o interdict_v which_o bull_n be_v reserve_v in_o the_o treasury_n of_o the_o charter_n momfort_v chronicle_n say_v express_o that_o he_o revoke_v two_o of_o bonifaces_n decree_n one_o wherein_o he_o have_v write_v to_o the_o king_n that_o he_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n both_o in_o spiritual_a and_o temporal_a thing_n and_o another_o insert_v in_o the_o sixth_o of_o the_o decretal_n who_o beginning_n be_v clericos_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o colonnaes_n be_v already_o provide_v for_o but_o the_o deface_a of_o bonifaces_n memory_n remain_v yet_o to_o be_v perform_v be_v sufficient_o convict_v by_o philip_n testimony_n and_o the_o absolution_n of_o the_o attemptor_n but_o this_o point_n be_v refer_v to_o the_o council_n of_o vienna_n which_o begin_v about_o the_o end_n of_o this_o present_a year_n there_o it_o be_v debate_v on_o the_o behalf_n of_o king_n philip_n that_o boniface_n be_v to_o be_v condemn_v for_o a_o heretic_n which_o three_o cardinal_n above_o all_o the_o rest_n vehement_o argue_v but_o at_o last_o the_o strong_a party_n overcome_v partly_o because_o the_o cardinal_n by_o he_o create_v fear_v least_o by_o this_o mean_v they_o shall_v endanger_v their_o own_o place_n and_o partly_o because_o clement_n election_n wherein_o their_o hand_n bear_v the_o stroke_n may_v wonderful_o by_o this_o proceed_n be_v weaken_v and_o disjoint_v but_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o king_n philip_n be_v so_o perseverant_fw-la in_o this_o affair_n chronic._n walsingham_n chronic._n that_o by_o special_a messenger_n say_v walsingham_n he_o with_o much_o importunity_n demand_v the_o bone_n of_o his_o predecessor_n boniface_n to_o be_v burn_v as_o a_o heretic_n and_o this_o questionless_a he_o do_v not_o without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o parisian_a senate_n and_o of_o the_o sorbon_n in_o this_o council_n three_o head_n be_v propound_v the_o affair_n of_o the_o templar_n the_o war_n of_o the_o holy_a land_n and_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n the_o templar_n be_v condemn_v both_o of_o heresy_n and_o other_o crime_n and_o hereupon_o cruel_o burn_v in_o many_o place_n proscribe_v over_o all_o europe_n and_o spoil_v of_o their_o good_n and_o yet_o many_o author_n afford_v testimony_n of_o their_o innocence_n as_o bocatius_n villanus_fw-la antoninus_n nauclerus_fw-la auentinus_n and_o other_o some_o say_v that_o greediness_n of_o enjoy_v their_o good_n bring_v upon_o they_o this_o prosecution_n and_o herein_o they_o blame_v philip_n and_o clement_n himself_o who_o will_v deny_v he_o nothing_o other_o affirm_v that_o the_o pope_n choler_n be_v incense_v against_o they_o because_o they_o detest_v the_o court_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v the_o only_a cause_n of_o all_o the_o misery_n in_o christendom_n and_o of_o the_o utter_a destruction_n of_o the_o holy_a land_n so_o as_o by_o no_o torment_n nor_o cruelty_n of_o punishment_n inflict_v they_o can_v be_v bring_v to_o confess_v the_o crime_n impose_v and_o lay_v upon_o they_o pulchro_fw-la paulus_n aemilius_n in_o philippo_n pulchro_fw-la and_o they_o of_o germany_n prove_v their_o own_o innocence_n in_o a_o assembly_n call_v at_o mogunce_n as_o aemilius_n witness_v they_o be_v not_o obscure_a author_n say_v he_o which_o allege_v that_o james_n burgond_n principal_a of_o that_o order_n some_o call_v he_o molanus_n be_v bring_v forth_o to_o die_v and_o environ_v with_o a_o mighty_a multitude_n while_o the_o fire_n be_v a_o set_n about_o he_o and_o be_v offer_v his_o life_n and_o release_v of_o that_o painful_a punishment_n if_o confess_v public_o that_o which_o he_o have_v deliver_v during_o his_o imprisonment_n both_o of_o himself_o and_o his_o whole_a order_n he_o utter_v these_o word_n in_o these_o my_o last_o action_n it_o be_v unpardonable_a impiety_n to_o lie_v i_o free_o and_o frank_o confess_v that_o i_o commit_v a_o great_a offence_n both_o against_o myself_o and_o my_o order_n and_o that_o i_o have_v therein_o deserve_v a_o most_o torment_a punishment_n because_o in_o favour_n of_o they_o for_o who_o i_o shall_v not_o and_o allure_v with_o the_o sweetness_n of_o life_n i_o have_v in_o my_o torture_n slanderous_o impose_v many_o impiety_n and_o detraction_n upon_o my_o order_n which_o have_v ever_o deserve_v well_o of_o the_o christian_a religion_n i_o have_v now_o no_o need_n of_o a_o life_n obtain_v by_o entreaty_n much_o less_o retain_v by_o lie_v and_o defamation_n and_o then_o be_v set_v to_o the_o pile_n and_o fire_n kindle_v about_o the_o nether_a part_n of_o his_o foot_n to_o wring_v out_o from_o he_o some_o confession_n even_o when_o the_o flame_n begin_v to_o waste_v and_o fry_v his_o entrail_n he_o never_o swerve_v from_o the_o constancy_n of_o his_o former_a speech_n or_o show_v the_o least_o change_n or_o alteraion_n of_o mind_n neither_o he_o nor_o two_o other_o of_o his_o order_n be_v of_o a_o great_a family_n one_o of_o which_o be_v brother_n to_o the_o dolphin_n of_o vienna_n from_o hence_o the_o reader_n may_v easy_o observe_v and_o judge_v of_o the_o calumniation_n and_o slander_n that_o the_o pope_n in_o all_o age_n have_v impose_v and_o lay_v upon_o their_o oppugnant_n some_o author_n of_o no_o small_a esteem_n add_v burgundica_fw-la supplementum_fw-la martini_n parad_n in_o historia_n burgundica_fw-la that_o two_o cardinal_n be_v present_a at_o this_o execution_n and_o that_o this_o great_a master_n summon_v pope_n clement_n before_o the_o tribunal_n of_o the_o everliving_a god_n to_o answer_v to_o the_o judgement_n and_o sentence_n he_o have_v denounce_v against_o he_o who_o some_o forty_o day_n after_o die_v just_o on_o the_o same_o day_n for_o this_o execution_n be_v the_o eleven_o of_o march_n and_o he_o die_v the_o twenty_o of_o april_n a_o month_n after_o the_o publication_n of_o his_o clementines_n for_o that_o which_o concern_v palestina_n the_o cross_n be_v publish_v to_o be_v assume_v against_o the_o turk_n with_o a_o more_o ample_a and_o large_a grant_n of_o indulgence_n than_o ever_o before_o that_o be_v to_o say_v whosoever_o take_v upon_o they_o the_o cross_n for_o this_o expedition_n he_o can_v not_o incur_v damnation_n in_o these_o plain_a word_n we_o will_v not_o that_o he_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o torment_n of_o hell_n we_o further_o grant_v to_o those_o that_o be_v sign_v with_o the_o cross_n for_o this_o end_n three_o or_o four_o soul_n at_o their_o pleasure_n to_o be_v deliver_v out_o of_o purgatory_n by_o their_o supplication_n and_o prayer_n whereat_o the_o parisian_a divine_n be_v wonderful_o scandalize_v and_o so_o much_o the_o rather_o because_o there_o be_v a_o special_a clause_n annex_v to_o this_o bull_n we_o command_v the_o angel_n that_o absolute_o free_v the_o soul_n from_o purgatory_n they_o conduct_v it_o into_o the_o glory_n of_o paradise_n conformable_a to_o a_o doctrine_n teach_v then_o by_o themselves_o and_o their_o adherent_n that_o the_o pope_n can_v command_v the_o angel_n as_o his_o officer_n and_o sergeant_n and_o many_o copy_n of_o this_o bull_n be_v yet_o reserve_v at_o vienna_n poitiers_n and_o lymoges_n as_o for_o church_n reformation_n little_a or_o nothing_o be_v speak_v at_o all_o as_o shall_v appear_v in_o the_o section_n ensue_v but_o by_o the_o conclusion_n and_o shut_v up_o of_o clement_n life_n we_o shall_v see_v what_o manner_n of_o man_n he_o be_v which_o with_o such_o confidence_n take_v upon_o he_o to_o dispose_v of_o paradise_n these_o be_v therefore_o the_o very_a word_n of_o antoninus_n himself_o after_o the_o celebration_n of_o a_o general_a council_n in_o the_o year_n 1313_o clement_n go_v from_o vienna_n to_o bourdeaux_n fall_v sick_a by_o the_o way_n and_o die_v this_o man_n as_o chronicle_n relate_v be_v too_o much_o addict_v to_o concupiscence_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n the_o sin_n of_o simony_n so_o deep_o detest_v and_o punish_v by_o the_o canon_n take_v deep_a root_n in_o his_o court_n about_o the_o recommendation_n to_o benefice_n and_o whereas_o some_o say_v that_o simony_n can_v concur_v nor_o stand_v with_o the_o pope_n s._n thomas_n sharp_o reprove_v they_o beside_o it_o be_v report_v that_o when_o he_o be_v depart_v out_o of_o this_o world_n a_o certain_a nephew_n of_o he_o who_o he_o have_v sensual_o before_o affect_v mark_v well_o these_o word_n bring_v in_o one_o that_o be_v skilful_a in_o the_o art_n of_o negromancie_n that_o by_o his_o wicked_a art_n he_o may_v seek_v out_o how_o his_o nephew_n shall_v be_v dispose_v of_o in_o another_o life_n who_o put_v in_o practice_v his_o skill_n he_o cause_v one_o of_o the_o pope_n chaplain_n a_o bold_a
in_o no_o sort_n be_v scandalize_v with_o this_o negligence_n of_o the_o see_v apostolical_a for_o these_o reason_n to_o make_v any_o doubt_n of_o the_o infallible_a verity_n of_o christ_n gospel_n see_v he_o himself_o foretell_v as_o much_o long_a time_n before_o and_o god_n have_v now_o in_o oneself_o same_o time_n make_v twice_o denunciation_n thereof_o and_o this_o herald_n be_v unworthy_o repulse_v scorn_a and_o cast_v into_o bond_n be_v not_o at_o all_o therewith_o shake_v nay_o more_o constant_o and_o firm_o than_o ever_o before_o he_o persevere_v in_o the_o faith_n for_o i_o know_v say_v he_o that_o god_n will_v yet_o the_o three_o time_n denounce_v his_o prediction_n to_o the_o seat_n apostolical_a but_o by_o who_o where_o or_o when_o i_o precise_o know_v not_o because_o it_o be_v not_o reveal_v unto_o i_o and_o if_o this_o see_v receive_v the_o denunciation_n prosecute_a it_o with_o moses_n and_o phineas_n zeal_n he_o will_v honour_v she_o by_o his_o divine_a power_n both_o with_o all_o ancient_a and_o new_a glory_n but_o if_o she_o neglect_v and_o contemn_v the_o same_o be_v assure_v that_o god_n within_o the_o foresay_a three_o year_n will_v bring_v upon_o her_o most_o fearful_a and_o terrible_a judgement_n such_o as_o shall_v give_v wonder_n and_o amazement_n to_o the_o eastern_a and_o western_a part_n what_o manner_n of_o one_o i_o will_v tell_v you_o before_o my_o departure_n in_o the_o sense_n spiritual_a and_o certain_o much_o about_o that_o time_n grow_v that_o great_a and_o long_a discord_n between_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o pope_n lewis_n of_o bavaria_n then_o wear_v the_o diadem_n but_o this_o denouncer_n and_o herald_n of_o who_o mention_n have_v be_v make_v be_v questionless_a arnoldus_fw-la himself_n be_v a_o man_n then_o very_a famous_a all_o europe_n over_o for_o the_o knowledge_n of_o all_o tongue_n and_o art_n who_o deliver_v a_o speech_n about_o church_n reformation_n at_o rome_n answer_n be_v return_v he_o meddle_v in_o physic_n and_o not_o in_o divinity_n and_o we_o will_v honour_v thou_o in_o which_o word_n say_v he_o they_o endeavour_v to_o seclude_v christ_n little_a one_o out_o of_o the_o field_n of_o divinity_n desire_v only_o to_o have_v this_o field_n possess_v by_o giant_n that_o be_v with_o such_o as_o make_v war_n against_o god_n frederick_n therefore_o be_v move_v by_o arnolds_n relation_n he_o resolve_v in_o himself_o very_o curious_o to_o search_v out_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o frame_v his_o life_n according_a to_o christ_n doctrine_n who_o be_v truth_n itself_o and_o can_v only_o bestow_v on_o man_n eternal_a life_n that_o he_o will_v by_o all_o labour_n and_o endeavour_n procure_v the_o propagation_n thereof_o root_a out_n whatsoever_o be_v adverse_a and_o opposite_a thereunto_o and_o he_o exhort_v the_o king_n of_o arragon_n his_o brother_n to_o do_v the_o like_a who_o by_o letter_n he_o certify_v of_o all_o the_o proceed_n to_o which_o he_o likewise_o with_o the_o same_o resolution_n and_o intention_n make_v answer_v both_o of_o they_o be_v yet_o extant_a be_v date_v in_o the_o year_n 1309._o we_o also_o read_v a_o epistle_n of_o king_n edward_n to_o clement_n wherein_o he_o infer_v how_o many_o king_n and_o noble_n of_o his_o kingdom_n from_o the_o very_a original_n of_o the_o church_n have_v religious_o build_v many_o church_n liberal_o endow_v they_o and_o place_v therein_o very_o sufficient_a and_o fit_a minister_n so_o as_o the_o catholic_a faith_n may_v the_o more_o spread_v and_o increase_v among_o the_o people_n and_o nation_n subject_a to_o he_o and_o by_o this_o mean_v the_o lord_n vine_n do_v wonderful_o grow_v and_o spread_v but_o say_v he_o a_o thing_n much_o to_o be_v grieve_v at_o the_o very_a branch_n of_o this_o vine_n be_v degenerate_v into_o brier_n and_o bramble_n and_o the_o wild_a boar_n of_o the_o forest_n extirpate_v it_o and_o all_o the_o wild_a beast_n seed_n thereon_o but_o if_o you_o doubt_v who_o he_o mean_v observe_v while_o say_v he_o the_o imposition_n and_o provision_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a which_o daily_o grow_v more_o burdensome_a contrary_a to_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o donor_n and_o the_o best_a benefice_n be_v confer_v on_o stranger_n and_o those_o many_o time_n very_o unworthy_a and_o not_o altogether_o free_a from_o just_a suspicion_n who_o be_v not_o resident_a in_o the_o say_a benefice_n know_v not_o the_o countenance_n of_o those_o sheep_n commit_v to_o their_o charge_n nor_o understand_v not_o their_o language_n and_o he_o set_v many_o discommodity_n before_o his_o eye_n that_o thereof_o ensue_v to_o the_o unspeakable_a and_o wonderful_a detriment_n of_o the_o state_n temporal_a and_o spiritual_a both_o of_o church_n kingdom_n and_o people_n earnest_o request_v he_o that_o he_o will_v forthwith_o remedy_v these_o inconvenience_n because_o so_o principal_a a_o evil_n be_v no_o way_n to_o be_v shuffle_v up_o the_o successor_n say_v he_o of_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n receive_v a_o commandment_n from_o christ_n to_o feed_v and_o not_o to_o feed_v upon_o the_o lord_n sheep_n to_o confirm_v and_o strengthen_v and_o not_o to_o suppress_v and_o tread_v upon_o his_o brethren_n but_o because_o clement_n open_v not_o ready_o his_o ear_n to_o these_o thing_n edward_n forbid_v the_o annates_fw-la to_o be_v convey_v out_o of_o his_o kingdom_n as_o also_o that_o prelate_n shall_v not_o go_v personal_o to_o rome_n for_o their_o ordination_n the_o epistle_n begin_v thus_o pensata_fw-la sedis_fw-la apostolicae_fw-la clementia_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o waldense_n continue_v still_o in_o diverse_a province_n and_o under_o diverse_a nomination_n according_a as_o their_o adversary_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n please_v to_o impose_v upon_o they_o for_o we_o see_v that_o in_o lombardy_n they_o be_v call_v fratricelli_n little_a brethren_n and_o because_o they_o hate_v the_o pope_n the_o roman_a court_n and_o such_o as_o have_v bring_v in_o depravation_n and_o corruption_n both_o into_o doctrine_n and_o manner_n they_o be_v not_o only_o most_o cruel_o put_v to_o death_n but_o further_a by_o calumniation_n and_o detraction_n make_v infamous_a to_o posterity_n in_o many_o kind_n of_o uncleanness_n though_o their_o opinion_n be_v never_o any_o other_o than_o those_o of_o the_o waldense_n and_o albigense_n be_v in_o the_o greateh_a part_n consonant_n to_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n this_o be_v most_o apparent_a out_o of_o the_o relation_n of_o raynerius_n a_o writer_n of_o those_o time_n who_o say_v he_o be_v present_a both_o in_o lombardie_n and_o other_o place_n when_o they_o be_v examine_v by_o the_o inquisitor_n but_o former_o out_o of_o his_o work_n we_o extract_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v pertinent_a to_o their_o confession_n that_o they_o need_v not_o here_o any_o further_a repetition_n concern_v their_o manner_n he_o write_v they_o be_v modest_a simple_a meddle_v little_a with_o bargain_n or_o contract_n to_o avoid_v lie_v and_o deceit_n live_v on_o their_o labour_n be_v content_a with_o a_o little_a chaste_a and_o sober_a invite_v other_o by_o their_o example_n to_o every_o good_a thing_n moreover_o he_o add_v that_o the_o first_o rule_n and_o instruction_n which_o for_o rudiment_n they_o give_v unto_o their_o child_n be_v the_o decalogue_n of_o the_o law_n the_o ten_o commandment_n of_o god_n that_o they_o shall_v learn_v to_o abstain_v from_o those_o sin_n which_o vulgar_o be_v call_v mortalia_fw-la mortal_a all_o which_o point_n have_v small_a coherence_n with_o the_o distasteful_a detraction_n impose_v upon_o they_o by_o many_o clement_n therefore_o command_v the_o cross_n military_a to_o be_v take_v up_o against_o they_o expose_v these_o poor_a soul_n to_o prey_n and_o spoil_v proscribe_v they_o to_o be_v strip_v both_o of_o life_n and_o good_n and_o four_o thousand_o of_o they_o he_o destroy_v be_v assemble_v together_o in_o one_o place_n other_o of_o they_o recover_v the_o inaccessible_a and_o insuperable_a place_n of_o high_a mountain_n where_o till_o pope_n eugenius_n time_n which_o be_v about_o a_o hundred_o year_n after_o our_o author_n antoninus_n say_v they_o abide_v 10._o antonin_n part._n 3._o tit._n 22._o c._n 10._o and_o these_o be_v the_o very_a race_n of_o they_o from_o father_n to_o son_n which_o we_o see_v in_o the_o valley_n of_o host_n angrogne_n and_o other_o place_n the_o same_o opinion_n be_v hold_v of_o they_o which_o at_o the_o same_o time_n be_v burn_v in_o great_a number_n within_o the_o town_n of_o crema_fw-la in_o the_o duchy_n of_o austria_n which_o the_o abbot_n of_o hirsaug_n believe_v his_o predecessor_n tax_v with_o the_o same_o faith_n and_o belief_n involue_v the_o truth_n in_o many_o lie_v and_o fiction_n yet_o by_o his_o testimony_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o they_o reject_v the_o mass_n as_o vain_a and_o unprofitable_a and_o the_o consecrate_a host_n a_o god_n invent_v by_o man_n affirm_v that_o the_o church_n
change_v except_o the_o senate_n at_o any_o time_n think_v good_a to_o use_v some_o prorogation_n lewis_n proceed_v yet_o further_o by_o the_o roman_n instigation_n who_o have_v many_o time_n in_o vain_a summon_v and_o solicit_v the_o pope_n as_o their_o natural_a bishop_n to_o reside_v at_o rome_n cause_v election_n to_o be_v make_v of_o peter_n corbario_n of_o rietto_n 1327._o an._n 1327._o a_o friar_n minorite_n by_o the_o clergy_n and_o people_n of_o rome_n he_o be_v a_o very_a learned_a man_n and_o fit_a for_o the_o manage_n of_o any_o government_n who_o be_v call_v nicholas_n the_o five_o and_o there_o be_v many_o that_o he_o make_v both_o cardinal_n and_o bishop_n nay_o and_o moreover_o john_n be_v convince_v in_o a_o solemn_a council_n of_o heresy_n he_o condemn_v he_o to_o be_v burn_v which_o sentence_n be_v present_o and_o public_o execute_v in_o effigy_n or_o picture_n after_o the_o performance_n whereof_o set_v all_o thing_n in_o as_o good_a order_n as_o be_v possible_a in_o italy_n he_o think_v good_a to_o return_v into_o germany_n which_o be_v wonderful_o molest_v by_o johns_n art_n and_o stratagem_n from_o such_o a_o form_n of_o contention_n kindle_v in_o christendom_n what_o can_v be_v expect_v but_o a_o general_a confusion_n and_o so_o much_o the_o rather_o because_o some_o year_n before_o john_n call_v philip_n de_fw-fr valois_n and_o other_o prince_n into_o italy_n with_o prevalent_a force_n against_o lewis_n and_o the_o more_o to_o endear_v unto_o he_o philip_n who_o afterward_o come_v to_o the_o kingdom_n he_o permit_v he_o to_o levy_v a_o ten_o of_o his_o whole_a clergy_n naugiaco_fw-it antonin_n part_n 3._o tit_n 21._o c._n 6._o part_n 6._o &_o 9_o auent_n l._n 7._o guiielmus_fw-la de_fw-fr naugiaco_fw-it under_o pretext_n of_o a_o enter_v into_o a_o war_n against_o the_o infidel_n which_o custom_n his_o predecessor_n have_v former_o take_v up_o thus_o all_o thing_n hang_v in_o doubtful_a balance_n by_o the_o variable_a success_n of_o affair_n till_o lewis_n in_o germany_n come_v to_o a_o accord_n with_o frederick_n who_o be_v glad_a to_o redeem_v his_o own_o liberty_n by_o yield_v up_o the_o empire_n now_o nicholas_n the_o five_o johns_n corrival_n in_o italy_n martini_n an._n 1334._o supplem_n martini_n be_v deliver_v into_o johns_n hand_n by_o the_o pisanes_n who_o revolt_v from_o lewis_n confirmat_fw-la antonin_n part_n 3._o tit_n 21._o c._n 6._o part_n 15._o summa_fw-la constit_fw-la à_fw-fr greg._n 9_o ad_fw-la sixt._n 5._o usque_fw-la constit_fw-la paternum_fw-la morem_fw-la annales_n francia_fw-la christianus_n massaeus_n in_o chronico_fw-la guilielmus_fw-la ockam_n in_o opere_fw-la 90_o dicrum_fw-la ad●ianus_fw-la 6._o in_o quaest_n de_fw-fr confirmat_fw-la he_o be_v cast_v into_o prison_n wherefore_o john_n king_n of_o bohemia_n interpose_v himself_o to_o procure_v some_o peace_n betwixt_o they_o upon_o condition_n but_o during_o the_o negotiation_n in_o the_o year_n 1334_o john_n die_v at_o auignion_n christendom_n be_v all_o over_o in_o turmoil_n but_o especial_o all_o the_o province_n and_o city_n of_o italy_n all_o historiographer_n concur_v in_o this_o that_o john_n leave_v behind_o he_o a_o huge_a treasure_n in_o ready_a coin_n some_o say_v fifteen_o and_o other_o five_o and_o twenty_o milliones_fw-la auri_fw-la million_o of_o gold_n which_o for_o those_o time_n be_v very_o wonderful_a for_o under_o colour_n of_o recover_v palestina_n he_o gramd_v and_o grip_v all_o the_o world_n and_o yet_o he_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o admonish_v edward_n king_n of_o england_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o impose_v such_o grievous_a burden_n upon_o the_o irish_a the_o government_n of_o who_o say_v he_o my_o predecessor_n adrian_n grant_v unto_o you_o under_o certain_a condition_n but_o by_o what_o right_a or_o succession_n suppose_v you_o shall_v these_o people_n any_o way_n belong_v to_o the_o pope_n for_o other_o matter_n he_o public_o preach_v in_o auignion_n that_o the_o soul_n yea_o of_o the_o most_o holy_a and_o faithful_a do_v not_o behold_v the_o face_n of_o god_n before_o the_o last_o day_n of_o judgement_n which_o he_o pretend_v to_o understand_v from_o certain_a vision_n of_o one_o tundall_n a_o irish_a man_n and_o two_o monk_n he_o send_v to_o paris_n one_o a_o minorite_n and_o the_o other_o a_o dominican_n to_o preach_v this_o opinion_n out_o of_o his_o suggestion_n and_o to_o exhort_v the_o sorbon_n to_o embrace_v the_o same_o labour_v also_o the_o like_a in_o other_o university_n but_o king_n philip_n of_o valois_n assemble_v all_o the_o learnede_a divine_n of_o his_o kingdom_n at_o bois_n de_fw-fr vincennes_n who_o express_o censure_v this_o opinion_n to_o be_v plain_a heresy_n in_o these_o thing_n thomas_n wallis_n durandus_fw-la de_fw-fr sancto_fw-it portiano_n william_n cale_v and_o other_o author_n be_v plentiful_a aventine_n add_v that_o he_o read_v a_o certain_a epistle_n of_o the_o divine_n live_v amid_o these_o dissension_n especial_o of_o those_o of_o paris_n by_o which_o they_o tax_v he_o of_o heresy_n persuade_v he_o to_o renounce_v this_o opinion_n which_o they_o say_v he_o do_v by_o their_o persuasion_n not_o many_o day_n before_o his_o death_n but_o he_o may_v rather_o peradventure_o be_v condemn_v of_o heresy_n by_o the_o modern_a divine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n because_o as_o the_o same_o author_n relate_v he_o send_v for_o certain_a man_n that_o dwell_v in_o the_o confine_n of_o bohemia_n and_o austria_n who_o have_v paint_v the_o trinity_n 7._o auent_n l._n 7._o under_o the_o form_n of_o a_o old_a man_n a_o young_a man_n and_o a_o dove_n as_o yet_o at_o this_o day_n they_o use_v to_o do_v who_o he_o charge_v with_o irreligion_n denounce_v they_o to_o be_v anthropomorphite_n who_o he_o condemn_v to_o be_v burn_v although_o in_o so_o clear_a a_o sunshine_n of_o the_o gospel_n both_o bellarmine_n and_o other_o of_o his_o follower_n be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o allow_v and_o defend_v the_o same_o quorundam_fw-la in_o extravag_n johan_n 22._o tit_n de_fw-fr verb._n signific_a c._n 1._o 2._o 3._o 4._o &_o cap._n ad_fw-la candidorem_fw-la cum_fw-la inter_fw-la non_fw-la nullos_fw-la quia_fw-la quorundam_fw-la nicholas_n the_o five_o wonderful_o promote_v the_o minorite_n and_o john_n labour_v hard_a according_a to_o the_o usual_a inconstancy_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o lie_n to_o suppress_v &_o beat_v they_o down_o and_o this_o by_o such_o argument_n as_o plain_o overthrow_v the_o mendicant_n foundation_n for_o concern_v the_o question_n whether_o christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n hold_v any_o thing_n in_o proper_a he_o say_v we_o must_v herein_o believe_v the_o holy_a scripture_n by_o which_o the_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n must_v be_v confirm_v which_o teach_v we_o that_o they_o possess_v something_o in_o proper_a and_o therefore_o to_o believe_v otherwise_o be_v heresy_n and_o he_o that_o otherwise_o affirm_v be_v to_o be_v repute_v a_o heretic_n and_o because_o their_o most_o glorious_a pretext_n be_v in_o a_o wilful_a poverty_n he_o turn_v they_o to_o beggary_n indeed_o enjoin_v they_o to_o be_v content_a with_o mere_a alm_n show_v how_o the_o custom_n de_fw-fr facto_fw-la permit_v to_o they_o by_o nicholas_n the_o five_o with_o a_o exception_n of_o property_n reserve_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v but_o a_o plain_a delusion_n and_o cozenage_n that_o so_o they_o may_v cunning_o be_v exempt_v from_o that_o poverty_n which_o they_o profess_v and_o therefore_o the_o mendicant_n be_v drive_v to_o beg_v their_o live_n from_o door_n to_o door_n grow_v mighty_o incense_v against_o he_o he_o further_o argue_v that_o christ_n never_o command_v nor_o advise_v christian_n to_o relinquish_v their_o good_n that_o he_o never_o set_v down_o any_o other_o rule_v of_o piety_n to_o the_o apostle_n than_o to_o other_o christian_n to_o who_o perfection_n the_o possession_n of_o movable_n or_o immovables_n be_v no_o way_n repugnant_a that_o the_o apostle_n never_o vow_v poverty_n nor_o never_o out_o of_o vow_n renounce_v their_o temporal_a good_n who_o questionless_a even_o as_o other_o godly_a man_n do_v both_o might_n and_o may_v with_o a_o good_a conscience_n contend_v for_o temporal_a good_n and_o the_o naked_a vow_n be_v no_o furtherance_n at_o all_o to_o christian_a perfection_n but_o to_o this_o point_n he_o grow_v say_v aventine_n that_o such_o franciscan_n as_o now_o live_v from_o hand_n to_o mouth_n and_o beg_v from_o door_n to_o door_n that_o speak_v against_o his_o opinion_n in_o preach_v that_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n possess_v nothing_o he_o condemn_v of_o impiety_n and_o pernicious_a error_n banish_v they_o out_o of_o the_o christian_a commonwealth_n call_v they_o fraterculos_fw-la silly_a brethren_n and_o many_o also_o he_o burn_v the_o same_o aventine_n observe_v in_o these_o time_n that_o what_o be_v former_o distribute_v for_o the_o sustentation_n of_o the_o poor_a be_v now_o convert_v to_o ornament_n set_v forth_o of_o wall_n and_o glorious_a pomp_n which_o be_v out_o of_o
ecclesiastical_a good_n then_o come_v in_o private_a sacrifice_n sacrifice_v priest_n sacrilege_n pillory_n peculiarity_n of_o temple_n and_o these_o that_o we_o call_v incorporation_n and_o non-residencies_a all_o which_o may_v be_v find_v out_o in_o the_o ancient_a record_n from_o this_o john_n also_o proceed_v that_o decretal_a supplement_n call_v extravagantes_n so_o call_v of_o john_n the_o two_o and_o twenty_o as_o the_o clementines_n be_v of_o clement_n and_o some_o affirm_v that_o they_o be_v both_o publish_v by_o he_o because_o clement_n perceive_v many_o thing_n in_o his_o repugnant_a to_o christian_a verity_n rote_n summa_fw-la constit_fw-la c._n cum_fw-la nonnulli_fw-la c._n super_fw-la gentes_fw-la extr_n de_fw-fr consuetudine_fw-la can._n solita_fw-la de_fw-la maiorii_fw-la &_o obedient_a clementina_n unica_fw-la de_fw-la iureiurando_fw-la clementina_n pastoralis_fw-la de_fw-la sententia_fw-la &_o de_fw-fr re_fw-mi iudica●a_fw-la c._n venerabilem_fw-la de_fw-la electionibus_fw-la c._n 2._o de_fw-la sententia_fw-la &_o re_fw-la iudic●ta_fw-la august_n de_fw-fr ancona_n in_o lib._n de_fw-fr potestate_fw-la eccles_n q._n 36._o art_n 2_o et_fw-la q._n 35._o art_n 1._o 37._o 38._o 44._o 45_o 46._o de_fw-fr rescriptis_fw-la 6._o &_o ibi_fw-la glossa_fw-la decis_fw-la rote_n he_o call_v they_o in_o again_o we_o read_v of_o one_o beside_o these_o in_o the_o abbreviate_v of_o constitution_n wherein_o he_o command_v the_o inquisitor_n to_o proceed_v against_o they_o as_o against_o heretic_n in_o that_o they_o have_v associate_v themselves_o with_o heretic_n and_o these_o be_v some_o province_n and_o town_n of_o italy_n who_o have_v follow_v the_o emperor_n lewis_n party_n the_o heresy_n be_v this_o in_o that_o they_o serve_v their_o lawful_a prince_n against_o the_o pope_n which_o there_o he_o say_v be_v in_o praecipitium_fw-la damnationis_fw-la &_o mortis_fw-la seize_v iminergere_fw-la to_o throw_v themselves_o down_o headlong_o into_o damnation_n and_o death_n and_o thus_o at_o length_n the_o decretal_n come_v forth_o accomplish_v from_o which_o our_o father_n leave_v unto_o we_o a_o common_a proverb_n that_o since_o the_o decretall_n have_v wing_n which_o be_v that_o decretal_n be_v add_v to_o decretal_n the_o world_n daily_o grow_v worse_a and_o worse_o those_o decretal_n which_o denounce_v thus_o unto_o we_o that_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n be_v constitute_v by_o the_o lord_n over_o nation_n and_o kingdom_n there_o be_v as_o much_o difference_n betwixt_o pope_n and_o king_n as_o there_o be_v betwixt_o the_o sun_n and_o the_o moon_n that_o the_o emperor_n be_v bind_v to_o take_v a_o oath_n of_o fealty_n to_o the_o pope_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o emperor_n superior_a and_o the_o empire_n be_v vacant_a his_o successor_n that_o he_o may_v depose_v the_o emperor_n and_o if_o he_o so_o think_v good_a elect_v another_o only_a of_o himself_o in_o like_a manner_n that_o he_o may_v appoint_v he_o a_o overseer_n and_o so_o any_o other_o king_n or_o state_n kingdom_n he_o may_v transfer_v from_o one_o to_o another_o as_o he_o that_o be_v their_o rector_n and_o corrector_n all_o these_o privilege_n accrue_v unto_o he_o so_o you_o will_v believe_v it_o from_o that_o say_n of_o our_o lord_n omnes_fw-la potestas_fw-la mihi_fw-la data_fw-la in_o coelo_fw-la &_o in_fw-la terra_fw-la ultima_fw-la in_o decret_a gregorij_fw-la tit_n 7._o c._n quanto_fw-la glossa_fw-la lancelot_n in_fw-la templo_fw-la omnium_fw-la judicum_fw-la l._n 2._o c._n 1._o par_fw-fr 4._o bald._n in_o l._n rescripta_fw-la c._n the_o praecib_n imperat._n offer_n num_fw-la 7._o august_n de_fw-fr ancona_n de_fw-fr potestat_fw-la eccles_n q._n 18_o art_n 1._o 2._o 3._o 5._o canonistae_fw-la ad_fw-la cap._n quanto_fw-la de_fw-la translat_fw-la episc_n &_o c._n proposuit_fw-la de_fw-fr concess_n praebend_n gloss_n do_v 4._o c._n 4._o august_n de_fw-fr ancona_n ut_fw-la supra_fw-la hostiensis_n in_o caput_fw-la cum_fw-la venissent_fw-la de_fw-la iudicijs_fw-la cravetta_n post_n baldum_n council_n 566._o colum_fw-la 2._o &_o rolland_n council_n 1._o num_fw-la 93_o &_o num_fw-la 130._o baldus_n council_n 359._o &_o cravetta_n council_n 241._o num_fw-la 3._o glossa_fw-la in_o can._n 4._o the_o concess_n praebend_n &_o can._n 3._o q._n 6._o causa_fw-la 15._o decisiꝰ_n 1._o well_fw-mi 447._o in_o compilat_fw-la rebuffi_n edition_n lugdunens_n ann_n 1555._o p._n ●7_n bald._n in_o lege_fw-la ultima_fw-la as_o also_o that_o which_o david_n prophesy_v of_o christ_n he_o shall_v bear_v rule_n from_o one_o sea_n to_o another_o and_o hereupon_o the_o canonist_n enlarge_v hand_n over_o head_n in_o their_o gloss_n and_o decision_n of_o the_o rota_n the_o pope_n undoubted_o be_v christ_n vicar_n not_o only_o in_o earthly_a celestial_a and_o infernal_a thing_n but_o further_o over_o the_o angel_n both_o good_a and_o bad_a he_o only_o have_v the_o power_n and_o jurisdiction_n of_o all_o the_o patriarch_n together_o a_o great_a privilege_n than_o all_o the_o saint_n or_o all_o the_o angel_n have_v so_o as_o he_o may_v excommunicate_a the_o angel_n themselves_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v but_o his_o diocese_n the_o square_a he_o may_v make_v round_o right_o of_o injury_n and_o something_o of_o nothing_o he_o also_o may_v against_o law_n natural_a of_o nation_n those_o civil_a humane_a and_o divine_a determine_v absolute_o and_o yet_o just_o above_o and_o contrary_n to_o any_o law_n above_o and_o contrary_a to_o all_o decree_n canon_n and_o statute_n of_o counsel_n as_o he_o who_o decree_n and_o sentence_n be_v above_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o earth_n he_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o cause_n of_o who_o no_o reason_n can_v be_v yield_v but_o himself_o and_o he_o that_o demand_n any_o other_o presume_v to_o liken_v himself_o to_o the_o most_o high_a make_v himself_o equal_a to_o god_n and_o therefore_o the_o pope_n be_v their_o god_n but_o hear_v more_o he_o may_v dispense_v against_o the_o apostle_n as_o superior_a and_o against_o the_o old_a testament_n in_o that_o he_o be_v great_a than_o all_o the_o author_n of_o the_o same_o why_o say_v he_o not_o great_a than_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o inspire_v they_o and_o some_o say_v against_o the_o gospel_n itself_o for_o the_o pope_n will_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o all_o justice_n whatsoever_o he_o do_v god_n hold_v it_o well_o do_v god_n and_o he_o have_v one_o consistory_n christ_n and_o he_o one_o tribunal_n the_o pope_n be_v like_a to_o god_n sin_n except_v so_o as_o if_o he_o may_v change_v opinion_n we_o may_v as_o well_o presume_v that_o god_n can_v change_v opinion_n item_n we_o can_v appeal_v from_o he_o to_o god_n in_o that_o upon_o earth_n he_o be_v god_n and_o as_o god_n he_o judge_v in_o conclusion_n he_o may_v command_v the_o angel_n to_o transfer_v soul_n into_o paradise_n and_o devil_n out_o of_o the_o vigour_n and_o virtue_n of_o his_o indulgence_n to_o draw_v they_o out_o of_o hell_n and_o purgatory_n the_o book_n of_o this_o age_n be_v full_a of_o these_o axiom_n and_o no_o man_n be_v ignorant_a thereof_o and_o now_o they_o strive_v who_o shall_v blaspheme_v highly_a for_o the_o canonist_n be_v not_o only_o thus_o violent_o carry_v but_o even_o the_o author_n themselves_o of_o the_o gloss_n who_o shall_v have_v make_v a_o more_o strict_a examination_n before_o the_o yield_a of_o they_o up_o for_o authentical_a they_o recommend_v unto_o we_o the_o pope_n for_o a_o god_n yea_o and_o that_o in_o essence_n if_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o we_o to_o believe_v they_o the_o which_o who_o will_v ever_o have_v believe_v if_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n have_v not_o foretell_v as_o much_o the_o gloss_n upon_o the_o chapter_n periculoso_n of_o the_o state_n of_o regulars_n in_o sexto_fw-la term_n he_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n but_o i_o suppose_v they_o call_v he_o not_o so_o in_o the_o same_o sense_n that_o satan_n be_v so_o call_v what_o remain_v there_o more_o 1._o cod._n de_fw-fr sententijs_fw-la rescindend_n &_o ibi_fw-la lancelotus_n &_o alij_fw-la lancel_v l._n 1._o c._n 1._o par_fw-fr 4._o the_o respon_n pontif._n c._n debetur_fw-la de_fw-la appellat_fw-la lancel_v conrade_n in_o templo_fw-la omnium_fw-la iudicum_fw-la l._n 2._o c._n 1._o but_o to_o be_v account_v god_n himself_o but_o peter_n bertrand_n addition_n upon_o pope_n boniface_n the_o eight_o his_o extravagant_a speak_v peremptory_o to_o this_o purpose_n jesus_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n both_o while_o he_o be_v in_o this_o world_n and_o also_o from_o eternity_n be_v natural_a lord_n over_o all_o and_o out_o of_o natural_a right_n may_v denounce_v sentence_n of_o deposition_n and_o condemnation_n against_o the_o emperor_n or_o any_o other_o whatsoever_o as_o against_o such_o person_n who_o he_o have_v create_v endow_v they_o with_o gift_n natural_a and_o those_o of_o grace_n as_o also_o preserve_v they_o by_o the_o same_o reason_n therefore_o his_o vicar_n may_v do_v the_o like_a but_o do_v he_o i_o pray_v you_o create_v or_o preserve_v these_o creature_n in_o stead_n of_o any_o reason_n allege_v observe_v but_o
fall_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o francis_n pregnan_n 12._o l._n 1._o c._n 12._o his_o brother_n son_n and_o this_o be_v that_o humility_n which_o theodorick_n commend_v in_o he_o before_o his_o popedom_n when_o he_o see_v the_o cardinal_n fall_v away_o from_o he_o he_o remain_v astonish_v and_o will_v have_v return_v to_o humility_n yet_o gather_v courage_n to_o himself_o he_o think_v he_o shall_v not_o want_v some_o ambitious_a to_o take_v the_o cardinal_n hat_n at_o his_o hand_n wherefore_o in_o one_o day_n he_o create_v twenty_o six_o three_o roman_n the_o rest_n neapolitan_n his_o countryman_n the_o chief_a strife_n be_v for_o the_o possession_n of_o rome_n and_o already_o he_o rule_v there_o but_o the_o vrsines_n that_o hold_v for_o clement_n and_o the_o frenchman_n captain_n of_o the_o castle_n s_o angelo_n who_o shoot_v off_o thence_o upon_o his_o people_n make_v the_o city_n dangerous_a unto_o he_o therefore_o with_o the_o force_n of_o his_o confederate_n he_o besiege_v he_o and_o constrain_v he_o through_o famine_n to_o yield_v he_o win_v unto_o he_o also_o the_o favour_n of_o the_o emperor_n charles_n the_o four_o and_o of_o lewis_n king_n of_o hungary_n by_o give_v they_o hope_n of_o great_a matter_n and_o by_o their_o help_n get_v unto_o himself_o the_o obedience_n of_o lombardie_n and_o sicily_n hence_o therefore_o take_v courage_n he_o serious_o bend_v his_o thought_n on_o the_o promote_a of_o his_o nephew_n and_o send_v for_o charles_n duras_n out_o of_o hungary_n against_o his_o promise_n by_o oath_n that_o he_o will_v never_o attempt_v any_o thing_n against_o the_o daughter_n of_o king_n lewis_n and_o crow_v he_o king_n of_o sicily_n on_o this_o condition_n that_o he_o shall_v give_v the_o dukedom_n of_o capua_n and_o of_o melfe_n in_o the_o realm_n of_o naples_n and_o many_o noble_a earldom_n in_o sicily_n to_o his_o nephew_n though_o he_o be_v a_o man_n effeminate_a and_o unprofitable_a and_o because_o this_o charles_n have_v no_o money_n he_o sell_v to_o the_o roman_a citizen_n the_o propriety_n and_o right_n of_o many_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o the_o sum_n of_o eighty_o thousand_o florin_n &_o more_o also_o gold_n &_o silver_n chalice_n cross_n and_o other_o precious_a ornament_n of_o the_o say_a church_n and_o monastery_n he_o take_v away_o in_o great_a number_n and_o value_n and_o he_o coin_a many_o silver_n image_n of_o saint_n into_o money_n for_o to_o pay_v wage_n to_o the_o army_n of_o charles_n and_o here_o again_o let_v the_o reader_n weigh_v that_o devotion_n which_o our_o author_n have_v attribute_v unto_o he_o before_o his_o popedom_n his_o other_o condition_n be_v find_v to_o be_v no_o better_o charles_n lead_v by_o his_o natural_a pride_n march_v to_o naples_n and_o through_o the_o treason_n prepare_v by_o vrban_n be_v receive_v by_o his_o partaker_n into_o the_o city_n for_o he_o have_v bind_v unto_o he_o the_o best_a family_n by_o his_o cardinal_n hat_n but_o queen_n joan_n be_v retire_v into_o the_o new_a castle_n and_o otho_n duke_n of_o brunswick_n with_o his_o army_n besiege_v the_o city_n he_o then_o counterfeit_v the_o seal_n of_o queen_n joan_n and_o forge_v a_o letter_n as_o from_o she_o to_o otho_n whereby_o she_o entreat_v he_o to_o come_v unto_o she_o with_o six_o only_a of_o his_o dear_a and_o most_o faithful_a friend_n for_o to_o resolve_v together_o in_o so_o great_a extremity_n what_o be_v best_a for_o they_o to_o be_v do_v otho_n suspect_v nothing_o take_v his_o journey_n thitherwards_o by_o night_n accompany_v with_o the_o marquesse_n of_o montferrat_n his_o cousin_n balthasar_n duke_n of_o brunswick_n his_o brother_n son_n in_o law_n of_o the_o earl_n of_o fundi_n and_o three_o captain_n in_o who_o he_o great_o trust_v but_o they_o fall_v into_o a_o deep_a pit_n prepare_v for_o they_o with_o their_o horse_n in_o which_o be_v hide_v in_o ambush_n fifty_o man_n who_o kill_v the_o marquesse_n and_o the_o three_o captain_n take_v the_o duke_n otho_n and_o his_o brother_n balthasar_n and_o carry_v they_o prisoner_n to_o charles_n who_o command_v balthasars_n eye_n to_o be_v put_v out_o in_o the_o public_a market_n place_n where_o the_o innocent_a young_a king_n conradine_n by_o the_o commandment_n of_o charles_n the_o first_o have_v be_v behead_v and_o he_o keep_v otho_n full_a three_o year_n under_o custody_n queen_n joan_n when_o she_o hear_v that_o her_o husband_n be_v take_v hope_v that_o in_o yield_v the_o castle_n which_o beside_o be_v in_o distress_n for_o want_v of_o victual_n she_o may_v at_o least_o redeem_v her_o life_n but_o he_o send_v she_o present_o prisoner_n into_o a_o certain_a castle_n of_o abruzzo_n in_o the_o chapel_n whereof_o as_o she_o be_v kneel_v at_o prayer_n before_o the_o altar_n by_o his_o command_n she_o be_v strangle_v by_o four_o hungarian_a soldier_n all_o this_o be_v do_v by_o the_o counsel_n of_o vrban_n who_o legate_n a_o latere_fw-la be_v ever_o by_o he_o the_o cardinal_n of_o sangro_n who_o think_v he_o offer_v to_o god_n good_a sacrifice_n when_o he_o destroy_v they_o that_o have_v be_v faithful_a to_o queen_n joan_n as_o well_o of_o the_o clergy_n as_o laiety_n either_o deprive_v they_o of_o their_o good_n or_o depose_v they_o of_o their_o ecclesiastical_a dignity_n without_o any_o respect_n of_o age_n condition_n or_o merit_v insomuch_o that_o in_o one_o day_n at_o their_o cost_n he_o create_v thirty_o and_o two_o archbishop_n and_o bishop_n and_o many_o abbot_n all_o neapolitan_n and_o follower_n of_o charles_n his_o part_n he_o add_v that_o they_o use_v the_o enchantment_n of_o a_o certain_a vagabond_n well_o know_v to_o the_o author_n who_o name_v himself_o a_o knight_n and_o a_o little_a after_o be_v burn_v by_o commandment_n of_o lewis_n duke_n of_o anjou_n who_o he_o will_v have_v deceive_v neither_o be_v clement_a in_o the_o mean_a time_n idle_a a_o man_n say_v the_o author_n of_o a_o large_a conscience_n and_o of_o great_a experience_n very_o needy_a who_o gregory_n the_o eleven_o by_o reason_n he_o can_v not_o otherwise_o maintain_v his_o prodigality_n have_v appoint_v legate_n in_o the_o marca_n de_fw-fr ancona_n and_o in_o lombardy_n more_o perhaps_o 21._o jdem_fw-la l._n 2._o c._n 21._o that_o he_o may_v by_o that_o mean_n have_v wherewith_o to_o live_v from_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o those_o region_n under_o pretence_n of_o his_o legation_n than_o for_o any_o quiet_a or_o safety_n that_o he_o may_v procure_v unto_o they_o of_o which_o he_o bring_v we_o some_o example_n nevertheless_o he_o be_v covetous_a or_o rather_o a_o greedy_a griper_n by_o reason_n of_o his_o prodigality_n for_o otho_n duke_n of_o brunswick_n have_v take_v verseil_n and_o forty_o castle_n in_o those_o part_n from_o viscount_n barnabo_n than_o commander_n of_o milan_n who_o have_v deliver_v they_o to_o gregory_n clement_n be_v at_o that_o time_n legat_n sell_v they_o all_o to_o barnabo_n for_o ready_a money_n who_o exercise_v against_o they_o all_o sort_n of_o cruelty_n and_o exact_v from_o they_o the_o money_n he_o have_v disburse_v to_o clement_n and_o be_v come_v to_o the_o popedom_n he_o retain_v still_o the_o same_o humour_n grant_v in_o fee_n for_o a_o very_a small_a yearly_a revenue_n without_o any_o difficulty_n the_o land_n and_o demesne_n of_o cathedral_n church_n and_o monastery_n for_o to_o bind_v great_a man_n unto_o he_o and_o give_v say_v the_o author_n large_a th●ngs_n of_o another_o man_n leather_n that_o he_o may_v recover_v money_n at_o any_o price_n whatsoever_o and_o when_o he_o see_v that_o vrban_n have_v at_o his_o pleasure_n create_v a_o king_n of_o apulia_n he_o resolve_v to_o give_v he_o a_o competitour_n this_o be_v lewis_n duke_n of_o anjou_n who_o he_o crown_v and_o send_v into_o italy_n with_o a_o army_n of_o sixty_o thousand_o man_n so_o that_o vrban_n determine_v to_o leave_v rome_n and_o to_o go_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o naples_n who_o charles_n come_v to_o meet_v not_o far_o from_o auersa_n and_o do_v unto_o he_o the_o office_n of_o a_o groom_n or_o yeoman_n of_o his_o stirrup_n and_o the_o same_o author_n be_v a_o eyewitness_n of_o this_o meeting_n note_v 32._o lib._n 1._o c._n 29._o 30._o 31._o 32._o that_o many_o country_n people_n come_v and_o kiss_v the_o say_v urban_n foot_n but_o before_o they_o do_v so_o they_o have_v thrice_o kiss_v the_o ground_n or_o earth_n but_o charles_n under_o colour_n of_o show_v he_o the_o castle_n of_o auersa_n keep_v he_o prisoner_n suspect_v some_o evil_n of_o urban_n journey_n into_o apulia_n and_o so_o much_o the_o rather_o for_o that_o he_o have_v not_o fulfil_v his_o promise_n in_o put_v pregnan_n his_o nephew_n in_o possession_n of_o the_o duchy_n of_o capua_n and_o of_o mel●e_n but_o soon_o after_o at_o the_o entreaty_n of_o the_o cardinal_n and_o under_o certain_a condition_n he_o set_v he_o at_o liberty_n and_o
be_v drink_v in_o a_o banquet_n at_o buda_n whereunto_o she_o have_v invite_v he_o notwithstanding_o he_o have_v yield_v unto_o she_o all_o the_o right_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o have_v send_v to_o vrban_a to_o gratify_v he_o the_o sword_n yet_o bloody_a wherewith_o his_o head_n be_v smite_v off_o 5._o collenuc_fw-la l._n 5._o the_o history_n tell_v we_o that_o vrban_n receive_v it_o with_o so_o great_a a_o pleasure_n that_o he_o can_v not_o satisfy_v himself_o with_o behold_v it_o and_o thus_o much_o for_o vrban_n he_o of_o the_o two_o which_o by_o platina_n onuphrius_n and_o other_o be_v put_v in_o the_o catalogue_n of_o pope_n as_o the_o more_o lawful_a for_o full_a increase_n of_o his_o good_a deed_n he_o cause_v a_o book_n to_o be_v write_v by_o one_o john_n de_fw-fr therano_n his_o chamberlain_n the_o beginning_n whereof_o be_v give_v unto_o caesar_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v caesar_n and_o to_o god_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v god_n wherein_o he_o affirm_v that_o these_o word_n of_o christ_n have_v place_n only_o for_o a_o time_n namely_o until_o his_o ascension_n but_o that_o from_o the_o time_n of_o his_o ascension_n they_o shall_v be_v of_o no_o moment_n see_v that_o he_o himself_o say_v joh._n 12._o when_o i_o shall_v be_v take_v up_o from_o the_o earth_n i_o will_v draw_v all_o man_n unto_o i_o that_o be_v all_o king_n and_o kingdom_n under_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o pope_n who_o he_o therefore_o conclude_v to_o be_v king_n of_o king_n and_o lord_n of_o lord_n not_o fear_v in_o so_o weighty_a a_o matter_n to_o abuse_v the_o sacred_a word_n of_o god_n worse_o than_o the_o very_a pasquil_n as_o for_o clement_n he_o be_v the_o first_o author_n as_o gaguin_n witness_v of_o expectative_a grace_n and_o annates_fw-la yet_o because_o he_o be_v hold_v for_o a_o antipope_n who_o act_n therefore_o be_v the_o less_o firm_a the_o honour_n of_o they_o be_v attribute_v to_o boniface_n successor_n of_o vrban_n by_o who_o care_n in_o his_o obedience_n they_o be_v receive_v but_o nicholas_n de_fw-fr clemangis_n archdeacon_n of_o baieux_n who_o live_v in_o the_o time_n of_o this_o schism_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr corrupto_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la statu_fw-la of_o the_o corrupt_a state_n of_o the_o church_n describe_v clement_n unto_o we_o in_o few_o word_n after_o say_v he_o that_o by_o the_o insupportable_a burden_n of_o our_o sin_n the_o furious_a evil_n of_o schism_n have_v creep_v into_o the_o church_n to_o omit_v the_o mischief_n do_v through_o the_o error_n of_o such_o as_o follow_v the_o false_a pope_n a_o man_n whole_o defile_v with_o all_o impurity_n be_v there_o ever_o man_n more_o miserable_a than_o our_o clement_n while_o he_o live_v who_o so_o make_v himself_o a_o servant_n of_o servant_n to_o the_o prince_n of_o france_n that_o the_o threaten_n and_o contumely_n daily_o cast_v upon_o he_o by_o the_o courtier_n be_v hardly_o fit_a to_o be_v speak_v against_o the_o base_a slave_n he_o give_v place_n to_o fury_n to_o the_o time_n and_o to_o the_o importunity_n of_o troublesome_a demander_n he_o feign_v dissemble_a promise_v large_o drive_v off_o from_o day_n to_o day_n to_o these_o he_o give_v benefice_n to_o those_o word_n he_o chief_o labour_v to_o please_v all_o flatterer_n &_o jester_n in_o the_o court_n and_o by_o benefit_n to_o deserve_v well_o of_o they_o that_o by_o their_o help_n he_o may_v win_v the_o favour_n of_o their_o lord_n and_o therefore_o on_o these_o neat_a and_o trim_a young_a man_n in_o who_o company_n he_o chief_o delight_v he_o bestow_v almost_o all_o the_o vacant_a bishopric_n and_o other_o chief_a dignity_n last_o that_o he_o may_v the_o more_o easy_o obtain_v and_o continue_v the_o good_a will_n of_o the_o prince_n he_o give_v they_o very_o many_o gift_n consent_v unto_o whatsoever_o exaction_n they_o will_v require_v of_o the_o clergy_n and_o often_o of_o his_o own_o accord_n offer_v they_o unasked_a in_o this_o miserable_a slavery_n he_o pass_v more_o than_o three_o lustre_n or_o twelve_o year_n with_o incredible_a waist_n of_o the_o church_n moreover_o there_o be_v extant_a horrible_a bull_n which_o these_o pope_n publish_v the_o one_o against_o the_o other_o wherein_o they_o call_v each_o other_o schismatic_n sapiente_fw-la paulus_n aemilius_n in_o carolo_n sapiente_fw-la heretic_n sour_a of_o tare_n thief_n traitor_n tyrant_n antichrist_n son_n of_o belial_n john_n de_fw-fr ligniaco_n write_v in_o favour_n of_o vrban_n and_o the_o abbot_n of_o s._n vaast_n of_o arras_n counsellor_n of_o king_n charles_n the_o five_o in_o favour_n of_o clement_n after_o the_o decease_n of_o vrban_n the_o cardinal_n that_o be_v his_o follower_n elect_v pope_n peter_n de_fw-fr thomacellis_n a_o neapolitan_a who_o be_v call_v boniface_n the_o nine_o ignorant_a say_v the_o author_n of_o write_v and_o sing_v and_o so_o unfit_a for_o administration_n of_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n 6._o theodor._n à_fw-fr nyem_n l._n 2._o c._n 6._o that_o while_o he_o live_v he_o hardly_o understand_v the_o proposition_n make_v before_o he_o by_o the_o advocate_n in_o his_o consistory_n in_o so_o much_o that_o in_o his_o time_n inscitia_fw-la ferè_fw-la venalis_fw-la facta_fw-la fuit_fw-la in_o ipsa_fw-la curia_fw-la ignorance_n be_v wellnigh_o set_v to_o sale_n in_o the_o court_n itself_o and_o yet_o in_o all_o kind_n of_o simony_n he_o so_o far_o excel_v all_o his_o predecessor_n that_o he_o promote_v not_o any_o cardinal_n or_o bishop_n without_o extort_v a_o great_a sum_n of_o money_n from_o they_o and_o such_o a_o one_o indeed_o have_v vrban_n the_o sixth_o find_v he_o out_o to_o be_v who_o for_o his_o goodly_a stature_n of_o a_o vagabond_n clerke_n have_v make_v he_o cardinal_n but_o after_o he_o discover_v he_o to_o be_v so_o open_a a_o arch-simoniack_a that_o it_o be_v likely_a he_o will_v have_v take_v his_o hat_n from_o he_o if_o death_n have_v not_o prevent_v he_o of_o his_o invention_n then_o as_o theodorick_n his_o secretary_n teach_v we_o be_v the_o annates_fw-la which_o he_o reserve_v to_o himself_o of_o all_o the_o vacant_a cathedral_n church_n and_o abbey_n so_o that_o they_o which_o be_v promote_v unto_o they_o be_v force_v beforehand_o to_o pay_v all_o before_o they_o can_v get_v the_o possession_n of_o the_o same_o usury_n also_o whereby_o they_o which_o come_v to_o the_o court_n may_v find_v money_n at_o any_o rate_n whatsoever_o which_o be_v no_o more_o account_v a_o sin_n yea_o rather_o be_v oft_o exact_v before_o their_o judge_n and_o official_o that_o the_o say_n of_o the_o psalm_n may_v be_v veried_a both_o usury_n and_o guile_n want_v not_o in_o their_o street_n the_o date_n as_o they_o call_v they_o to_o wit_n the_o priority_n of_o the_o time_n of_o grace_n which_o they_o sell_v to_o such_o as_o give_v most_o and_o that_o with_o such_o impudency_n that_o this_o so_o open_a a_o bue_n and_o sell_v become_v a_o mock_n among_o the_o people_n the_o expectative_n which_o do_v tread_v under_o foot_n those_o grace_n common_o cum_fw-la clausula_fw-la anteferri_fw-la and_o innumerable_a subtle_a deceit_n extortion_n filthy_a and_o unhonest_a pillage_n which_o the_o author_n describe_v in_o the_o 7_o 8_o 9_o 10_o 11_o chapter_n of_o his_o second_o book_n and_o will_v be_v too_o long_o for_o we_o here_o to_o recite_v out_o of_o which_o may_v be_v judge_v what_o manifest_a proceed_n forward_a this_o romish_a rob_v have_v make_v under_o this_o pope_n but_o the_o most_o vile_a of_o all_o be_v that_o of_o the_o jubilee_n by_o vrban_n appoint_v 68_o theodor._n a_o nigh_o l._n 1._o c._n 68_o for_o innumerable_a stranger_n out_o of_o the_o diverse_a kingdom_n and_o province_n of_o his_o obedience_n come_v to_o the_o city_n and_o exceed_v great_a offering_n be_v give_v to_o the_o church_n and_o temple_n of_o the_o city_n the_o great_a part_n of_o which_o come_v to_o the_o hand_n of_o boniface_n and_o of_o some_o other_o but_o boniface_n himself_o not_o content_a with_o these_o offering_n although_o they_o amount_v to_o a_o exceed_a sum_n for_o he_o be_v a_o insatiable_a gulf_n and_o in_o covetousness_n none_o like_o unto_o he_o send_v his_o money-gatherers_a or_o chapman_n into_o diverse_a kingdom_n for_o to_o sell_v the_o say_a indulgence_n to_o such_o as_o offer_v so_o much_o as_o it_o will_v cost_v they_o to_o go_v to_o rome_n to_o fetch_v they_o these_o extorter_n or_o chapman_n also_o subtle_o extort_a very_o great_a sum_n of_o money_n from_o simple_a and_o barbarous_a people_n so_o that_o by_o such_o sale_n they_o sometime_o bring_v away_o out_o of_o one_o kingdom_n or_o one_o province_n more_o than_o a_o hundred_o thousand_o florin_n because_o they_o remit_v all_o sin_n to_o all_o confess_v they_o even_o without_o penance_n for_o money_n dispense_v of_o all_o irregularity_n say_v that_o they_o have_v all_o the_o power_n over_o the_o same_o that_o
conversant_a in_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n he_o be_v repute_v humble_a and_o devout_a but_o he_o be_v no_o soon_o settle_v in_o the_o popedom_n but_o he_o be_v change_v into_o another_o man_n he_o begin_v to_o tyrannize_v ill_a demeaning_n himself_o towards_o those_o cardinal_n that_o have_v choose_v he_o and_o do_v other_o outrage_n unaduised_o he_o have_v a_o nephew_n call_v francis_n pregnan_n a_o unprofitable_a member_n &_o more_o licentious_a than_o be_v fit_a to_o be_v speak_v upon_o who_o he_o will_v bestow_v many_o dukedom_n and_o earldom_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o sicilia_n and_o entitle_v he_o unto_o they_o and_o will_v willing_o if_o it_o have_v be_v in_o his_o power_n have_v make_v he_o sultan_n of_o babylon_n too_o notwithstanding_o it_o be_v too_o apparent_a that_o he_o be_v unable_a to_o govern_v a_o small_a family_n to_o conclude_v there_o be_v no_o man_n ever_o in_o the_o popedom_n more_o wicked_a and_o more_o cruel_a in_o so_o much_o that_o he_o cause_v many_o bishop_n and_o cardinal_n barbarous_o and_o cruel_o to_o be_v murder_v secum_fw-la super_fw-la hoc_fw-la ut_fw-la aestimo_fw-la diabolo_fw-la dispensante_fw-la the_o devil_n as_o i_o think_v dispense_n with_o he_o for_o it_o or_o atlea_v wise_a join_v with_o he_o in_o the_o execution_n thereof_o of_o boniface_n the_o nine_o he_o be_v of_o a_o goodly_a stature_n but_o a_o vicious_a nature_n for_o we_o read_v of_o none_o that_o ever_o bare_a rule_n in_o the_o apostolic_a see_v that_o dare_v presume_v so_o public_o and_o with_o so_o little_a shame_n to_o commit_v the_o sin_n of_o simony_n scandalize_a without_o respect_n of_o difference_n and_o ordain_v archbishop_n bishop_n prelate_n clerk_n and_o priest_n and_o all_o for_o gain_v he_o likewise_o make_v his_o brother_n marquess_n duke_n earl_n of_o innocent_a the_o seven_o in_o he_o virtue_n and_o vice_n be_v at_o variance_n he_o be_v a_o great_a dissembler_n fiery_a in_o carnal_a affection_n he_o enrich_v his_o kindred_n with_o temporalty_n and_o take_v no_o care_n to_o confirm_v the_o union_n in_o the_o church_n which_o he_o have_v promise_v and_o swear_v to_o do_v of_o gregory_n the_o twelve_o how_o he_o have_v and_o do_v carry_v himself_o touch_n his_o kindred_n and_o that_o union_n that_o be_v to_o be_v make_v by_o he_o 〈◊〉_d be_v apparent_a enough_o and_o these_o four_o give_v no_o alm_n which_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o damnation_n and_o though_o a_o fault_n in_o all_o yet_o worst_a in_o a_o prelate_n because_o no_o man_n can_v be_v save_v without_o charity_n and_o this_o he_o write_v be_v notary_n of_o the_o apostolic_a letter_n 1408._o an._n 1408._o in_o the_o year_n 1408._o there_o be_v likewise_o a_o epistle_n direct_v to_o this_o gregory_n which_o he_o call_v delusorie_a of_o the_o officer_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n wherein_o he_o be_v call_v the_o damnable_a forerunner_n of_o antichrist_n neither_o be_v benedict_n his_o competitor_n forget_v therein_o there_o they_o protest_v that_o the_o world_n from_o thence_o forward_o will_v make_v no_o account_n of_o their_o excommunication_n but_o rather_o make_v a_o jest_n of_o they_o since_o it_o manifest_o appear_v that_o they_o both_o draw_v man_n into_o open_a perdition_n be_v the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o unworthy_a of_o the_o popedom_n especial_o gregory_n to_o who_o they_o attribute_v most_o be_v a_o drunkard_n a_o heretic_n a_o destroyer_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n a_o man_n accurse_v and_o in_o like_a manner_n they_o speak_v of_o his_o most_o familiar_a friend_n namely_o of_o gabriel_n who_o be_v afterward_o eugenius_n the_o four_o who_o they_o call_v his_o first_o bear_v spring_v from_o his_o reins_n and_o of_o the_o cardinal_n of_o raguse_n they_o say_v he_o be_v a_o demoniacall_a monk_n a_o infernal_a legate_n and_o the_o like_a of_o diverse_a other_o the_o author_n in_o the_o end_n conclude_v that_o this_o schism_n be_v come_v to_o that_o pass_n that_o the_o prince_n of_o both_o part_n contemn_v these_o pope_n and_o nothing_o regard_v their_o bull_n knit_v themselves_o in_o friendship_n alliance_n and_o marriage_n one_o with_o the_o other_o in_o such_o sort_n that_o a_o man_n may_v true_o say_v that_o all_o thing_n on_o both_o side_n be_v doubtful_a we_o have_v neither_o a_o true_a pope_n nor_o a_o true_a king_n of_o the_o roman_n behold_v here_o again_o that_o succession_n they_o boast_v of_o he_o likewise_o write_v a_o treatise_n of_o the_o investiture_n of_o bishop_n and_o abbot_n and_o attribute_v the_o right_a to_o the_o emperor_n henry_n token_n deligat_fw-la of_o the_o bishop_n of_o magdeburge_n in_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n make_v mention_n of_o he_o in_o his_o treatise_n that_o the_o council_n be_v above_o the_o pope_n here_o our_o france_n do_v the_o rather_o offer_v itself_o to_o our_o consideration_n because_o one_o of_o these_o contendant_o be_v then_o resident_a at_o auignion_n clement_n therefore_o be_v depart_v the_o cardinal_n choose_v petrus_n de_fw-fr luna_n call_v benedict_n froissard_n say_v that_o the_o election_n be_v make_v upon_o condition_n if_o it_o please_v the_o king_n of_o france_n and_o his_o counsel_n otherwise_o he_o be_v not_o to_o be_v receive_v yea_o that_o when_o he_o give_v the_o king_n to_o understand_v of_o his_o popedom_n he_o careless_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v doubtful_a whether_o he_o shall_v acknowledge_v he_o to_o be_v the_o true_a pope_n or_o no._n he_o send_v therefore_o unto_o he_o some_o of_o the_o most_o learned_a of_o the_o university_n of_o paris_n as_o master_n john_n of_o gigencourt_n master_n peter_n playons_n &_o other_o to_o admonish_v he_o that_o the_o christian_a faith_n be_v much_o weaken_v by_o this_o schism_n &_o that_o the_o church_n can_v not_o long_o continue_v in_o that_o state_n in_o so_o much_o that_o the_o university_n of_o paris_n be_v not_o of_o opinion_n that_o the_o clergy_n seek_v grace_n and_o favour_n shall_v send_v their_o petition_n to_o auignon_n notwithstanding_o that_o benedict_n have_v before_o open_v the_o fountain_n of_o grace_n to_o all_o clergy_n man_n which_o the_o king_n likewise_o forbid_v by_o their_o counsel_n until_o it_o be_v otherwise_o determine_v the_o duke_n of_o britain_n do_v the_o like_a notwithstanding_o some_o prince_n of_o france_n favour_v benedict_n because_o he_o deny_v they_o nothing_o the_o king_n therefore_o without_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o pope_n dispose_v of_o such_o benefice_n as_o be_v void_a in_o so_o much_o that_o the_o cardinal_n begin_v to_o fear_v lest_o he_o shall_v likewise_o lay_v hand_n upon_o those_o benefice_n they_o hold_v within_o the_o kingdom_n and_o therefore_o they_o send_v a_o legate_n unto_o he_o to_o assure_v he_o that_o if_o benedict_n be_v less_o please_v unto_o he_o they_o will_v enter_v the_o conclave_n again_o to_o choose_v another_o to_o his_o own_o contentment_n the_o legate_n be_v hear_v and_o withal_o a_o friar_n minorite_n who_o reside_v with_o the_o king_n in_o behalf_n of_o boniface_n pope_n of_o rome_n it_o be_v conclude_v in_o council_n not_o without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o university_n that_o both_o the_o rival_n shall_v be_v command_v to_o resign_v the_o popedom_n 58._o froissard_n l._n 4._o c._n 58._o and_o all_o the_o cardinal_n their_o cardinalship_n and_o that_o certain_a clergiemen_n that_o be_v man_n know_v to_o be_v honest_a and_o of_o a_o good_a conscience_n shall_v be_v choose_v out_o of_o germany_n france_n and_o other_o nation_n who_o deliberate_v of_o the_o cause_n among_o themselves_o with_o good_a advice_n and_o without_o all_o fraud_n shall_v restore_v the_o church_n to_o her_o former_a state_n and_o unity_n which_o sentence_n of_o the_o university_n the_o king_n approve_v and_o so_o do_v the_o duke_n of_o orleans_n and_o burgundy_n and_o their_o counsellor_n whereupon_o he_o send_v embassadous_a to_o the_o king_n of_o germany_n bohemia_n hungary_n and_o england_n undertake_v for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o castille_n navarre_n arragon_n sicilia_n naples_n and_o scotland_n that_o they_o shall_v yield_v their_o obedience_n unto_o he_o to_o whosoever_o he_o and_o his_o realm_n shall_v grant_v he_o there_o be_v much_o time_n spend_v in_o these_o embassage_n but_o yet_o with_o this_o fruit_n that_o richard_n king_n of_o england_n agree_v to_o whatsoever_o the_o king_n of_o france_n think_v convenient_a and_o the_o emperor_n wenceslaus_n in_o the_o year_n 1398_o with_o many_o other_o great_a prince_n come_v to_o rheimes_n to_o consider_v of_o this_o business_n with_o the_o king_n notwithstanding_o he_o pretend_v the_o cause_n of_o this_o his_o journey_n to_o be_v the_o marriage_n of_o the_o daughter_n of_o the_o duke_n of_o orleans_n to_o the_o marquesse_n son_n of_o brandebourg_n there_o after_o many_o deliberation_n those_o great_a prince_n be_v assist_v with_o the_o great_a and_o grave_a personage_n of_o their_o state_n decree_n that_o petrus_n de_fw-la alliaco_fw-it bishop_n of_o cambray_n shall_v go_v in_o
their_o name_n to_o boniface_n at_o rome_n and_o there_o shall_v summon_v he_o to_o renounce_v his_o popedom_n that_o a_o new_a election_n may_v be_v make_v wherein_o that_o right_n which_o he_o have_v shall_v be_v still_o reserve_v and_o have_v receive_v his_o answer_n he_o shall_v likewise_o do_v the_o like_a to_o benedict_n the_o emperor_n and_o king_n promise_v each_o of_o they_o for_o the_o king_n and_o prince_n their_o ally_n and_o confederate_n to_o confirm_v this_o their_o decree_n the_o bishop_n therefore_o one_o of_o the_o great_a man_n of_o name_n in_o those_o time_n take_v his_o journey_n to_o rome_n where_o have_v have_v audience_n the_o cardinal_n think_v it_o necessary_a to_o dissemble_v advise_v boniface_n to_o answer_v that_o he_o will_v willing_o yield_v to_o whatsoever_o he_o shall_v be_v by_o they_o advise_v provide_v that_o benedict_n shall_v renounce_v the_o name_n of_o pope_n and_o then_o he_o will_v be_v ready_a wheresoever_o it_o shall_v please_v they_o to_o appoint_v the_o conclave_n and_o yet_o the_o roman_n at_o that_o time_n murmur_v hereat_o because_o they_o fear_v they_o shall_v thereby_o loose_v that_o gain_n they_o hope_v for_o by_o the_o jubilee_n he_o answer_v they_o ingenious_o my_o son_n assure_v yourselves_o i_o will_v continue_v pope_n and_o whatsoever_o these_o king_n shall_v determine_v i_o will_v never_o stand_v to_o their_o arbitrement_n this_o be_v conceal_v from_o the_o bishop_n of_o cambray_n he_o therefore_o return_v to_o the_o emperor_n who_o send_v he_o to_o the_o king_n with_o this_o message_n that_o he_o be_v first_o to_o make_v benedict_n to_o submit_v himself_o since_o boniface_n his_o obedience_n depend_v thereupon_o whereupon_o our_o noble_n and_o prelate_n assemble_v at_o paris_n whither_o nevertheless_o the_o king_n out_o of_o his_o wisdom_n think_v it_o not_o good_a to_o call_v the_o archbishop_n of_o rheimes_n roven_n and_o sens_n because_o the_o pope_n have_v many_o way_n bind_v they_o unto_o he_o there_o by_o the_o council_n of_o the_o university_n of_o paris_n it_o be_v determine_v that_o the_o king_n shall_v present_o send_v monsieur_n boucicant_a his_o marshal_n into_o the_o part_n of_o auignon_fw-fr who_o either_o by_o treaty_n or_o any_o other_o mean_n shall_v endeavour_n that_o benedict_n shall_v yield_v his_o popedom_n to_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o king_n of_o france_n and_o that_o the_o church_n to_o the_o utmost_a bound_n of_o the_o kingdom_n shall_v follow_v neither_o part_n until_o by_o the_o judgement_n and_o decree_n of_o the_o prelate_n who_o be_v deligate_v to_o that_o purpose_n the_o union_n be_v confirm_v the_o bishop_n of_o cambray_n arrive_v at_o auignon_n leave_v the_o marshal_n at_o lion_n there_o to_o attend_v the_o news_n but_o as_o he_o deliver_v his_o message_n benedict_n say_v froissard_n change_v colour_n and_o with_o a_o loud_a voice_n say_v they_o will_v that_o i_o yield_v to_o renounce_v my_o popedom_n while_o i_o live_v i_o will_v never_o do_v it_o and_o i_o will_v have_v the_o king_n of_o france_n to_o understand_v that_o what_o he_o appoint_v i_o will_v not_o do_v but_o i_o will_v retain_v my_o name_n and_o popedom_n to_o the_o death_n to_o which_o the_o bishop_n answer_v i_o take_v you_o to_o be_v wise_a than_o i_o find_v you_o take_v a_o day_n to_o consider_v better_o of_o the_o matter_n with_o your_o brethren_n whereupon_o they_o be_v assemble_v together_o and_o the_o cardinal_n of_o amiens_n show_v that_o whether_o they_o will_v or_o no_o they_o must_v be_v obedient_a to_o the_o king_n and_o that_o the_o king_n of_o france_n do_v already_o threaten_v the_o loss_n of_o the_o fruit_n of_o their_o benefice_n whereby_o many_o do_v already_o stagger_v he_o grow_v the_o more_o obstinate_a i_o will_v not_o resign_v say_v he_o nor_o submit_v my_o popedom_n to_o any_o treaty_n for_o any_o king_n duke_z earl_n whosoever_o and_o with_o those_o word_n he_o dismiss_v the_o bishop_n add_v withal_o you_o shall_v say_v to_o our_o son_n of_o france_n that_o hitherto_o we_o have_v take_v he_o for_o a_o good_a catholic_a who_o now_o we_o see_v by_o a_o wrong_a information_n fall_v into_o error_n but_o he_o shall_v repent_v he_o of_o it_o whereupon_o the_o bishop_n go_v present_o to_o the_o martial_a boucicant_n who_o be_v come_v as_o far_o as_o port_n s._n andrew_n nine_o league_n distant_a from_o auignon_n who_o present_o upon_o the_o news_n send_v for_o the_o nobility_n and_o man_n of_o war_n from_o all_o part_n stop_v the_o passage_n both_o by_o land_n and_o water_n and_o by_o a_o herald_n denounce_v war_n against_o benedict_n within_o his_o palace_n his_o cardinal_n almost_o all_o study_v how_o to_o satisfy_v the_o king_n and_o so_o do_v the_o citizen_n of_o auignon_n but_o he_o persist_v still_o obstinate_a tell_v they_o their_o city_n be_v strong_a that_o he_o will_v send_v for_o the_o king_n of_o arragon_n to_o his_o aid_n who_o he_o know_v will_v come_v to_o serve_v he_o be_v bind_v thereunto_o both_o by_o propinquity_n in_o blood_n and_o that_o obedience_n which_o he_o do_v owe_v unto_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o they_o be_v fright_v with_o small_a matter_n but_o the_o marshal_n have_v threaten_v the_o inhabitant_n that_o he_o will_v burn_v all_o their_o vine_n and_o house_n in_o the_o field_n without_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o pope_n they_o resolve_v with_o some_o of_o the_o cardinal_n who_o join_v with_o they_o that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o amiens_z poitiers_n neufchastel_n viviers_n and_o diverse_a other_o to_o receive_v he_o into_o the_o city_n and_o to_o besiege_v the_o palace_n upon_o condition_n that_o he_o shall_v offer_v no_o violence_n to_o they_o or_o they_o which_o be_v perform_v on_o both_o side_n benedict_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n defend_v himself_o in_o his_o palace_n be_v well_o furnish_v with_o all_o manner_n of_o victual_n and_o still_o expect_v the_o come_n of_o the_o king_n of_o arragon_n to_o who_o if_o he_o will_v now_o set_v he_o at_o liberty_n he_o promise_v by_o a_o instrument_n draw_v to_o that_o purpose_n to_o keep_v his_o residence_n at_o perpignan_n but_o his_o answer_n be_v this_o do_v this_o priest_n think_v that_o i_o to_o defend_v his_o subtlety_n will_v undertake_v a_o war_n against_o the_o king_n of_o france_n the_o world_n will_v think_v i_o be_v ill_o advise_v and_o the_o nobility_n likewise_o that_o be_v about_o he_o be_v of_o opinion_n that_o the_o king_n of_o france_n be_v so_o wise_a that_o he_o will_v do_v nothing_o that_o be_v unlawful_a and_o that_o it_o be_v fit_a that_o the_o clergy_n shall_v learn_v how_o to_o obey_v their_o lord_n from_o who_o they_o have_v their_o maintenance_n &_o remember_v from_o who_o they_o receive_v their_o good_a he_o therefore_o resolve_v by_o the_o king_n of_o france_n his_o example_n and_o at_o his_o request_n to_o follow_v neither_o part_n and_o the_o great_a part_n of_o his_o clergy_n &_o kingdom_n be_v of_o this_o opinion_n since_o by_o no_o other_o mean_v the_o peace_n and_o union_n of_o the_o church_n can_v be_v restore_v benedict_n therefore_o see_v himself_o thus_o forsake_v and_o his_o provision_n to_o decrease_v apace_o begin_v to_o fly_v unto_o mercy_n the_o condition_n be_v these_o that_o he_o will_v not_o depart_v out_o of_o the_o palace_n of_o auignon_n until_o the_o union_n of_o the_o church_n be_v restore_v a_o special_a guard_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n be_v appoint_v over_o he_o and_o some_o of_o the_o principal_a cardinal_n &_o citizen_n bind_v to_o have_v he_o forth_o come_v dead_a or_o alive_a which_o be_v do_v the_o army_n be_v dismiss_v these_o be_v the_o word_n of_o froissard_n 99_o froissard_n c._n 97._o 98._o 99_o so_o the_o king_n of_o france_n perform_v that_o which_o he_o have_v conclude_v with_o the_o emperor_n whereof_o he_o present_o give_v he_o to_o understand_v by_o a_o honourable_a embassage_n the_o chief_a whereof_o be_v the_o patriarch_n of_o jerusalem_n who_o be_v to_o require_v of_o the_o emperor_n according_a to_o promise_v the_o like_a faith_n and_o diligence_n in_o this_o business_n now_o there_o be_v that_o have_v give_v their_o consent_n to_o this_o neutralitie_n the_o king_n of_o spain_n scotland_n arragon_n navarre_n to_o who_o by_o the_o authority_n and_o endeavour_n of_o the_o emperor_n there_o join_v the_o german_n hungarian_n bohemian_o italian_n so_o that_o england_n only_o remain_v for_o who_o the_o king_n of_o france_n have_v past_o his_o word_n but_o king_n richard_n can_v not_o persuade_v his_o clergy_n thereunto_o they_o allege_v that_o this_o richard_n of_o bourdeaux_n be_v whole_o french_a 120._o cap._n 120._o and_o that_o they_o will_v be_v advise_v by_o some_o other_o than_o a_o frenchman_n beside_o he_o be_v short_o after_o trouble_v in_o such_o sort_n with_o his_o domestical_a affair_n that_o he_o have_v no_o leisure_n to_o think_v of_o foreign_a matter_n yea_o
not_o so_o much_o as_o the_o people_n of_o liege_n but_o they_o resolve_v to_o forsake_v boniface_n at_o rome_n and_o to_o embrace_v this_o neutralitie_n to_o who_o the_o better_a to_o retain_v they_o in_o their_o faith_n and_o obedience_n he_o send_v a_o legate_n but_o he_o not_o dare_v to_o pass_v any_o far_a stay_v at_o cologne_n and_o from_o thence_o by_o a_o carrier_n send_v letter_n who_o be_v forbid_v to_o return_v to_o the_o legate_n except_o he_o love_v to_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o river_n mosa_n thus_o be_v the_o miserable_a state_n of_o the_o church_n know_v to_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o this_o bring_v we_o to_o the_o year_n 1399._o 1399._o an._n 1399._o there_o pass_v many_o year_n in_o these_o contention_n betwixt_o these_o pope_n either_o of_o they_o intend_v union_n while_o neither_o of_o they_o embrace_v it_o and_o both_o of_o they_o in_o their_o own_o jurisdiction_n among_o who_o they_o be_v obey_v lay_v exaction_n burden_n and_o exercise_v tyranny_n upon_o the_o church_n violent_o exact_v likewise_o certain_a annuity_n bring_v in_o by_o the_o invention_n of_o boniface_n wheresoever_o their_o power_n do_v extend_v whereupon_o there_o follow_v a_o decree_n of_o our_o parliament_n assist_v by_o the_o great_a council_n date_v the_o eleven_o of_o september_n in_o the_o year_n 1406_o 1406._o an._n 1406._o the_o university_n of_o paris_n request_v the_o same_o by_o which_o it_o be_v forbid_v to_o be_v pay_v to_o the_o pope_n or_o any_o of_o his_o cardinal_n and_o if_o afterward_o they_o shall_v request_v it_o not_o to_o receive_v any_o thing_n from_o he_o or_o to_o have_v aught_o to_o do_v with_o he_o in_o the_o narration_n whereof_o the_o university_n fear_v not_o to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v write_v withdraw_v yourselves_o from_o every_o brother_n that_o walk_v inordinate_o present_o add_v that_o of_o the_o apostle_n i_o know_v that_o after_o my_o departure_n shall_v grievous_a wolf_n enter_v in_o among_o you_o clemangis_n arrestum_fw-la curiae_fw-la a_o 1406._o impressum_fw-la cum_fw-la nicholas_n clemangis_n not_o spare_v the_o flock_n and_o that_o of_o the_o prophet_n because_o my_o flock_n be_v spoil_v and_o my_o sheep_n be_v devour_v of_o the_o beast_n of_o the_o field_n have_v no_o shepherd_n neither_o do_v my_o shepherd_n feed_v my_o sheep_n but_o the_o shepherd_n feed_v themselves_o and_o feed_v not_o my_o sheep_n therefore_o say_v the_o lord_n i_o will_v cause_v they_o to_o cease_v from_o feed_v the_o sheep_n neither_o shall_v the_o shepherd_n feed_v themselves_o any_o more_o for_o i_o will_v deliver_v my_o sheep_n from_o their_o mouth_n and_o they_o shall_v no_o more_o devour_v they_o which_o word_n the_o university_n apply_v to_o benedict_n show_v likewise_o that_o rome_n receive_v the_o pre-eminence_n of_o she_o see_v from_o constantine_n but_o yet_o have_v not_o therefore_o any_o power_n to_o command_v or_o to_o impose_v any_o thing_n upon_o other_o there_o follow_v the_o edict_n of_o charles_n the_o sixth_o then_o reign_v date_a the_o eighteen_o of_o february_n in_o the_o year_n 1406_o whereby_o both_o his_o annuity_n and_o his_o base_a service_n as_o they_o call_v they_o and_o innumerable_a the_o like_a grievance_n and_o oppression_n which_o be_v there_o particular_o express_v be_v utter_o make_v void_a as_o be_v dangerous_a to_o the_o church_n and_o commonweal_n cause_n of_o poverty_n among_o the_o people_n and_o perdition_n to_o a_o million_o of_o poor_a soul_n that_o by_o that_o mean_n be_v destitute_a both_o of_o corporal_a and_o spiritual_a nourishment_n the_o occasion_n of_o this_o edict_n be_v because_o the_o late_a modern_a pope_n be_v often_o admonish_v make_v no_o account_n thereof_o but_o harden_v themselves_o and_o stop_v their_o ear_n against_o all_o complaint_n another_o cause_n be_v because_o the_o regal_a power_n for_o the_o establish_n of_o the_o church_n be_v ordain_v of_o god_n in_o so_o much_o that_o the_o celestial_a kingdom_n may_v be_v amend_v by_o the_o terrestrial_a when_o the_o church_n be_v destroy_v by_o they_o who_o hold_v the_o high_a place_n therein_o and_o be_v to_o be_v repress_v by_o the_o severity_n of_o prince_n to_o who_o in_o such_o case_n we_o be_v only_o to_o fly_v since_o by_o their_o oath_n make_v unto_o god_n they_o be_v to_o provide_v for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n otherwise_o to_o yield_v a_o account_n in_o this_o case_n especial_o wherein_o all_o the_o doctor_n teach_v that_o we_o be_v to_o deny_v obedience_n to_o the_o pope_n himself_o and_o this_o whole_a edict_n be_v yet_o to_o be_v read_v much_o differ_v from_o that_o their_o axiom_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v the_o chief_a command_n both_o in_o heaven_n and_o on_o earth_n these_o thing_n fall_v out_o in_o the_o time_n of_o innocent_a the_o seven_o one_o of_o the_o competitor_n gregory_n his_o successor_n think_v good_a at_o the_o first_o to_o flatter_v we_o and_o by_o his_o legate_n send_v a_o bull_n to_o the_o king_n wherein_o he_o promise_v in_o good_a earnest_n to_o do_v his_o best_a endeavour_n to_o procure_v a_o union_n upon_o those_o condition_n before_o mention_v it_o bare_a date_n the_o eleven_o of_o december_n 1406_o and_o be_v to_o be_v have_v in_o monstrelet_n whereupon_o the_o king_n and_o the_o university_n of_o paris_n the_o matter_n be_v deliberate_v with_o the_o chief_a of_o the_o clergy_n and_o council_n send_v ambassador_n to_o benedict_n the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n the_o bishop_n of_o cambray_n and_o beauvais_n the_o abbot_n of_o s._n denis_n and_o mount_v s._n michael_n and_o certain_a doctor_n of_o the_o university_n who_o shall_v let_v he_o understand_v that_o except_o he_o will_v do_v his_o office_n and_o come_v to_o some_o reason_n that_o the_o king_n and_o the_o dolphin_n will_v withdraw_v themselves_o from_o his_o obedience_n and_o refuse_v his_o bull_n benedict_n continue_v obstinate_a in_o his_o purpose_n entertain_v the_o ambassador_n with_o fair_a word_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n without_o the_o knowledge_n of_o his_o cardinal_n make_v a_o constitution_n which_o he_o send_v by_o special_a messenger_n to_o the_o king_n and_o university_n threaten_v grievous_a punishment_n to_o all_o those_o that_o shall_v withdraw_v themselves_o from_o the_o obedience_n of_o himself_o and_o his_o successor_n 33._o monstrelet_n vol._n 1._o c._n 33._o and_o afterward_o with_o doubtful_a speech_n send_v away_o the_o ambassador_n the_o king_n and_o his_o council_n begin_v now_o to_o perceive_v that_o these_o pope_n abuse_v the_o world_n both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o but_o yet_o be_v nothing_o terrify_v therewith_o but_o the_o year_n follow_v they_o send_v john_n de_fw-fr castro_n morando_fw-la and_o john_n de_fw-fr courseno_n ●0_n jdem_fw-la 1._o cap._n ●0_n knight_n to_o benedict_n to_o let_v he_o know_v that_o if_o the_o union_n be_v not_o restore_v to_o the_o church_n by_o ascention_n day_n that_o he_o the_o clergy_n noble_n and_o people_n of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o dolphin_n will_v no_o long_o obey_v he_o nor_o his_o adversary_n to_o who_o he_o answer_v without_o delay_n that_o he_o will_v send_v a_o answer_n by_o a_o special_a messenger_n who_o be_v a_o certain_a man_n i_o know_v not_o who_o that_o come_v into_o the_o palace_n of_o s._n paul_n where_o the_o king_n court_n then_o be_v and_o enter_v into_o the_o king_n oratory_n at_o the_o begin_n of_o mass_n deliver_v benedict_n his_o letter_n and_o present_o depart_v the_o letter_n be_v read_v which_o contain_v a_o excommunication_n against_o the_o king_n and_o his_o subject_n but_o the_o messenger_n vanish_v wherefore_o the_o king_n by_o the_o counsel_n of_o his_o prince_n and_o the_o persuasion_n of_o the_o university_n of_o paris_n forsake_v the_o pope_n and_o withdraw_v himself_o from_o his_o obedience_n the_o letter_n be_v to_o be_v read_v in_o the_o same_o author_n wherein_o the_o pope_n complain_v that_o the_o subject_n of_o his_o kingdom_n rebel_v against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o appeal_n from_o he_o against_o the_o canonical_a constitution_n and_o that_o the_o king_n permit_v diverse_a error_n to_o be_v sow_v therein_o contrary_a to_o the_o purity_n of_o the_o law_n so_o he_o call_v the_o reprehension_n of_o his_o exaction_n furthermore_o that_o the_o union_n which_o he_o dream_v of_o be_v proper_o a_o sin_n and_o a_o perseverance_n in_o a_o schism_n and_o that_o such_o as_o exhort_v he_o thereunto_o do_v but_o abuse_v he_o conclude_v that_o if_o he_o continue_v in_o this_o vain_a error_n beside_o those_o punishment_n and_o sentence_n pronounce_v in_o the_o law_n he_o will_v send_v constitution_n comprehend_v in_o his_o bull_n by_o the_o tenor_n whereof_o both_o he_o and_o all_o other_o that_o shall_v offend_v shall_v be_v punish_v these_o letter_n nevertheless_o be_v intermingle_v with_o some_o flattery_n but_o the_o bull_n mar_v all_o we_o excommunicate_a all_o those_o that_o shall_v appeal_v from_o we_o or_o our_o
successor_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n enter_v into_o the_o popedom_n by_o the_o right_a way_n and_o all_o such_o as_o shall_v yield_v any_o help_n or_o favour_n to_o any_o such_o appellant_n or_o perturber_n etc._n etc._n or_o shall_v affirm_v they_o not_o to_o be_v bind_v and_o excommunicate_v by_o our_o sentence_n of_o what_o degree_n or_o dignity_n soever_o they_o be_v whether_o cardinal_n patriarch_n archbishop_n bishop_n of_o authority_n or_o majesty_n royal_a or_o imperial_a of_o whatsoever_o state_n or_o condition_n ecclesiastical_a or_o civil_a from_o which_o sentence_v none_o can_v be_v absolve_v but_o by_o the_o pope_n except_o it_o be_v at_o the_o point_n of_o death_n etc._n etc._n which_o excommunication_n be_v denounce_v by_o we_o if_o he_o shall_v obstinate_o bear_v for_o the_o space_n of_o 20_o day_n if_o he_o be_v a_o prince_n we_o subject_v he_o to_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o church_n with_o all_o his_o land_n town_n city_n castle_n etc._n etc._n if_o university_n so_o likewise_o &c._n &c._n notwithstanding_o all_o liberty_n grace_n apostolic_a indulgence_n grant_v from_o we_o or_o our_o predecessor_n now_o it_o be_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o year_n 1408_o that_o the_o university_n of_o paris_n by_o the_o mouth_n of_o master_n john_n courteheuse_n a_o norman_a in_o the_o great_a hall_n of_o the_o palace_n of_o paris_n make_v their_o complaint_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o king_n of_o france_n and_o sicilia_n the_o duke_n of_o barry_n of_o bar_n and_o brabant_n the_o earl_n of_o mortaigne_a nevers_n s._n paul_n &_o tancarville_n the_o rector_n of_o the_o university_n and_o deputy_n thereof_o and_o a_o great_a multitude_n of_o the_o nobility_n clergy_n and_o people_n also_o the_o earl_n of_o warwick_n a_o englishman_n and_o the_o ambassador_n of_o scotland_n and_o galicia_n the_o text_n of_o this_o master_n john_n be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o 7._o psal_n v._o 16._o his_o mischief_n shall_v return_v upon_o his_o own_o head_n and_o his_o cruelty_n shall_v fall_v upon_o his_o own_o pate_n from_o which_o word_n he_o draw_v six_o conclusion_n the_o first_o be_v that_o petrus_n de_fw-fr luna_n that_o be_v benedict_n be_v a_o obstinate_a schismatic_n yea_o a_o heretic_n a_o troubler_n of_o the_o peace_n and_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n the_o second_o that_o he_o be_v not_o to_o be_v call_v a_o pope_n nor_o a_o cardinal_n or_o to_o be_v honour_v with_o any_o other_o title_n of_o dignity_n nor_o obey_v as_o a_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n upon_o those_o pain_n ordain_v against_o such_o as_o favour_v schismatic_n the_o three_o that_o the_o act_n say_n collation_n provision_n etc._n etc._n from_o the_o date_n of_o the_o letter_n make_v in_o form_n of_o a_o bull_n and_o all_o punishment_n temporal_a and_o spiritual_a public_a or_o private_a therein_o contain_v be_v of_o no_o force_n the_o four_o that_o the_o say_a letter_n be_v wicked_a seditious_a full_a of_o fraud_n trouble_v the_o peace_n offend_v his_o royal_a majesty_n the_o five_o that_o those_o letter_n be_v not_o to_o be_v obey_v and_o he_o that_o do_v obey_v they_o to_o be_v censure_v as_o a_o favourer_n of_o schismatic_n the_o sixth_o that_o the_o say_v peter_n his_o favourer_n and_o such_o as_o receive_v his_o letter_n be_v to_o be_v proceed_v against_o by_o a_o course_n of_o law_n whereupon_o the_o university_n request_v his_o majesty_n first_o that_o due_a inquisition_n shall_v be_v make_v of_o those_o letter_n and_o their_o receiver_n that_o such_o a_o punishment_n may_v be_v inflict_v upon_o they_o as_o the_o university_n at_o fit_a time_n and_o place_n shall_v appoint_v second_o that_o the_o king_n nor_o any_o of_o his_o realm_n shall_v any_o more_o receive_v any_o letter_n from_o benedict_n three_o that_o the_o university_n of_o paris_n may_v be_v enjoin_v by_o the_o command_n of_o the_o king_n to_o preach_v the_o truth_n throughout_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n four_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o s._n flour_n master_n peter_n de_fw-fr courselles_n sancien_fw-fr de_fw-fr leu_n deane_n of_o s._n german_n d'_fw-fr auxerre_n be_v apprehend_v shall_v be_v punish_v according_a to_o their_o demerit_n that_o be_v for_o join_v in_o council_n with_o the_o pope_n five_o that_o that_o pretend_a bull_n may_v be_v tear_v as_o injurious_a and_o offensive_a to_o the_o majesty_n of_o the_o king_n the_o university_n protest_v to_o proceed_v to_o great_a matter_n touch_v the_o faith_n note_v these_o word_n and_o to_o expound_v they_o and_o to_o show_v they_o to_o those_o to_o who_o it_o appertain_v all_o which_o be_v grant_v by_o the_o king_n to_o the_o university_n the_o pope_n letter_n be_v present_o in_o that_o honourable_a assembly_n tear_v by_o the_o rector_n of_o the_o university_n the_o above_n name_v apprehend_v and_o cast_v into_o prison_n in_o the_o lovure_n and_o the_o messenger_n that_o bring_v the_o bull_n by_o the_o diligence_n of_o the_o king_n proctor_n be_v take_v not_o far_o from_o lion_n and_o bring_v back_o bind_v to_o paris_n which_o benedict_n understand_v be_v so_o astonish_v that_o with_o four_o of_o his_o cardinal_n by_o venus_n gate_n he_o secret_o steal_v away_o and_o go_v to_o perpignan_n there_o be_v in_o the_o month_n of_o august_n follow_v another_o assembly_n touch_v the_o same_o matter_n where_o the_o chancellor_n of_o france_n be_v precedent_n all_o these_o prince_n and_o great_a personage_n assist_v as_o before_o there_o a_o certain_a doctor_n of_o divinity_n famous_a among_o the_o dominican_n take_v upon_o he_o to_o expound_v that_o scripture_n in_o the_o 14_o of_o the_o roman_n verse_n 19_o let_v we_o follow_v those_o thing_n that_o concern_v peace_n and_o wherewith_o one_o may_v edify_v another_o in_o the_o handle_n whereof_o he_o prove_v benedict_n a_o schismatic_n six_o way_n his_o bull_n fraudulent_a and_o injurious_a and_o that_o the_o king_n in_o that_o he_o take_v part_n with_o neither_o and_o have_v withdraw_v himself_o from_o the_o obedience_n of_o both_o have_v do_v that_o which_o be_v right_a and_o just_a but_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n say_v monstrelet_n master_n sanctien_n and_o the_o messenger_n of_o peter_n de_fw-fr luna_n benedict_n who_o have_v bring_v the_o letter_n before_o mention_v to_o the_o king_n both_o arragonian_n be_v both_o mytre_v and_o attire_v with_o habiliment_n wherein_o the_o arm_n of_o peter_n de_fw-fr luna_n be_v paint_v upside_o down_o be_v draw_v out_o of_o the_o lovure_n upon_o a_o sle_z into_o the_o court_n of_o the_o palace_n where_o near_o the_o marble_n pillar_n that_o be_v next_o the_o stair_n there_o be_v a_o scaffold_n build_v whereupon_o they_o be_v set_v to_o be_v see_v of_o all_o that_o will_v behold_v they_o and_o on_o their_o mitre_n there_o be_v write_v these_o be_v disloyal_a to_o the_o church_n and_o king_n the_o day_n after_o there_o be_v a_o council_n hold_v again_o in_o the_o palace_n where_o master_n vrsinus_n taluenda_fw-la doctor_n of_o divinity_n speak_v for_o the_o university_n of_o paris_n and_o take_v his_o theme_n out_o of_o the_o 122._o psal_n v._o 7._o peace_n be_v within_o thy_o wall_n etc._n etc._n in_o the_o handle_n whereof_o he_o exhort_v the_o king_n and_o prince_n to_o provide_v a_o remedy_n for_o this_o schism_n prove_v peter_n to_o be_v a_o schismatic_n and_o a_o heretic_n and_o all_o that_o obey_v he_o to_o incur_v the_o punishment_n due_a to_o the_o favourer_n of_o schism_n and_o heresy_n allege_v many_o example_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n that_o make_v to_o that_o purpose_n moreover_o he_o do_v earnest_o request_v that_o the_o bull_n may_v be_v public_o tear_v with_o other_o of_o that_o kind_n bring_v to_o thoulouse_n which_o be_v present_o grant_v and_o put_v in_o execution_n the_o twenty_o of_o august_n 1408._o 52._o cap._n 52._o and_o all_o prelate_n and_o other_o ecclesiastical_a person_n likewise_o command_v within_o the_o confine_n of_o their_o benefice_n with_o a_o loud_a voice_n to_o publish_v this_o neutrallitie_n etc._n etc._n and_o the_o morrow_n after_o both_o the_o arragonian_n before_o name_v be_v again_o lead_v through_o the_o city_n and_o put_v to_o open_a shame_n upon_o a_o scaffold_n as_o former_o they_o have_v be_v which_o vigour_n and_o courage_n be_v so_o much_o the_o rather_o worth_a the_o note_n because_o it_o fall_v out_o in_o the_o most_o perilous_a division_n of_o our_o state_n now_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o cardinal_n both_o of_o the_o one_o part_n and_o the_o other_o take_v heart_n for_o the_o most_o part_n forsake_v both_o pope_n &_o assemble_v themselves_o at_o pisa_n where_o in_o a_o council_n they_o depose_v they_o both_o as_o be_v both_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n the_o act_n of_o which_o council_n be_v set_v down_o at_o large_a in_o certain_a letter_n of_o the_o abbot_n of_o s._n maxence_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o poitiers_n who_o be_v present_a at_o that_o council_n 54._o cap._n
maleficorum_fw-la bodin_n allege_v out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o jacob_n sprenger_n inquisitor_n of_o witch_n a_o strange_a dispensation_n of_o this_o nicholas_n a_o certain_a german_a bishop_n be_v sick_a who_o nicholas_n great_o love_v he_o understand_v by_o a_o witch_n that_o his_o sickness_n come_v of_o witchcraft_n from_o which_o he_o can_v not_o be_v deliver_v but_o by_o a_o contrary_a charm_n by_o which_o the_o witch_n herself_o that_o have_v bewitch_v he_o must_v die_v he_o therefore_o send_v in_o post_n to_o nicholas_n entreat_v leave_n of_o he_o to_o be_v cure_v by_o the_o witch_n which_o dispensation_n nicholas_n grant_v with_o this_o clause_n of_o two_o evil_n avoid_v the_o great_a the_o bull_n be_v receive_v the_o witch_n under_o the_o pope_n authority_n and_o at_o the_o bishop_n entreaty_n set_v her_o hand_n to_o the_o business_n about_o midnight_n the_o bishop_n be_v restore_v to_o health_n and_o at_o the_o very_a same_o instant_n the_o disease_n pass_v into_o she_o that_o have_v bewitch_v he_o whereof_o she_o die_v and_o they_o will_v make_v we_o believe_v that_o this_o pope_n dye_v of_o grief_n for_o the_o loss_n of_o constantinople_n but_o his_o deny_v of_o succour_n to_o the_o greek_n persuade_v we_o to_o the_o contrary_n from_o this_o shipwreck_n he_o gather_v about_o he_o some_o learned_a grecian_n but_o that_o be_v proper_o to_o build_v up_o the_o sepulcher_n of_o the_o prophet_n who_o before_o he_o have_v suffer_v to_o be_v murder_v but_o alphonsus_n borgia_n who_o succeed_v he_o by_o the_o name_n of_o calixtus_n the_o three_o make_v a_o show_n of_o repair_v that_o fault_n and_o present_o denounce_v war_n against_o the_o turk_n say_v that_o he_o have_v make_v a_o vow_n to_o that_o end_n a_o long_a time_n before_o know_v but_o whence_o have_v he_o this_o pprophecy_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v pope_n and_o show_v write_v and_o subscribe_v with_o his_o own_o hand_n in_o a_o certain_a book_n these_o word_n follow_v i_o pope_n calixtus_n make_v a_o vow_n to_o almighty_a god_n 3_o platina_n in_o calixto_n 3_o and_o to_o the_o holy_a indivisible_a trinity_n that_o i_o will_v persecute_v the_o turk_n most_o cruel_a enemy_n of_o the_o christian_a name_n by_o war_n curse_n interdiction_n execration_n and_o to_o conclude_v in_o whatsoever_o manner_n i_o can_v and_o yet_o be_v he_o already_o decrepit_a with_o age_n he_o impose_v therefore_o a_o ten_o on_o all_o the_o clergy_n and_o publish_v a_o croysado_n throughout_o all_o europe_n according_a to_o custom_n grant_v full_a remission_n of_o sin_n to_o all_o that_o contribute_v to_o it_o so_o that_o once_o in_o his_o life_n and_o once_o at_o his_o death_n he_o be_v confess_v yea_o and_o give_v authority_n to_o whosoever_o will_v give_v five_o ducat_n to_o absolve_v and_o dispense_v in_o many_o case_n and_o there_o be_v set_v forth_o to_o sea_n only_o sixteen_o galley_n under_o the_o charge_n of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o aquileia_n alphonsus_n king_n of_o naples_n and_o philip_n duke_n of_o bourgondie_n be_v admonish_v to_o cross_v themselves_o for_o those_o war_n which_o they_o make_v show_v of_o but_o as_o the_o business_n be_v for_o a_o brunt_n only_o with_o great_a earnestness_n stir_v forward_o so_o also_o it_o easy_o rest_v and_o then_o say_v platina_n ad_fw-la pontificia_fw-la negotia_fw-la animum_fw-la adijciens_fw-la apply_v his_o mind_n to_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o popedom_n he_o begin_v to_o canonize_v saint_n one_o edmund_n in_o england_n one_o vincent_n in_o spain_n and_o other_o which_o bessarion_n see_v especial_o how_o rash_o and_o indirect_o the_o same_o be_v do_v these_o new_a saint_n say_v he_o make_v i_o doubt_v of_o the_o old_a hist_n gulielm_n langaeus_fw-la in_o praefat._n suae_fw-la hist_n but_o it_o behove_v they_o also_o in_o this_o to_o imitat_fw-la the_o chief_a bishop_n of_o the_o pagan_n moreover_o for_o a_o supply_n in_o stead_n of_o yield_a succour_n to_o the_o greek_n he_o ordain_v a_o bell_n to_o be_v toll_v every_o day_n between_o noon_n and_o evening_n at_o the_o sound_n whereof_o whosoever_o do_v on_o their_o knee_n mutter_v over_o three_o ave-maries_a and_o pater-noster_n shall_v have_v three_o year_n and_o three_o forty_o part_n of_o indulgence_n also_o he_o appoint_v a_o general_a procession_n or_o litany_n every_o first_o sunday_n of_o the_o month_n in_o which_o whosoever_o assist_v shall_v obtain_v seven_o year_n and_o seven_o forty_o part_n of_o indulgence_n beside_o a_o prayer_n in_o the_o mass_n for_o victory_n against_o the_o infidel_n which_o who_o so_o say_v shall_v also_o merit_v three_o year_n of_o indulgence_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n if_o the_o safety_n and_o good_a of_o christendom_n have_v be_v serious_o think_v upon_o there_o be_v offer_v a_o very_a notable_a occasion_n 14._o antonin_n part_n 3._o tit_n 22._o c._n 14._o for_o john_n vaivode_v in_o that_o very_a time_n overcome_v mahomet_n in_o that_o famous_a battle_n near_o belgrade_n who_o his_o force_n be_v diminish_v and_o he_o leave_v of_o our_o man_n he_o can_v not_o follow_v but_o calixtus_n howsoever_o forget_v not_o to_o look_v to_o his_o own_o affair_n and_o therefore_o alphonsus_n king_n of_o naples_n be_v decease_v and_o ferdinand_n his_o bastard_n have_v obtain_v his_o place_n he_o present_o provide_v for_o the_o chief_a bishopricke_n of_o the_o realm_n which_o he_o dare_v not_o do_v in_o the_o king_n life-time_n and_o which_o be_v more_o say_v antoninus_n by_o bull_n he_o declare_v 16._o antonin_n part_n 3._o tit_n 22._o c._n 16._o that_o the_o realm_n of_o naples_n vacant_a pertain_v to_o he_o alone_o as_o a_o feoffee_n of_o the_o church_n command_v ferdinand_n to_o forgo_v it_o and_o that_o neither_o he_o nor_o any_o other_o whosoever_o under_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n shall_v call_v himself_o king_n of_o that_o kingdom_n but_o that_o if_o any_o pretend_v there_o any_o right_n the_o business_n shall_v first_o be_v discuss_v by_o he_o who_o dissolve_v all_o oath_n of_o fidelity_n or_o homage_n which_o any_o have_v yield_v unto_o he_o he_o likewise_o write_v to_o the_o state_n of_o the_o kingdom_n that_o ferdinand_n be_v not_o the_o son_n of_o alphonsus_n but_o one_o suppose_v and_o this_o he_o do_v that_o he_o may_v transfer_v the_o kingdom_n to_o i●igni_n borgia_n his_o nephew_n or_o his_o son_n from_o which_o sentence_n ferdinand_n move_v with_o anger_n appeal_v francis_n sforcia_n duke_n of_o milan_n his_o father_n in_o law_n be_v also_o grievous_o offend_v protest_v to_o leave_v nothing_o unattempted_a whereby_o the_o state_n of_o his_o son_n in_o law_n may_v be_v defend_v bossius_n pandolf_n colenuc_fw-la lib._n 5._o donatus_n bossius_n but_o thereupon_o calixtus_n die_v who_o a_o little_a before_o have_v frame_v the_o office_n or_o service_n of_o the_o transfiguration_n with_o the_o like_a indulgence_n as_o have_v the_o feast_n of_o corpus_fw-la christri_fw-la for_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o the_o popish_a religion_n be_v mere_o humane_a shall_v from_o day_n to_o day_n increase_v with_o humane_a invention_n aeneas_n silvius_n call_v pius_n the_o second_o a_o man_n of_o great_a knowledge_n i_o will_v he_o have_v be_v of_o like_a conscience_n 1458._o an._n 1458._o succeed_v this_o calixtus_n in_o the_o year_n 1458_o but_o the_o papal_a chair_n soon_o discover_v what_o a_o manner_n of_o man_n he_o be_v he_o have_v be_v scribe_n in_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n 2._o platina_n in_o pio_n 2._o register_n of_o the_o apostolic_a letter_n one_o of_o the_o twelve_o which_o be_v ordain_v censor_n of_o the_o council_n yea_o have_v many_o time_n sit_v chief_a among_o those_o that_o have_v be_v depute_v touch_v matter_n of_o faith_n and_o be_v twice_o choose_v among_o they_o which_o confer_v benefice_n and_o if_o any_o thing_n of_o moment_n be_v to_o be_v determine_v by_o the_o nation_n he_o be_v ever_o choose_v chief_a for_o italy_n he_o be_v moreover_o appoint_v ambassador_n in_o the_o counsel_n name_n thrice_o to_o strasbourg_n once_o to_o trent_n twice_o to_o constance_n once_o to_o frankford_n and_o twice_o into_o savoy_n author_n or_o furtherer_n of_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v do_v in_o this_o council_n the_o act_n whereof_o he_o write_v down_o in_o two_o book_n out_o of_o which_o his_o opinion_n thereof_o be_v manifest_a enough_o in_o so_o much_o that_o when_o eugenius_n be_v depose_v and_o felix_n set_v in_o his_o place_n he_o be_v send_v by_o felix_n ambassador_n to_o the_o emperor_n frederick_n to_o declare_v unto_o he_o the_o just_a cause_n of_o his_o election_n on_o which_o occasion_n admire_v the_o dexterity_n of_o his_o wit_n he_o draw_v he_o to_o his_o service_n he_o be_v send_v to_o rome_n by_o frederic_n to_o deal_v with_o the_o pope_n about_o his_o coronation_n be_v entice_v with_o the_o delight_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o in_o favour_n of_o nicholas_n sell_v the_o renunciation_n of_o felix_n whereupon_o he_o be_v
first_o create_v bishop_n of_o triesté_n and_o after_o cardinal_n by_o calixtus_n and_o by_o degree_n according_a to_o the_o increase_n of_o his_o dignity_n he_o change_v his_o stile_n as_o appear_v to_o whosoever_o read_v his_o epistle_n which_o he_o himself_o have_v distinguish_v by_o degree_n till_o at_o length_n be_v make_v pope_n he_o think_v nothing_o better_o than_o to_o revoke_v his_o former_a and_o more_o laudable_a act_n by_o his_o bull_n set_v forth_o concern_v that_o matter_n bear_v the_o title_n of_o retractation_n and_o the_o thing_n which_o before_o he_o have_v seem_v to_o detest_v in_o other_o pope_n he_o himself_o now_o both_o praise_v and_o advance_v forward_o this_o be_v manifest_a by_o the_o bull_n which_o begin_v execrabilis_fw-la date_v in_o the_o second_o year_n of_o his_o popedom_n whereby_o he_o forbid_v to_o appeal_v from_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o pope_n to_o the_o future_a council_n pronounce_v all_o such_o appeal_n of_o emperor_n king_n bishop_n etc._n etc._n to_o be_v void_a vain_a execrable_a and_o pestiferous_a excommunicate_v such_o as_o have_v appeal_v not_o to_o be_v absolve_v but_o at_o the_o point_n of_o death_n he_o also_o subiect_v university_n college_n and_o other_o corporation_n to_o the_o interdict_v and_o inflict_v upon_o all_o the_o punishment_n of_o high_a treason_n and_o heresy_n and_o the_o notary_n or_o letter-carrier_n witness_n and_o other_o which_o be_v at_o those_o act_n etc._n etc._n in_o another_o bull_n also_o which_o begin_v in_o minoribus_fw-la agentes_fw-la direct_v to_o the_o university_n of_o colonia_n 1463._o an._n 1463._o in_o the_o year_n 1463_o he_o profess_v that_o it_o repent_v he_o that_o he_o write_v the_o dialogue_n and_o other_o book_n for_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o council_n say_v that_o he_o have_v persecute_v the_o church_n of_o god_n ignorant_o as_o do_v s._n paul_n contrariwise_o affirm_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n to_o be_v above_o the_o church_n by_o the_o same_o text_n which_o before_o he_o have_v expound_v in_o a_o far_a other_o sense_n wherefore_o he_o declare_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o sovereign_a monarch_n of_o the_o church_n who_o sin_n be_v leave_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n so_o that_o no_o man_n may_v take_v knowledge_n of_o they_o and_o nevertheless_o at_o the_o end_n he_o reverence_v say_v he_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n which_o have_v decree_v the_o contrary_a but_o here_o bellarmine_n invent_v a_o notable_a distinction_n that_o the_o late_a session_n be_v approve_v not_o the_o first_o because_o in_o the_o first_o the_o council_n be_v place_v above_o the_o pope_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o in_o that_o council_n martin_n the_o five_o have_v be_v choose_v and_o what_o he_o have_v cause_v to_o be_v ordain_v in_o the_o late_a take_v force_n and_o vigour_n only_o from_o the_o first_o session_n whereby_o it_o be_v judge_v that_o the_o council_n may_v judge_v the_o pope_n arraign_v he_o condemn_v depose_v and_o punish_v he_o and_o choose_v another_o in_o his_o room_n all_o which_o they_o have_v practise_v on_o john_n the_o four_o and_o twenty_o benedict_n the_o thirteen_o and_o martin_n the_o five_o depose_v the_o two_o former_a and_o elect_v the_o three_o and_o both_o the_o session_n former_a and_o late_a proceed_v from_o one_o same_o spirit_n and_o from_o one_o and_o the_o same_o authority_n but_o it_o trouble_v they_o that_o they_o know_v not_o which_o way_n to_o turn_v themselves_o when_o they_o be_v demand_v what_o be_v the_o vocation_n of_o martin_n eugenius_n and_o other_o which_o have_v no_o ground_n but_o on_o the_o only_a decision_n of_o this_o council_n and_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n and_o here_o we_o may_v set_v before_o the_o eye_n of_o silvius_n what_o he_o have_v say_v of_o this_o council_n and_o that_o of_o basil_n which_o now_o he_o condemn_v and_o that_o not_o be_v a_o young_a man_n as_o he_o say_v but_o a_o man_n of_o perfect_a age_n and_o honour_v with_o principal_a dignity_n where_o be_v there_o in_o the_o world_n such_o a_o company_n of_o father_n where_o so_o great_a light_n of_o knowledge_n where_o the_o wisdom_n where_o be_v the_o goodness_n that_o can_v be_v equal_a to_o the_o virtue_n of_o these_o father_n o_o most_o perfect_a fraternity_n o_o true_a senate_n of_o the_o world_n etc._n etc._n so_o that_o these_o thing_n may_v not_o honest_o now_o be_v deny_v but_o as_o the_o eye_n of_o reason_n be_v other_o than_o the_o eye_n of_o passion_n so_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o a_o upright_o mind_v other_o than_o of_o corrupt_a desire_n of_o silvius_n sit_v in_o that_o most_o honourable_a assembly_n which_o he_o describe_v unto_o we_o than_o of_o pius_n the_o second_o reign_v in_o that_o contagious_a chair_n and_o he_o have_v cast_v out_o a_o speech_n of_o a_o expedition_n into_o asia_n against_o the_o turk_n in_o the_o assembly_n of_o mantua_n 2._o bulla_n quae_fw-la incipit_fw-la quoniam_fw-la ut_fw-la proxime_fw-la in_o summa_fw-la constitution_n johan._n 5._o stella_fw-la in_o pio_n 2._o whither_o the_o ambassador_n of_o many_o prince_n be_v come_v from_o all_o part_n and_o under_o pretence_n thereof_o have_v impose_v a_o ten_o on_o the_o whole_a clergy_n yea_o even_o upon_o all_o the_o profit_n of_o the_o roman_a court_n but_o he_o can_v not_o bring_v it_o to_o effect_n perhaps_o because_o he_o arrogate_a too_o much_o to_o himself_o with_o the_o prince_n which_o be_v of_o great_a power_n for_o say_v stella_n for_o the_o augmentation_n of_o the_o papal_a majesty_n he_o fear_v neither_o king_n nor_o duke_n neither_o people_n nor_o tyrant_n but_o if_o they_o see_v any_o offend_a that_o be_v to_o say_v not_o obey_v in_o all_o point_n his_o desire_n he_o persecute_v they_o so_o long_o both_o by_o war_n and_o by_o censure_n till_o he_o perceive_v they_o to_o be_v recover_v and_o for_o this_o cause_n become_v he_o a_o adversary_n to_o lewis_n king_n of_o france_n who_o go_v about_o to_o diminish_v the_o liberty_n of_o the_o church_n in_o his_o kingdom_n to_o borsio_fw-la d'este_fw-fr because_o he_o favour_v sigismond_n malatesta_n and_o the_o affair_n of_o france_n against_o ferdinand_n he_o persecute_v with_o terrible_a execration_n sigismond_n duke_n of_o austria_n for_o that_o he_o have_v chastise_v the_o cardinal_n of_o s._n peter_n ad_fw-la vincula_fw-la he_o depose_v also_o the_o archbishop_n of_o mentz_n judge_v ill_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o set_v up_o another_o in_o his_o room_n he_o depose_v likewise_o the_o archbishop_n of_o benevent_v for_o attempt_v new_a matter_n against_o his_o will_n and_o for_o that_o he_o will_v betray_v benevent_v to_o the_o frenchman_n and_o he_o bring_v many_o town_n of_o campania_n into_o the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n neither_o do_v history_n conceal_v that_o he_o confirm_v the_o kingdom_n of_o naples_n to_o ferdinand_n revoke_v the_o bull_n of_o calixtus_n the_o three_o and_o that_o in_o favour_n of_o the_o marriage_n of_o anthony_n picolhuomini_n his_o nephew_n with_o the_o sister_n of_o the_o wife_n of_o ferdinand_n who_o dowry_n be_v the_o earldom_n of_o maldeburg_n and_o celano_n whereby_o he_o begin_v to_o set_v himself_o against_o the_o right_n of_o our_o france_n monstrelet_n add_v 3._o monstrelet_n vol._n 3._o that_o it_o be_v common_o think_v that_o ferdinand_n have_v give_v pius_n a_o very_a great_a sum_n of_o gold_n partly_o to_o be_v absolve_v of_o his_o crime_n and_o partly_o that_o he_o may_v peaceable_o enjoy_v his_o kingdom_n but_o his_o ambition_n can_v not_o better_o be_v know_v than_o in_o his_o 396_o epistle_n where_o he_o offer_v and_o promise_v the_o empire_n of_o the_o greek_n to_o mahomet_n king_n of_o the_o turk_n if_o he_o will_v become_v a_o christian_n and_o succour_v the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v his_o faction_n that_o he_o may_v the_o more_o easy_o rend_v christendom_n which_o he_o vex_v with_o continual_a war_n presume_v to_o persuade_v he_o that_o that_o empire_n depend_v on_o he_o and_o be_v in_o his_o gift_n and_o that_o so_o his_o predecessor_n have_v give_v the_o empire_n of_o germany_n to_o charlemagne_n it_o seem_v that_o to_o he_o also_o be_v to_o be_v ascribe_v that_o extraordinary_a pomp_n of_o corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la day_n for_o that_o which_o be_v common_o boast_v of_o the_o temple_n of_o s._n peter_n very_o fit_o agree_v with_o the_o roman_a superstition_n which_o never_o be_v bring_v to_o his_o full_a height_n antoninus_n campanus_n bishop_n of_o arrezzo_n in_o the_o life_n of_o pius_n say_v he_o celebrate_v at_o viterbium_n the_o feast_n of_o the_o eucharist_n with_o a_o unaccustomed_a bravery_n the_o city_n be_v under_o foot_n spread_v with_o scarlet_a over_o head_n cover_v with_o linen_n in_o which_o star_n of_o gold_n shine_v as_o in_o the_o firmament_n so_o that_o the_o procession_n go_v not_o see_v the_o sky_n between_o flower_n strew_v a_o inch_n thick_a
letter_n which_o he_o have_v write_v to_o they_o of_o norimberg_n our_o saviour_n say_v pius_n substitute_v peter_n prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n who_o know_v not_o answer_v heimburg_n that_o jesus_n command_v all_o the_o apostle_n that_o they_o shall_v go_v to_o preach_v faith_n baptism_n and_o salvation_n through_o the_o world_n who_o know_v not_o that_o the_o promise_n be_v make_v to_o all_o that_o whatsoever_o they_o do_v bind_v on_o earth_n shuold_v be_v in_o heaven_n in_o which_o word_n he_o plain_o take_v away_o the_o pope_n primacy_n insomuch_o say_v he_o that_o to_o this_o day_n the_o catholic_a church_n pray_v to_o be_v keep_v by_o the_o continual_a protection_n of_o the_o apostle_n who_o our_o saviour_n himself_o have_v appoint_v to_o rule_v pastor_n and_o vicar_n of_o so_o great_a a_o work_n and_o therefore_o who_o doubt_v but_o that_o the_o holy_a counsel_n represent_v the_o place_n of_o christ_n which_o have_v succeed_v the_o assembly_n of_o the_o apostle_n see_v that_o the_o world_n be_v great_a than_o a_o city_n pius_n say_v again_o that_o it_o be_v a_o vain_a thing_n to_o appeal_v to_o a_o council_n which_o be_v not_o and_o which_o can_v be_v above_o the_o pope_n to_o which_o he_o repli_v the_o assembly_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v above_o s._n peter_n and_o like_a as_o appeal_v may_v be_v make_v to_o the_o apostolic_a seat_n vacant_a so_o to_o a_o council_n not_o yet_o gather_v etc._n etc._n this_o be_v a_o slavish_a service_n which_o he_o exact_v of_o we_o and_o not_o a_o filial_a reverence_n etc._n etc._n he_o call_v i_o heretic_n because_o i_o say_v that_o a_o council_n of_o all_o christendom_n be_v above_o the_o pope_n but_o i_o say_v the_o pope_n be_v a_o heretic_n who_o hold_v the_o contrary_a etc._n etc._n he_o command_v my_o good_n to_o be_v confiscate_v and_o give_v they_o to_o whosoever_o will_v enter_v upon_o they_o will_v they_o therein_o to_o do_v the_o work_n of_o catholic_a man_n this_o word_n be_v very_o dangerous_a but_o that_o the_o pope_n fond_a trifle_n be_v before_o already_o well_o know_v unto_o we_o when_o he_o make_v at_o mantua_n so_o large_a and_o so_o loud_a a_o discourse_n in_o the_o behalf_n of_o incestuous_a embracement_n and_o vice_n enemy_n to_o public_a honesty_n last_o pius_n say_v that_o the_o church_n be_v not_o assemble_v he_o answer_v it_o be_v he_o that_o hinder_v and_o distrubeth_n it_o by_o his_o faction_n in_o i_o be_v no_o let_v not_o any_o fault_n etc._n etc._n one_o theodore_n bishop_n of_o feltre_n answer_v he_o in_o the_o behalf_n of_o the_o pope_n heap_v together_o all_o the_o place_n and_o reason_n whereby_o the_o canonist_n be_v wont_v to_o defend_v that_o fullness_n of_o power_n which_o pope_n do_v arrogate_v to_o themselves_o and_o this_o again_o gregory_n de_fw-fr heimburg_n confute_v from_o point_n to_o point_n in_o a_o apology_n make_v express_o against_o the_o detraction_n and_o blasphemy_n of_o theodore_n in_o this_o particular_o he_o reproach_v he_o that_o pius_n after_o he_o have_v exhaust_v christendom_n by_o his_o jubilee_n will_v in_o the_o council_n of_o mantua_n wring_v out_o the_o very_a last_o drop_n by_o forge_v new_a exaction_n under_o colour_n of_o make_v war_n against_o the_o turk_n and_o that_o he_o and_o his_o cardinal_n laugh_v at_o it_o when_o he_o propound_v unto_o they_o what_o great_a provision_n be_v needful_a for_o such_o a_o war_n because_o he_o have_v another_o thing_n in_o his_o mind_n and_o hence_o be_v that_o wrath_n of_o pius_n which_o he_o now_o vomit_v forth_o against_o he_o wherefore_o say_v he_o your_o money_n under_o colour_n of_o a_o military_a expedition_n against_o the_o turk_n shall_v be_v convert_v into_o a_o wicked_a and_o damnable_a use_n in_o succour_n of_o ferdinand_n conceive_v by_o the_o damnable_a embracement_n of_o alphonsus_n sometime_o king_n of_o arragon_n against_o renatus_n lawful_a heir_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o sicily_n and_o that_o noble_a duke_n of_o calabria_n the_o ornament_n and_o inimitable_a pattern_n of_o christian_a nobility_n and_o of_o military_a glory_n and_o therefore_o say_v the_o pope_n that_o gregory_n de_fw-fr heimburg_n be_v bear_v of_o the_o devil_n because_o he_o be_v not_o of_o the_o damnable_a seed_n but_o lawful_o beget_v for_o the_o pope_n be_v a_o hater_n of_o such_o a_o favourer_n of_o bastard_n in_o who_o favour_n he_o make_v a_o very_a large_a oration_n almost_o three_o hour_n long_o and_o make_v all_o mantua_n ring_n with_o the_o praise_n of_o the_o bastard_n ferdinand_n but_o as_o touch_v the_o question_n of_o the_o pope_n primacy_n i_o entreat_v the_o reader_n to_o peruse_v the_o apology_n itself_o 1607._o gregor_n heimburg_n in_o tractat_fw-la de_fw-fr primatu_fw-la excuso_fw-la magdeburgi_n &_o in_o antilogia_fw-la basil_n 1555._o item_n francofurti_n apud_fw-la wolfang_n richesterum_fw-la a_o 1607._o in_o another_o treatise_n of_o his_o also_o against_o the_o primacy_n he_o call_v the_o roman_a synagogue_n babylon_n and_o the_o harlot_n and_o after_o he_o have_v prove_v that_o it_o have_v no_o ground_n in_o sacred_a scripture_n nor_o in_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o father_n yea_o that_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v of_o mere_a usurpation_n contrary_a to_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n and_o against_o the_o commodity_n of_o the_o church_n he_o pronounce_v that_o such_o tyranny_n be_v not_o to_o be_v endure_v and_o exhort_v every_o one_o as_o it_o be_v command_v in_o the_o apocalyps_n to_o depart_v from_o it_o which_o that_o it_o may_v be_v more_o easy_o be_v discern_v he_o frame_v a_o most_o exquisite_a antithesis_fw-la of_o christ_n and_o the_o pope_n whereby_o he_o manifest_o show_v he_o to_o be_v antichrist_n he_o accuse_v also_o the_o doctor_n who_o either_o for_o hope_n or_o fear_v not_o dare_v to_o contradict_v his_o error_n confirm_v he_o the_o more_o by_o their_o silence_n at_o last_o he_o burst_v forth_o into_o this_o have_v for_o these_o many_o year_n it_o be_v more_o free_a for_o a_o man_n to_o dispute_v and_o call_v into_o doubt_n the_o power_n of_o god_n than_o of_o the_o pope_n for_o man_n say_v he_o be_v drunken_a with_o the_o wine_n of_o the_o say_a harlot_n and_o inspire_v with_o the_o sweetness_n of_o this_o woman_n they_o flatter_o expound_v the_o scripture_n wrest_v it_o for_o confirmation_n of_o error_n and_o because_o that_o emperor_n and_o king_n either_o through_o ignorance_n for_o want_v of_o accustom_v themselves_o to_o study_n and_o science_n or_o by_o reason_n of_o too_o much_o worldly_a vanity_n that_o possess_v they_o have_v not_o be_v able_a to_o see_v it_o they_o have_v be_v bring_v to_o so_o great_a a_o servitude_n that_o they_o be_v compel_v to_o believe_v for_o a_o point_n of_o forth_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n that_o christ_n have_v give_v the_o pope_n such_o a_o fullness_n of_o power_n that_o he_o may_v dispose_v of_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v on_o the_o earth_n after_o the_o pleasure_n of_o his_o own_o will_n neither_o shall_v any_o dare_v to_o say_v unto_o he_o why_o do_v thou_o so_o see_v that_o the_o pope_n himself_o have_v power_n to_o command_v the_o angel_n in_o this_o our_o age_n there_o can_v hardly_o be_v say_v any_o thing_n more_o clear_o but_o the_o controversy_n of_o diether_o of_o mentz_n trouble_v all_o the_o empire_n he_o have_v be_v choose_v canonical_o by_o the_o canon_n yea_o his_o election_n confirm_v by_o pope_n pius_n himself_o but_o he_o be_v not_o sound_v very_o ready_a in_o buy_v his_o pall_n or_o in_o pay_v his_o annates_fw-la but_o the_o principal_a clause_n be_v that_o he_o oppose_v himself_o against_o the_o pope_n exaction_n of_o money_n under_o colour_n of_o the_o holy_a war_n whereupon_o be_v vex_v by_o pius_n he_o appeal_v to_o a_o council_n say_v he_o love_v better_o the_o wealth_n of_o the_o german_n than_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o faith_n further_n he_o refuse_v to_o swear_v to_o the_o pope_n that_o he_o shall_v never_o assemble_v the_o estate_n nor_o the_o elector_n of_o the_o empire_n without_o consult_v first_o his_o intention_n either_o for_o the_o election_n of_o a_o new_a emperor_n or_o for_o to_o obtain_v a_o council_n or_o for_o any_o other_o affair_n of_o importance_n he_o therefore_o revoke_v his_o confirmation_n and_o transfer_v his_o bishopric_n to_o adolfe_n of_o nassau_n his_o competitor_n and_o excommunicate_v diether_o and_o frederick_n the_o palatine_a his_o favourer_n hereupon_o the_o friend_n of_o both_o party_n take_v arm_n frederick_n surname_v the_o victorious_a and_o lewis_n duke_n of_o bavaria_n for_o diether_o albert_n marquesse_n of_o brandeburg_n charles_n marquesse_n of_o baden_n john_n bishop_n of_o metz_n his_o brother_n vlric_n earl_n of_o wirtemburg_n and_o lewis_n niger_n of_o bavaria_n for_o adolfe_n the_o battle_n be_v fight_v wherein_o diether_n part_v have_v the_o victory_n most_o of_o the_o
prince_n be_v take_v prisoner_n by_o the_o palatine_a whereupon_o they_o fall_v to_o this_o agreement_n 49._o krantzius_n in_o saxon._n l._n 12._o c._n 1._o naucler_n vol._n 2._o gener._n 49._o that_o adolph_n shall_v possess_v till_o his_o death_n the_o place_n which_o he_o have_v surprise_v and_o that_o diether_o shall_v peaceable_o enjoy_v all_o the_o rest_n and_o also_o shall_v succeed_v adolfe_n whensoever_o he_o shall_v decease_v which_o happen_v six_o year_n after_o and_o this_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o overthrow_v the_o pragmatical_a sanction_n which_o pius_n say_v will_v be_v so_o profitable_a to_o the_o church_n neither_o be_v france_n better_o content_v with_o the_o decree_n of_o pius_n the_o second_o than_o germany_n and_o so_o much_o the_o less_o for_o that_o pius_n to_o gratify_v ferdinand_n bastard_n of_o alphonsus_n have_v tread_v under_o foot_n the_o right_n of_o the_o frenchman_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o naples_n he_o therefore_o send_v a_o legate_n into_o france_n for_o to_o abolish_v the_o pragmatical_a sanction_n which_o be_v there_o observe_v by_o virtue_n of_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n and_o move_v the_o king_n by_o letter_n in_o these_o word_n if_o thou_o be_v the_o son_n of_o obedience_n wherefore_o do_v thou_o hold_v and_o defend_v the_o pragmatical_a sanction_n eugenius_n warn_v thou_o to_o leave_v it_o as_o not_o be_v according_o to_o god_n the_o same_o do_v nicholas_n and_o calixtus_n as_o the_o cause_n of_o great_a evil_a and_o discord_n in_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o thou_o will_v never_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o king_n be_v somewhat_o move_v with_o these_o word_n but_o the_o court_n of_o parliament_n of_o paris_n come_v to_o he_o and_o earnest_o declare_v unto_o he_o of_o how_o great_a importance_n it_o be_v for_o the_o christian_a commonweal_n the_o want_n whereof_o will_v most_o certain_o bring_v four_o principal_a inconvenience_n first_o a_o confusion_n of_o the_o whole_a order_n ecclesiastical_a second_o the_o depopulation_n of_o the_o subject_n of_o the_o kingdom_n three_o a_o empty_n the_o kingdom_n of_o money_n four_o the_o ruin_n and_o total_a desclation_n of_o church_n all_o which_o they_o at_o large_a lay_v open_a unto_o he_o from_o point_n to_o point_n this_o their_o admonition_n may_v be_v see_v at_o large_a recite_v by_o john_n cardinal_n of_o arles_n comprehend_v in_o 89_o article_n in_o the_o work_n of_o peter_n pithou_n which_o be_v worthy_a the_o reader_n peruse_v there_o among_o other_o thing_n they_o declare_v unto_o he_o out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o practice_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n canon_n of_o counsel_n decree_n of_o the_o father_n ordinance_n of_o pope_n themselves_o and_o by_o the_o law_n of_o christian_a emperor_n and_o king_n especial_o of_o we_o that_o the_o election_n of_o bishop_n abbot_n and_o other_o prelate_n of_o the_o church_n do_v no_o whit_n depend_v and_o never_o have_v depend_v of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n that_o such_o be_v never_o the_o intention_n of_o charlemaigne_n lewis_n the_o meek_a philip_n augustus_n s._n lewis_n charles_n the_o wise_a and_o other_o who_o have_v ever_o ordain_v and_o maintain_v canonical_a election_n so_o that_o whatsoever_o thing_n be_v do_v otherwise_o be_v by_o mere_a usurpation_n then_o they_o come_v to_o speak_v of_o the_o pillage_n and_o buy_v and_o sell_v of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n which_o in_o france_n alone_o do_v amount_v to_o many_o million_o of_o gold_n of_o which_o they_o set_v down_o example_n draw_v a_o roll_n of_o they_o and_o cast_v up_o the_o particular_n for_o what_o do_v they_o say_v that_o in_o one_o only_a diocese_n in_o one_o year_n the_o expectative_a grace_n be_v find_v to_o be_v in_o number_n six_o hundred_o etc._n etc._n whereupon_o the_o pope_n be_v so_o move_v epistolis_fw-la jacob._n cardin._n papiensis_fw-la in_o epistolis_fw-la that_o as_o james_n cardinal_n of_o pavia_n write_v to_o king_n lewis_n when_o he_o hear_v of_o a_o refusal_n he_o cry_v out_o guerra_fw-mi usque_fw-la ad_fw-la capillos_fw-la but_o know_v well_o that_o this_o king_n be_v diverse_o entangle_v with_o many_o affair_n and_o have_v find_v out_o his_o easy_a disposition_n &_o that_o he_o will_v do_v all_o thing_n of_o his_o own_o head_n he_o can_v wary_o observe_v he_o that_o thus_o have_v constantine_n the_o great_a the_o two_o theodosius_n charlemaigne_n and_o many_o other_o of_o his_o predecessor_n get_v themselves_o a_o immortal_a name_n and_o a_o never-fading_a glory_n to_o wit_n by_o abolish_n the_o pragmatical_a sanction_n and_o what_o can_v be_v far_o off_o from_o the_o truth_n and_o therefore_o what_o more_o unworthy_a but_o principal_o because_o he_o hear_v his_o humour_n be_v in_o many_o thing_n to_o go_v contrary_a to_o his_o father_n do_n and_o will_v be_v absolute_o obey_v in_o what_o he_o please_v he_o there_o take_v hold_v 1461._o aeneas_n silvius_n epist_n 387._o data_fw-la romae_fw-la 26._o octob_n 1461._o and_o tickle_v he_o in_o that_o we_o commend_v say_v he_o this_o among_o other_o thing_n that_o without_o the_o assembly_n and_o consultation_n of_o many_o thou_o have_v resolve_v to_o take_v away_o the_o pragmatical_a sure_o thou_o be_v wise_a and_o show_v thyself_o to_o be_v a_o great_a king_n which_o be_v not_o govern_v but_o do_v govern_v etc._n etc._n thou_o do_v that_o which_o be_v meet_v for_o thou_o know_v that_o the_o pragmatical_a sanction_n be_v without_o god_n thou_o have_v decree_v to_o banish_v it_o out_o of_o thy_o kingdom_n and_o will_v not_o enter_v into_o deliberation_n whether_o those_o thing_n ought_v to_o be_v do_v or_o no_o which_o thou_o know_v be_v to_o be_v do_v this_o be_v to_o be_v a_o king_n and_o a_o good_a king_n who_o good_a man_n love_n and_o evil_a do_v fear_n etc._n etc._n betimes_o make_v know_v thy_o wisdom_n as_o to_o we_o it_o be_v so_o to_o the_o whole_a world_n to_o the_o end_n that_o none_o may_v say_v he_o be_v a_o long_a time_n unwilling_a because_o long_o in_o deliberate_v and_o if_o the_o prelate_n and_o university_n require_v any_o thing_n of_o we_o let_v they_o have_v recourse_n to_o we_o and_o make_v thou_o their_o mediator_n know_v without_o doubt_n if_o the_o matter_n once_o have_v come_v to_o deliberation_n he_o shall_v sure_o have_v have_v again_o the_o repulse_n and_o he_o add_v neither_o do_v we_o doubt_v but_o that_o when_o thou_o be_v exile_v namely_o when_o he_o be_v out_o of_o his_o father_n favour_n as_o it_o be_v out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n thou_o will_v often_o say_v with_o thyself_o o_o if_o i_o one_o day_n sit_v on_o my_o father_n throne_n i_o will_v do_v many_o acceptable_a service_n to_o thou_o o_o god_n sure_o i_o will_v not_o suffer_v thy_o inheritance_n to_o be_v spoil_v by_o the_o fury_n of_o the_o turk_n etc._n etc._n but_o what_o do_v he_o conclude_v of_o this_o now_o show_v thy_o slefe_v grateful_a to_o his_o divine_a goodness_n see_v he_o have_v make_v thou_o his_o son_n king_n and_o have_v restore_v the_o kingdom_n with_o great_a glory_n and_o for_o so_o great_a benefit_n do_v this_o again_o for_o he_o take_v away_o the_o pragmatical_a sanction_n as_o thou_o have_v promise_v our_o ambassador_n to_o do_v and_o that_o do_v which_o be_v no_o hard_a thing_n to_o do_v address_v thyself_o whole_o to_o the_o succour_v of_o christian_a religion_n against_o the_o turk_n etc._n etc._n thus_o to_o abrogat_fw-la this_o law_n which_o respect_v only_o the_o canonical_a election_n of_o bishop_n and_o the_o restraint_n of_o the_o pillage_n of_o rome_n be_v a_o matter_n of_o great_a importance_n with_o he_o than_o the_o purpose_n or_o vow_n of_o make_v war_n against_o the_o turk_n so_o then_o lewis_n resolve_v to_o disannul_v it_o under_o colour_n that_o it_o have_v be_v publish_v in_o the_o time_n of_o schism_n although_o he_o conceal_v not_o to_o increase_v the_o benefit_n that_o it_o have_v be_v conclude_v in_o a_o great_a assembly_n of_o prelate_n and_o with_o great_a deliberation_n of_o time_n and_o be_v now_o harden_v and_o have_v take_v firm_a foot_n but_o to_o what_o purpose_n he_o so_o eagre_o pursue_v this_o business_n anon_o after_o appear_v whereof_o we_o have_v a_o show_n and_o example_n in_o the_o letter_n of_o james_n cardinal_n of_o pavia_n to_o francis_n spinola_n william_n cardinal_n of_o hostia_fw-la say_v he_o tell_v we_o a_o story_n of_o a_o abbey_n in_o france_n famous_a for_o wealth_n and_o religion_n of_o which_o there_o be_v a_o abbot_n old_a and_o decrepit_a who_o see_v himself_o unprofitable_a in_o his_o charge_n for_o conscience_n sake_n will_v leave_v the_o administration_n of_o the_o same_o i_o know_v not_o what_o bishop_n who_o church_n be_v far_o thence_o request_v that_o the_o abbay_n shall_v be_v give_v he_o in_o commenda_fw-la the_o abbay_n as_o we_o have_v say_v be_v of_o great_a fame_n in_o france_n have_v no_o ill_a in_o
it_o for_o which_o it_o have_v need_v to_o be_v commend_v it_o be_v apparent_a that_o he_o require_v it_o not_o for_o desire_v of_o good_a work_n but_o for_o covetousness_n in_o come_v therefore_o to_o speak_v their_o opinion_n the_o cardinal_n de_fw-fr porto_n who_o be_v next_o to_o the_o cardinal_n of_o hostia_fw-la i_o fear_v holy_a father_n say_v he_o that_o very_o short_o we_o shall_v hear_v that_o all_o the_o abbaye_v in_o france_n will_v be_v in_o commenda_fw-la so_o that_o there_o will_v not_o any_o remain_v that_o have_v a_o abbot_n for_o whatsoever_o we_o ordain_v there_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o commenda_n that_o kingdom_n will_v one_o day_n when_o we_o least_o look_v for_o it_o rise_v against_o we_o and_o not_o be_v able_a to_o endure_v our_o unprofitable_a ministry_n will_v attempt_v some_o great_a matter_n against_o thy_o seat_n the_o pope_n approve_v his_o judgement_n and_o add_v that_o from_o the_o popedom_n of_o calixtus_n till_o that_o day_n he_o think_v there_o be_v more_o than_o five_o hundred_o monastery_n give_v in_o commenda_fw-la that_o be_v in_o less_o than_o nine_o year_n and_o yet_o in_o his_o epitaph_n among_o his_o triumph_n be_v observe_v this_o exploit_n 2_o platina_n in_o pio_n 2_o pragmaticam_fw-la in_o gallia_n abrogavit_fw-la he_o abolish_v the_o pragmatical_a sanction_n wherefore_o pius_n be_v dead_a who_o in_o four_o year_n space_n have_v teach_v france_n sufficient_o what_o great_a damage_n will_v ensue_v thereupon_o complaint_n for_o the_o pragmatical_a sanction_n be_v redouble_v whereupon_o the_o king_n command_v his_o court_n of_o parliament_n to_o set_v down_o unto_o he_o in_o write_v the_o cause_n of_o this_o complaint_n which_o it_o do_v and_o deliver_v they_o unto_o he_o again_o in_o eighty_o six_o article_n under_o this_o title_n for_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o french_a church_n against_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n the_o principal_a article_n be_v the_o 14_o 15_o 16_o 17_o 18_o in_o these_o word_n whereas_o many_o thing_n have_v be_v decree_v in_o the_o holy_a counsel_n of_o constance_n and_o basill_n consonant_n or_o agreeable_a to_o the_o ancient_a canon_n and_o to_o the_o royal_a ordinance_n abovesayd_a king_n charles_n the_o seven_o the_o king_n who_o then_o be_v dolphin_n be_v present_a together_o with_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o blood_n royal_a the_o prelate_n and_o the_o college_n ecclesiastical_a and_o scholastical_a and_o in_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o ambassador_n both_o of_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a universal_a council_n at_o length_n he_o receive_v those_o decree_n and_o confirm_v they_o by_o his_o edict_n which_o common_o we_o call_v pragmatical_a and_o these_o thing_n be_v do_v a_o bourge_n in_o the_o year_n 1438._o this_o sanction_n therefore_o be_v ever_o hold_v to_o be_v of_o so_o much_o the_o more_o authority_n because_o it_o have_v the_o original_n from_o the_o holy_a counsel_n in_o which_o the_o pope_n or_o his_o legate_n sit_v precedent_n for_o there_o have_v be_v never_o any_o law_n make_v in_o france_n before_o that_o time_n which_o have_v authority_n and_o force_n from_o the_o universal_a church_n 16._o from_o that_o time_n forth_o the_o kingdom_n better_o prosper_v and_o have_v great_a authority_n and_o glory_n than_o ever_o before_o and_o more_o plenty_n and_o abundance_n of_o all_o thing_n guienne_n and_o normandy_n can_v witness_v what_o terror_n it_o be_v to_o the_o enemy_n out_o of_o which_o place_n they_o be_v expulse_v and_o cast_v out_o 17._o the_o observation_n of_o this_o sanction_n dure_v the_o space_n of_o twenty_o and_o three_o year_n and_o now_o since_o have_v cease_v these_o four_o year_n when_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n man_n of_o excellent_a probitie_n and_o gravity_n have_v govern_v and_o rule_v the_o church_n without_o molestation_n and_o disturbance_n of_o which_o some_o for_o the_o singular_a sanctity_n of_o their_o life_n after_o their_o decease_n be_v have_v in_o reputation_n for_o miracle_n as_o michael_n bishop_n of_o anger_n be_v the_o archbishop_n of_o arles_n and_o many_o other_o 18._o contrariwise_o of_o the_o abrogation_n of_o these_o canon_n decree_n and_o constitution_n innumerable_a inconvenience_n will_v arise_v which_o seem_v may_v be_v refer_v to_o four_o kind_n those_o same_o which_o be_v observe_v in_o the_o admonition_n afore_o mention_v but_o the_o king_n be_v trouble_v either_o with_o continual_a war_n or_o with_o suspicion_n from_o time_n to_o time_n put_v off_o the_o business_n to_o a_o general_a assembly_n yet_o say_v monstrelet_n in_o the_o year_n 1467_o paul_n the_o second_o be_v pope_n chronologiques_n monstrelet_n es_a chronologiques_n the_o king_n grant_v his_o letter_n to_o his_o legate_n be_v come_v from_o rome_n in_o the_o month_n of_o september_n for_o the_o abrogation_n of_o the_o pragmatical_a sanction_n which_o be_v exhibit_v and_o publish_v in_o the_o chastellet_n of_o paris_n without_o any_o contradiction_n or_o disturbance_n but_o he_o add_v on_o the_o first_o day_n of_o october_n follow_v m._n john_n balue_n who_o after_o be_v cardinal_n come_v to_o the_o hall_n of_o the_o palace_n royal_a at_o paris_n to_o procure_v the_o publication_n of_o the_o same_o in_o court_n where_o he_o find_v m._n john_n the_o saint_n romain_n the_o king_n attorney_n general_a who_o very_o stout_o oppose_v himself_o against_o the_o execution_n of_o the_o say_a letter_n whereat_o balue_n be_v very_o much_o displease_v balue_n threaten_v he_o that_o the_o king_n will_v not_o be_v well_o content_a with_o it_o and_o will_v displace_v he_o from_o his_o office_n but_o he_o despise_v his_o threat_n answer_v that_o the_o king_n may_v take_v away_o his_o office_n from_o he_o yet_o nevertheless_o he_o be_v resolve_v rather_o to_o lose_v it_o than_o he_o will_v either_o do_v or_o suffer_v to_o be_v do_v any_o thing_n against_o his_o conscience_n or_o to_o the_o detriment_n and_o dishonour_n of_o the_o king_n and_o kingdom_n and_o to_o balue_n he_o say_v that_o he_o may_v blush_v for_o shame_n for_o have_v undertake_v the_o dispatch_n of_o such_o a_o business_n and_o after_o that_o the_o rector_n of_o the_o university_n of_o paris_n and_o the_o deputy_n of_o the_o same_o come_v to_o the_o legate_n himself_o and_o appeal_v from_o he_o and_o from_o the_o effect_n of_o his_o say_a letter_n to_o the_o council_n and_o in_o whatsoever_o place_n it_o shall_v be_v make_v they_o also_o go_v to_o the_o chastelet_n where_o they_o request_v that_o their_o opposition_n may_v be_v enregister_v there_o these_o be_v the_o word_n of_o monstrelet_n and_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v omit_v that_o this_o john_n balua_n be_v bishop_n of_o eureux_fw-fr be_v make_v a_o cardinal_n and_o a_o little_a after_o convict_v of_o treason_n against_o the_o king_n and_o kingdom_n the_o year_n follow_v one_o m._n john_n loire_n by_o virtue_n of_o certain_a bull_n from_o the_o pope_n interdict_v the_o city_n and_o diocese_n of_o nivers_n use_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o official_a of_o besanson_n but_o by_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o court_n it_o be_v decree_v the_o twelve_o of_o december_n at_o the_o suit_n of_o the_o king_n attorney_n general_a and_o of_o m._n peter_n chartres_n doctor_n and_o professor_n of_o divinity_n in_o the_o university_n of_o paris_n that_o notwithstanding_o the_o interdict_v the_o divine_a service_n shall_v be_v continue_v and_o the_o churchman_n compel_v unto_o it_o be_v by_o the_o king_n power_n set_v into_o their_o temporalty_n that_o also_o the_o say_a loire_n and_o official_a shall_v be_v lay_v hold_v on_o and_o be_v hold_v to_o procure_v at_o their_o own_o charge_n the_o abrogation_n of_o the_o bull_n neither_o want_v there_o in_o all_o place_n some_o who_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o tyranny_n pour_v forth_o their_o sigh_n even_o before_o the_o pope_n dominicus_n bishop_n of_o brescia_n in_o italy_n write_v a_o treatise_n which_o he_o direct_v to_o pius_n the_o second_o and_o entitle_v it_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n true_o mild_a enough_o according_a to_o the_o time_n and_o yet_o sometime_o not_o without_o a_o sting_n if_o say_v he_o we_o consider_v the_o former_a pope_n and_o their_o act_n the_o cardinal_n the_o bishop_n protonotary_n and_o other_o prelate_n penitentiaries_n subdeane_n auditor_n clerk_n of_o the_o chamber_n acolythes_n or_o under_o minister_n chamberlain_n advocate_n proctor_n and_o other_o appoint_v in_o diverse_a degree_n and_o office_n we_o shall_v sure_o weep_v with_o jeremie_n 4._o lament_n 4._o oh_o how_o be_v the_o gold_n become_v so_o dim_a the_o most_o fine_a gold_n be_v change_v the_o stone_n of_o the_o sanctuary_n that_o be_v the_o prelate_n be_v scatter_v in_o the_o corner_n of_o every_o street_n that_o be_v of_o the_o broad_a way_n which_o lead_v to_o destruction_n in_o the_o corner_n whereof_o they_o be_v as_o gregory_n expound_v it_o her_o nazarite_n be_v pure_a than_o snow_n and_o white_a
common_a consent_n of_o the_o state_n george_n prodebraccius_n a_o great_a captain_n and_o a_o professor_n of_o their_o religion_n who_o restore_v the_o condition_n and_o slide_a state_n of_o these_o church_n and_o as_o he_o constant_o persevere_v therein_o notwithstanding_o the_o threat_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o pope_n he_o be_v excommunicate_v by_o paul_n the_o second_o and_o his_o estate_n expose_v to_o the_o first_o invader_n thereof_o mathias_n king_n of_o hungary_n take_v upon_o he_o the_o conquest_n of_o this_o province_n by_o the_o instigation_n of_o rodolfe_n the_o pope_n legate_n with_o the_o approbation_n of_o the_o emperor_n frederick_n the_o three_o and_o by_o the_o favour_n of_o many_o of_o the_o great_a man_n of_o the_o kingdom_n but_o after_o many_o battle_n fight_v with_o variable_a success_n he_o can_v not_o bring_v his_o purpose_n to_o pass_v and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n this_o valiant_a prince_n be_v thereby_o hinder_v from_o the_o necessary_a war_n which_o he_o have_v prosperous_o make_v against_o the_o turk_n be_v accuse_v of_o ingratitude_n for_o that_o he_o have_v set_v upon_o george_n to_o who_o he_o be_v very_o notable_o oblige_v for_o have_v generous_o set_v he_o free_v out_o of_o prison_n without_o any_o ransom_n and_o also_o give_v he_o his_o daughter_n in_o marriage_n when_o he_o be_v choose_v king_n of_o hungary_n in_o hatred_n of_o which_o fact_n even_o after_o the_o death_n of_o george_n when_o mathias_n be_v declare_v king_n by_o the_o pope_n the_o state_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o bohemia_n will_v never_o give_v their_o consent_n unto_o it_o but_o prefer_v before_o he_o vladislaus_n son_n of_o casimir_n king_n of_o polonia_n who_o although_o he_o be_v oftentimes_o instigate_v by_o the_o pope_n against_o george_n yet_o will_v never_o be_v persuade_v to_o take_v arm_n against_o he_o judge_v it_o a_o thing_n unworthy_a under_o pretence_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n to_o violat_a the_o faith_n give_v to_o each_o other_o and_o this_o bring_v we_o to_o the_o year_n 1470._o 64._o progression_n the_o atheism_n of_o sixtus_n the_o four_o and_o his_o abominable_a and_o wicked_a life_n who_o innocent_a the_o eight_o succeed_v both_o in_o the_o popedom_n and_o in_o all_o impiety_n of_o alexander_n the_o sixth_o by_o what_o devilish_a mean_n he_o attain_v the_o popedom_n and_o of_o his_o abominable_a incestuous_a life_n and_o miserable_a death_n charles_n the_o french_a king_n pass_v into_o italy_n with_o a_o mighty_a army_n and_o of_o his_o valiant_a proceed_n there_o now_o it_o be_v think_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v come_v to_o that_o height_n of_o impiety_n and_o tyranny_n that_o they_o can_v hardly_o ascend_v to_o a_o high_a step_n and_o yet_o by_o that_o which_o follow_v we_o shall_v easy_o perceive_v that_o they_o find_v mean_n to_o add_v both_o a_o ridge_n and_o pinnacle_n to_o that_o build_n it_o be_v beyond_o all_o belief_n especial_o we_o report_v it_o have_v we_o not_o their_o own_o author_n to_o witness_v it_o against_o they_o in_o the_o year_n 1471_o francis_n de_fw-fr rovere_z bear_v in_o savoy_n general_n of_o the_o franciscan_n get_v the_o popedom_n who_o be_v call_v sixtus_n the_o four_o of_o this_o man_n onuphrius_n give_v this_o testimony_n that_o for_o his_o great_a learning_n as_o long_o as_o he_o be_v cardinal_n all_o question_n that_o concern_v matter_n of_o faith_n be_v commit_v to_o he_o where_o let_v the_o reader_n note_v from_o that_o which_o follow_v upon_o who_o faith_n the_o catholic_a faith_n depend_v at_o the_o first_o onset_n he_o make_v show_v of_o call_v a_o council_n at_o lateran_n under_o a_o twofold_a pretence_n the_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o holy_a war_n the_o cause_n be_v both_o very_a plausible_a both_o for_o the_o allay_n of_o the_o grievous_a groan_n of_o good_a man_n and_o the_o free_v they_o of_o their_o fear_n but_o the_o place_n be_v not_o think_v so_o fit_v be_v that_o out_o of_o which_o there_o never_o come_v any_o thing_n profitable_a to_o the_o church_n the_o emperor_n frederick_n desire_v that_o it_o may_v be_v in_o the_o border_n of_o germany_n and_o at_o the_o instant_a request_n of_o the_o archbishop_n of_o carnie_n who_o give_v his_o best_a assistance_n to_o forward_a the_o reformation_n the_o emperor_n and_o prince_n call_v a_o assembly_n of_o many_o bishop_n at_o basil_n but_o sixtus_n hear_v thereof_o helvetia_n stumfius_fw-la in_o histor_n helvetia_n send_v angelus_n the_o bishop_n of_o suesse_n to_o the_o senate_n of_o the_o city_n threaten_v to_o interdict_v they_o if_o they_o send_v not_o the_o archbishop_n to_o rome_n bind_v hand_n and_o foot_n &_o account_v not_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o bishop_n that_o be_v with_o he_o for_o excommunicate_a person_n but_o the_o senate_n of_o basil_n not_o endure_v that_o so_o great_a a_o wrong_n shall_v be_v offer_v unto_o they_o in_o a_o free_a city_n the_o legate_n excommunicate_v they_o depart_v in_o choler_n frederic_n nevertheless_o persist_v in_o his_o purpose_n but_o yet_o the_o better_a to_o pacify_v sixtus_n he_o desire_v that_o the_o council_n may_v be_v call_v at_o vtina_n in_o friuli_n a_o country_n in_o italy_n but_o that_o please_v he_o not_o neither_o this_o difficulty_n so_o soon_o as_o he_o see_v he_o have_v overcome_v &_o withal_o establish_v his_o seat_n with_o the_o mutual_a legation_n of_o prince_n he_o bend_v all_o his_o endeavour_n to_o the_o increase_n of_o the_o honour_n and_o greatness_n of_o his_o friend_n and_o kindred_n onuphr_n volateran_n &_o onuphr_n volateran_n and_o onuphrius_n say_v in_o express_a term_n that_o he_o be_v account_v by_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o very_a love_a and_o indulgent_a towards_o his_o kindred_n for_o who_o sake_n he_o have_v do_v and_o grant_v many_o thing_n praeter_fw-la fas_fw-la jusque_fw-la against_o all_o law_n humane_a and_o divine_a he_o create_v therefore_o two_o cardinal_n and_o that_o not_o without_o a_o mystery_n peter_n riere_n who_o he_o have_v bring_v up_o from_o a_o child_n with_o his_o brother_n jeronimo_n and_o julian_n his_o brother_n son_n who_o be_v afterward_o julius_n the_o second_o peter_n be_v in_o a_o short_a time_n strange_o enrich_v become_v so_o sumptuous_a that_o he_o seem_v to_o be_v bear_v to_o spend_v money_n for_o he_o consume_v in_o those_o two_o year_n wherein_o he_o live_v a_o cardinal_n two_o hundred_o thousand_o crown_n in_o his_o ordinary_a household_n expense_n leave_v forty_o thousand_o crown_n in_o debt_n and_o other_o infinite_a riches_n and_o movable_a good_n he_o die_v weaken_v and_o wear_v out_o with_o pleasure_n but_o nevertheless_o a_o legate_n a_o mad_a choice_n it_o be_v in_o italy_n it_o be_v he_o who_o prodigious_a prodigality_n baptista_n fulgosius_n describe_v to_o be_v such_o 4._o baptista_n fulg._n dict_z &_o factor_n memorab_n l._n 9_o baptista_n mantuanus_fw-la in_o alphonso_n l._n 4._o that_o he_o usual_o give_v to_o tiresia_n his_o harlot_n pantofle_n wrought_v all_o over_o with_o pearl_n of_o who_o likewise_o baptista_n mantua_n write_v these_o verse_n wherein_o jupiter_n thus_o salute_v he_o in_o hell_n at_o tu_fw-la implume_v caput_fw-la cvi_fw-la tanta_fw-la licentia_fw-la quondam_a foemineos_fw-la fuit_fw-la in_o coitus_fw-la tua_fw-la furta_fw-la putabas_fw-la hic_fw-la quoque_fw-la praetextu_fw-la mitrae_fw-la impunita_fw-la relinquit_fw-la sic_fw-la meruit_fw-la tua_fw-la foeda_fw-la venus_n etc._n etc._n but_o thou_o o_o bauld-pate_n who_o once_o may_v free_o glut_v thy_o desire_n with_o woman_n company_n think_v thou_o thy_o mitre_n can_v here_o thy_o theft_n defend_v such_o have_v the_o desert_n of_o thy_o leachery_n be_v etc._n etc._n to_o the_o reproach_n and_o ignominy_n both_o of_o pope_n sixtus_n and_o himself_o of_o julian_n we_o shall_v speak_v hereafter_o in_o his_o place_n have_v provide_v for_o these_o two_o that_o be_v near_a unto_o he_o both_o in_o blood_n and_o affection_n he_o bend_v his_o endeavour_n to_o the_o promotion_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o kindred_n he_o make_v therefore_o his_o brother_n jeronimo_n bring_v up_o with_o he_o the_o prince_n of_o forlie_n and_o imola_n whether_o by_o right_n or_o wrong_n he_o regard_v not_o who_o he_o marry_v to_o catherina_n the_o bastard_n daughter_n of_o the_o duke_n of_o milan_n have_v first_o bestow_v a_o hat_n upon_o ascanius_n the_o duke_n son_n to_o get_v his_o father_n consent_n present_o after_o he_o raise_v leonard_n his_o brother_n son_n who_o he_o marry_v to_o a_o bastard_n of_o king_n ferdinand_n and_o make_v he_o governor_n of_o rome_n he_o make_v john_n also_o the_o son_n of_o cardinal_n julian_n prince_n of_o soria_n and_o senogallia_n who_o marry_v joan_n the_o daughter_n of_o frederick_n of_o montefeltro_n duke_n of_o urbin_n from_o who_o come_v franciscus_n maria_n who_o his_o uncle_n die_v without_o heir_n male_a obtain_v the_o dukedom_n and_o in_o this_o manner_n do_v he_o exalt_v diverse_a other_o he_o be_v so_o liberal_a say_v
in_o alexand_n 6._o volaterran_n in_o anthropologia_n guicciard_n lib._n 1._o who_o nevertheless_o give_v less_o credit_n to_o these_o thing_n but_o innocent_n take_v more_o care_n to_o send_v out_o his_o bull_n against_o those_o that_o pay_v not_o their_o yearly_a pension_n at_o their_o day_n appoint_v who_o he_o punish_v with_o excommunication_n and_o deprivation_n of_o those_o benefice_n they_o possess_v in_o such_o and_o the_o like_a expedition_n the_o zeal_n of_o the_o church_n then_o appear_v now_o to_o these_o abomination_n what_o can_v be_v add_v to_o make_v up_o the_o heap_n in_o these_o time_n and_o yet_o rodericus_fw-la borgia_n call_v alexander_n the_o sixth_o stay_v not_o here_o for_o as_o some_o report_n that_o he_o come_v to_o the_o popedom_n by_o a_o compact_n with_o the_o devil_n so_o his_o action_n bewray_v the_o devil_n condition_n doubtless_o in_o this_o all_o author_n agree_v that_o there_o be_v never_o any_o that_o ascend_v to_o that_o dignity_n by_o worse_a mean_n volateranus_fw-la and_o onuphrius_n say_v that_o he_o obtain_v so_o high_a a_o dignity_n by_o the_o endeavour_n of_o some_o cardinal_n corrupt_v with_o ambition_n and_o avarice_n who_o afterward_o have_v experience_n of_o his_o ingratitude_n and_o receive_v condign_a punishment_n for_o their_o wicked_a assistance_n and_o their_o voice_n they_o then_o make_v sale_n of_o of_o these_o the_o principal_n be_v ascanius_n sfortia_n who_o sell_v himself_o at_o a_o high_a price_n that_o he_o that_o of_o the_o whole_a order_n be_v the_o most_o wicked_a may_v in_o stead_n of_o the_o best_a be_v choose_v pope_n and_o there_o they_o relate_v how_o he_o overthrow_v they_o all_o some_o by_o exile_n some_o by_o imprisonment_n some_o by_o violent_a death_n some_o he_o strangle_v some_o he_o poison_v but_o guicciardin_n more_o exquisite_o he_o be_v choose_v pope_n say_v he_o by_o mean_n of_o the_o discord_n that_o be_v betwixt_o the_o cardinal_n ascanius_n sfortia_n and_o julian_n of_o s._n peter_n ad_fw-la vincula_fw-la but_o add_v withal_o thereunto_o that_o by_o a_o new_a example_n in_o the_o sight_n and_o knowledge_n of_o all_o man_n he_o buy_v the_o popedom_n partly_o with_o money_n partly_o with_o the_o promise_n of_o his_o great_a office_n and_o benefice_n by_o which_o mean_n he_o get_v the_o cardinal_n voice_n who_o contemn_v the_o commandment_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o sell_v the_o power_n unto_o he_o to_o make_v traffic_n of_o the_o sacred_a treasure_n by_o a_o celestial_a authority_n and_o in_o the_o most_o high_a and_o principal_a part_n of_o the_o temple_n that_o be_v to_o say_v according_a to_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n to_o this_o abominable_a negotiation_n many_o among_o they_o be_v draw_v by_o cardinal_n ascanius_n not_o only_o by_o persuasion_n but_o example_n who_o be_v corrupt_v by_o a_o infinite_a desire_n of_o riches_n bargain_v with_o the_o pope_n that_o for_o a_o reward_n of_o this_o his_o great_a wickedness_n he_o may_v have_v the_o vice-chauncellorship_a which_o be_v the_o principal_a office_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n enrich_v with_o most_o precious_a furniture_n but_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o avoid_v neither_o for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v the_o judgement_n of_o god_n nor_o for_o the_o time_n present_a the_o infamy_n and_o just_a hatred_n of_o man_n fill_v by_o reason_n of_o this_o election_n with_o astonishment_n and_o horror_n because_o it_o be_v make_v by_o dishonest_a mean_n and_o the_o nature_n and_o condition_n of_o the_o man_n know_v unto_o all_o and_o among_o other_o to_o the_o king_n of_o naples_n who_o though_o in_o public_a he_o dissemble_v his_o grief_n yet_o he_o open_v it_o to_o the_o queen_n his_o wife_n and_o that_o with_o tear_n from_o which_o he_o be_v wont_v to_o refrain_v even_o at_o the_o death_n of_o his_o child_n because_o they_o have_v choose_v a_o pope_n who_o will_v prove_v dangerous_a not_o only_o to_o italy_n but_o all_o christendom_n a_o divination_n not_o unworthy_a the_o wisdom_n of_o ferdinand_n for_o there_o be_v in_o alexander_n a_o quick_a and_o subtle_a wit_n a_o deep_a reach_n of_o judgement_n a_o marvellous_a force_n to_o persuade_v and_o in_o all_o affair_n whatsoever_o a_o incredible_a care_n and_o dexterity_n but_o his_o many_o vice_n do_v far_o exceed_v these_o his_o virtue_n his_o manner_n be_v very_o dishonest_a there_o be_v in_o he_o no_o sincerity_n no_o shame_n no_o truth_n no_o faith_n no_o religion_n but_o rather_o unsatiable_a avarice_n ambition_n beyond_o measure_n more_o than_o brutish_a cruelty_n and_o a_o insatiable_a desire_n to_o raise_v his_o son_n which_o be_v many_o in_o number_n whether_o by_o right_n or_o by_o wrong_n to_o the_o high_a dignity_n among_o which_o one_o of_o they_o in_o all_o manner_n of_o wickedness_n be_v equal_a with_o the_o father_n and_o here_o let_v the_o reader_n again_o compare_v these_o manner_n with_o those_o gift_n that_o be_v necessary_a for_o a_o bishop_n remember_v by_o paul_n 1_o timoth._n 3_o the_o only_a end_n therefore_o of_o all_o his_o endeavour_n be_v to_o increase_v the_o honour_n and_o greatness_n of_o his_o son_n who_o he_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v his_o to_o the_o whole_a world_n for_o he_o will_v not_o have_v they_o account_v for_o nephew_n as_o other_o be_v wont_v to_o do_v the_o better_a to_o cover_v their_o shame_n in_o the_o first_o consistory_n he_o create_v john_n borgia_n his_o sister_n son_n cardinal_n but_o he_o be_v upon_o the_o sudden_a strike_v with_o a_o strange_a fear_n charles_n the_o eight_o king_n of_o france_n attempt_v the_o possession_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o naples_n come_v with_o a_o great_a power_n into_o italy_n be_v invite_v by_o lodovicus_n maurus_n duke_n of_o milan_n and_o other_o prince_n of_o italy_n against_o who_o alexander_n make_v a_o league_n with_o alphonsus_n of_o arragon_n heir_n to_o his_o father_n ferdinand_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o naples_n the_o principal_a condition_n be_v these_o that_o alexander_n shall_v invest_v alphonsus_n into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o naples_n at_o the_o same_o rate_n that_o he_o do_v his_o father_n and_o shall_v send_v his_o apostolical_a legate_n to_o put_v the_o crown_n upon_o his_o head_n that_o he_o shall_v create_v lodowicke_n the_o son_n of_o henry_n who_o be_v alphonsus_n his_o bastard_n brother_n cardinal_n again_o that_o alphonsus_n on_o the_o other_o side_n shall_v pay_v to_o the_o pope_n thirty_o thousand_o ducat_n that_o he_o shall_v give_v to_o the_o duke_n of_o candia_n the_o elder_a son_n of_o alexander_n in_o the_o kingdom_n twelve_o thousand_o ducat_n of_o yearly_a revenue_n and_o the_o first_o of_o the_o seven_o principal_a office_n that_o shall_v be_v void_a that_o he_o shall_v maintain_v at_o his_o charge_n three_o hundred_o man_n at_o arm_n to_o be_v always_o ready_a when_o need_n shall_v be_v to_o serve_v he_o that_o upon_o caesar_n borgia_n his_o other_o son_n by_o he_o make_v cardinal_n he_o shall_v bestow_v benefice_n to_o a_o certain_a yearly_a value_n here_o the_o author_n note_v that_o he_o make_v he_o cardinal_n after_o that_o he_o have_v prove_v by_o false_a witness_n that_o he_o be_v the_o lawful_a son_n of_o another_o because_o otherwise_o he_o can_v not_o have_v be_v capable_a of_o that_o dignity_n what_o impudency_n be_v this_o have_v before_o common_o call_v they_o and_o public_o show_v they_o to_o be_v his_o son_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n charles_n prepare_v a_o great_a army_n for_o this_o voyage_n notwithstanding_o that_o alexander_n do_v sometime_o dehort_v he_o from_o it_o with_o his_o brief_n sometime_o threaten_v he_o with_o his_o ecclesiastical_a censure_n 2._o paulus_n jovius_fw-la l._n 2._o but_o yet_o find_v himself_o in_o these_o strait_n it_o be_v think_v expedient_a for_o he_o and_o his_o confederate_a alphonsus_n to_o fly_v unto_o bajazet_n the_o prince_n of_o the_o turk_n and_o by_o ambassador_n send_v to_o that_o purpose_n to_o lay_v open_a unto_o he_o their_o imminent_a danger_n it_o fall_v out_o happy_o with_o they_o at_o that_o time_n that_o gemes_n the_o brother_n of_o bajazet_n be_v detain_v prisoner_n at_o rome_n a_o man_n famous_a both_o for_o his_o valour_n and_o wisdom_n who_o be_v overcome_v by_o his_o brother_n in_o the_o plain_n of_o bythinia_n retire_v himself_o to_o rhodes_n where_o be_v take_v by_o aubussonius_n the_o great_a master_n of_o the_o order_n for_o a_o sum_n of_o money_n be_v deliver_v to_o innocent_a the_o eight_o whereupon_o there_o be_v that_o friendship_n betwixt_o innocent_a and_o bajazet_n that_o bajazet_n pay_v unto_o he_o a_o yearly_a pension_n of_o forty_o thousand_o ducat_n which_o alexander_n his_o successor_n do_v afterward_o receive_v 19_o phil._n come_v in_o histor_n carol._n 8._o c._n 19_o philip_n de_fw-fr comines_n say_v sixty_o thousand_o to_o the_o end_n that_o a_o strong_a guard_n may_v be_v
set_v over_o gemes_n lest_o if_o he_o shall_v escape_v he_o shall_v trouble_v his_o empire_n upon_o this_o occasion_n alexander_n and_o alphonsus_n give_v bajazet_n to_o understand_v that_o it_o be_v the_o purpose_n of_o the_o king_n of_o france_n have_v settle_v his_o affair_n in_o naples_n to_o pass_v over_o into_o greece_n which_o be_v the_o more_o easy_o believe_v because_o he_o be_v not_o ignorant_a how_o many_o trouble_v the_o french_a have_v raise_v and_o how_o many_o slaughter_n they_o have_v make_v in_o asia_n the_o war_n of_o charles_n grow_v hot_a they_o send_v legate_n again_o unto_o he_o alphonsus_n make_v choice_n of_o camillus_n pendon_n alexander_n of_o gregorio_n bucciardo_n of_o genoa_n be_v both_o skilful_a in_o the_o turkish_a language_n bucciardo_n be_v employ_v before_o in_o the_o like_a service_n by_o pope_n innocent_n these_o promise_v to_o overthrow_v the_o force_n of_o charles_n so_o he_o will_v supply_v they_o with_o some_o great_a sum_n of_o money_n whereby_o he_o shall_v redeem_v the_o state_n of_o greece_n from_o destruction_n and_o entertain_v war_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o another_o and_o shall_v have_v for_o a_o bulwark_n of_o his_o empire_n the_o city_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o kingdom_n of_o naples_n these_o ambassador_n be_v honourable_o receive_v by_o bajazet_n and_o so_o much_o the_o rather_o because_o he_o have_v receive_v the_o same_o news_n from_o other_o part_n he_o therefore_o give_v thanks_n to_o the_o pope_n speak_v to_o gregory_n that_o he_o that_o have_v the_o high_a place_n in_o christendom_n will_v be_v please_v so_o friendly_a &_o love_o to_o give_v he_o in_o time_n admonition_n notwithstanding_o he_o be_v of_o another_o belief_n touch_v god_n and_o of_o different_a manner_n touch_v man_n he_o advise_v he_o to_o return_v into_o italy_n his_o ambassador_n dantius_n accompany_v he_o by_o who_o he_o send_v money_n and_o commit_v other_o matter_n of_o secrecy_n unto_o he_o to_o that_o purpose_n among_o other_o matter_n give_v unto_o he_o in_o charge_n say_v jovius_fw-la there_o be_v a_o letter_n write_v in_o greek_a wherein_o bajazet_n with_o great_a art_n persuade_v the_o pope_n that_o he_o shall_v provide_v that_o by_o some_o mean_n or_o other_o his_o brother_n may_v be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o way_n by_o poison_n which_o if_o he_o will_v perform_v he_o promise_v he_o upon_o his_o faith_n two_o hundred_o thousand_o ducat_n and_o free_o to_o bestow_v upon_o he_o the_o unfeamed_a coat_n of_o christ_n as_o some_o few_o year_n before_o he_o have_v send_v the_o point_n of_o that_o spear_n wherewith_o longinus_n pierce_v the_o side_n of_o christ_n from_o hence_o let_v the_o reader_n judge_v with_o how_o inward_a a_o commerce_n of_o wickedness_n these_o two_o be_v join_v since_o he_o dare_v give_v that_o counsel_n to_o the_o pope_n which_o the_o most_o wicked_a man_n of_o the_o world_n practise_v in_o all_o manner_n of_o villainy_n dare_v not_o have_v do_v one_o to_o another_o it_o fall_v out_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n that_o the_o ship_n wherein_o they_o pass_v the_o sea_n be_v take_v near_o ancona_n by_o john_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr rovere_z brother_z to_z cardinal_n julian_n a_o enemy_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o a_o friend_n to_o the_o frenchman_n who_o seize_v upon_o all_o the_o money_n as_o due_a unto_o he_o from_o the_o pope_n and_o so_o dantius_n be_v enforce_v to_o make_v a_o journey_n by_o land_n to_o ancona_n to_o save_v himself_o but_o alexander_n be_v very_o much_o move_v herewith_o seek_v new_a mean_n to_o continue_v this_o intercourse_n and_o agreement_n with_o bajazet_n with_o which_o papal_a zeal_n he_o likewise_o divert_v the_o croysado_n or_o money_n gather_v in_o spain_n under_o a_o pretence_n of_o bear_v the_o cross_n against_o bajazet_n to_o this_o use_n for_o say_v guicciardine_n king_n ferdinand_n excuse_v himself_o that_o his_o army_n by_o sea_n can_v not_o so_o speedy_o be_v ready_a for_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o naples_n for_o want_v of_o money_n he_o consent_v that_o the_o money_n gather_v in_o spain_n in_o the_o na●●_n of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n under_o a_o colour_n of_o make_v war_n against_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o faith_n shall_v be_v employ_v to_o that_o use_n but_o charles_n nevertheless_o pass_v through_o all_o italy_n without_o resistance_n be_v lead_v as_o it_o be_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n open_v not_o only_o the_o gate_n before_o he_o but_o the_o wall_n too_o and_o come_v near_o rome_n where_o the_o pope_n have_v fortify_v himself_o with_o the_o force_n of_o alphonsus_n and_o other_o his_o confederate_n he_o demand_v passage_n and_o to_o be_v admit_v into_o the_o city_n command_v his_o enemy_n to_o depart_v and_o not_o dissemble_v that_o if_o alexander_n obey_v not_o he_o will_v make_v his_o way_n through_o the_o city_n with_o his_o sword_n alexander_n hereupon_o be_v much_o trouble_v in_o his_o mind_n fear_v lest_o charles_n presume_v upon_o the_o title_n of_o most_o christian_n which_o the_o king_n of_o france_n do_v much_o glory_n in_o shall_v with_o his_o people_n be_v a_o nation_n renown_v for_o their_o religion_n turn_v his_o mind_n to_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n a_o terrible_a thought_n to_o he_o who_o conscience_n tell_v he_o by_o what_o infamous_a mean_n he_o have_v obtain_v the_o popedom_n and_o how_o with_o great_a infamy_n he_o have_v administer_v it_o 2._o paul_n jonij_fw-la l._n 2._o moreover_o he_o fear_v lest_o he_o shall_v be_v persuade_v by_o the_o cardinal_n of_o colonna_n sabelli_n and_o other_o to_o require_v the_o publication_n of_o a_o council_n with_o which_o one_o voice_n say_v jovins_n the_o pope_n of_o rome_n be_v more_o terrify_v than_o with_o any_o other_o human_a accident_n whatsoever_o but_o partly_o rest_v himself_o upon_o that_o assurance_n which_o charles_n have_v give_v he_o not_o to_o attempt_v any_o thing_n against_o his_o dignity_n and_o partly_o because_o be_v in_o these_o strait_n he_o see_v no_o sure_a course_n to_o be_v take_v he_o retire_v himself_o to_o his_o castle_n s._n angelo_n suffer_v the_o king_n to_o enter_v the_o city_n and_o send_v away_o ferdinand_n duke_n of_o calabria_n the_o son_n of_o alphonsus_n that_o he_o may_v not_o see_v his_o ruin_n before_o his_o eye_n charles_n therefore_o enter_v rome_n the_o last_o day_n of_o the_o year_n 1494_o with_o his_o whole_a army_n his_o ensign_n display_v and_o his_o lance_n upon_o his_o thigh_n no_o otherwise_o than_o he_o enter_v florence_n a_o few_o day_n before_o neither_o must_v we_o forget_v that_o the_o army_n of_o the_o king_n come_v near_o ostia_n some_o twenty_o fathom_n of_o the_o wall_n fall_v to_o the_o ground_n even_o there_o where_o the_o king_n have_v prepare_v to_o enter_v and_o near_o about_o the_o same_o time_n there_o fall_v about_o fifteen_o fathom_n of_o the_o antemure_a or_o outward_a wall_n of_o the_o castle_n s_o angelo_n as_o if_o the_o wall_n themselves_o have_v invite_v the_o king_n to_o enter_v here_o there_o want_v not_o some_o that_o be_v very_o earnest_a with_o the_o king_n 16.17_o philip_n comineus_n in_o vita_fw-la caroli_n 8._o c._n 16.17_o to_o remove_v alexander_n from_o his_o seat_n a_o man_n odious_a to_o the_o whole_a world_n tell_v he_o that_o it_o will_v not_o be_v less_o glorious_a to_o he_o to_o deliver_v the_o church_n of_o god_n from_o the_o tyranny_n of_o a_o wicked_a pope_n than_o it_o be_v to_o pippin_n and_o charlemagne_n to_o deliver_v the_o good_a pope_n from_o such_o as_o do_v unjust_o oppress_v they_o but_o alexander_n be_v direct_v by_o a_o more_o devout_a council_n have_v by_o present_n and_o promise_v corrupt_v those_o that_o can_v prevail_v most_o with_o he_o they_o so_o pacify_v the_o king_n that_o he_o come_v to_o this_o agreement_n that_o alexander_n shall_v deliver_v to_o the_o king_n the_o castle_n of_o civita_n vecchia_fw-mi tarracina_n and_o spoleto_n until_o he_o have_v conquer_v the_o kingdom_n of_o naples_n that_o he_o shall_v offer_v no_o wrong_n to_o the_o cardinal_n and_o baron_n that_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o church_n or_o seek_v to_o revenge_v himself_o upon_o those_o that_o have_v take_v his_o part_n that_o he_o shall_v invest_v charles_n into_o the_o kingdom_n that_o forasmuch_o as_o there_o may_v be_v good_a use_n make_v of_o gemes_n baiazet_n brother_n in_o the_o war_n against_o the_o turk_n he_o will_v deliver_v he_o into_o his_o hand_n that_o he_o shall_v pronounce_v charles_n emperor_n of_o greece_n last_o that_o he_o shall_v leave_v with_o the_o king_n caesar_n borgia_n his_o son_n for_o three_o month_n as_o a_o ambassador_n in_o outward_a show_n but_o in_o effect_v a_o hostage_n for_o the_o performance_n of_o these_o promise_n all_o which_o for_o the_o most_o part_n he_o perform_v because_o he_o can_v not_o otherwise_o choose_v but_o yet_o so_o as_o that_o his_o accustom_a false_a faith_n
earnest_o bend_v and_o over_o hasty_a that_o he_o never_o think_v any_o thing_n do_v with_o speed_n enough_o but_o ever_o kindle_v with_o fury_n cry_v out_o to_o the_o captain_n and_o choose_v his_o own_o lodging_n among_o the_o ordnance_n insomuch_o that_o in_o his_o kitchen_n two_o of_o his_o servant_n be_v slay_v with_o a_o shot_n whatsoever_o his_o cardinal_n can_v persuade_v to_o the_o contrary_a tell_v he_o that_o hereby_o both_o his_o own_o person_n and_o the_o whole_a see_v be_v make_v a_o scandal_n and_o a_o laugh_a stock_n to_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o therefore_o say_v monstrelet_n to_o this_o purpose_n he_o leave_v the_o chair_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o title_n of_o mars_n the_o god_n of_o war_n display_v in_o the_o field_n his_o triple_a crown_n and_o spend_v his_o night_n in_o the_o watch_n how_o goodly_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v to_o see_v the_o mitre_n cross_n and_o crosier-stave_n fly_v up_o and_o down_o the_o field_n god_n he_o know_v it_o be_v not_o likely_a any_o devil_n can_v be_v there_o where_o blessing_n be_v sell_v at_o so_o base_a a_o price_n mirandula_n be_v take_v he_o set_v forward_o with_o his_o army_n against_o ferrara_n and_o neglect_v these_o condition_n that_o the_o emperor_n offer_v and_o the_o counsel_n of_o ferdinand_n of_o spain_n his_o friend_n he_o persist_v in_o his_o determination_n whereupon_o it_o be_v think_v good_a to_o cite_v he_o to_o the_o council_n of_o pisa_n on_o the_o one_o side_n those_o five_o cardinal_n with_o the_o prelate_n of_o france_n and_o germany_n urge_v it_o as_o be_v a_o man_n notorious_o scandalous_a incorrigible_a a_o stirrer_n up_o of_o war_n and_o altogether_o unfit_a to_o rule_v the_o popedom_n for_o which_o cause_n the_o authority_n of_o call_v a_o council_n be_v divolue_v unto_o they_o on_o the_o other_o side_n king_n lewis_n the_o twelve_o be_v ready_a by_o force_n and_o if_o need_n be_v to_o march_v against_o he_o with_o his_o army_n in_o his_o own_o person_n notwithstanding_o he_o have_v no_o assistance_n from_o maximilian_n who_o have_v make_v a_o truce_n with_o the_o pope_n be_v therefore_o by_o the_o writer_n of_o that_o age_n condemn_v of_o inconstancy_n it_o be_v worthy_a the_o note_n that_o by_o the_o command_n of_o lewis_n there_o be_v money_n coin_a in_o france_n which_o yet_o remain_v in_o the_o custody_n of_o some_o in_o the_o one_o side_n whereof_o there_o be_v this_o mot_n i_o will_v destroy_v babylon_n and_o in_o some_o i_o will_v destroy_v the_o name_n of_o babylon_n that_o it_o may_v seem_v no_o new_a thing_n to_o any_o that_o rome_n be_v babylon_n to_o we_o have_v so_o great_a a_o author_n even_o the_o father_n of_o france_n julius_n therefore_o create_v eight_o new_a cardinal_n that_o he_o may_v thereby_o win_v unto_o he_o other_o prince_n contrary_a to_o that_o he_o have_v promise_v at_o his_o election_n triwltius_n therefore_o the_o leader_n of_o the_o french_a force_n have_v free_v ferrara_n from_o fear_n take_v bononia_n public_o fasten_v his_o placart_n whereby_o julius_n be_v cite_v to_o pisa_n he_o retire_v himself_o in_o despair_n to_o rome_n no_o less_o wound_v in_o his_o mind_n that_o the_o duke_n of_o urbin_n his_o nephew_n have_v stab_v the_o cardinal_n of_o pavia_n his_o legate_n and_o inward_a friend_n in_o a_o manner_n before_o his_o eye_n for_o his_o many_o and_o monstrous_a wickedness_n say_v guicciardine_n worthy_a the_o great_a and_o most_o grievous_a punishment_n then_o gather_v heart_n he_o confirm_v his_o truce_n mollify_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o emperor_n win_v he_o from_o the_o alliance_n of_o france_n and_o think_v now_o he_o have_v overcome_v all_o difficulty_n he_o apply_v his_o thought_n only_o to_o lewis_n thunder_v against_o he_o with_o his_o excommunication_n and_o interdict_v his_o kingdom_n but_o our_o clergy_n yield_v he_o never_o the_o more_o obedience_n proceed_v still_o in_o set_v forward_o the_o council_n of_o pisa_n which_o at_o the_o last_o be_v think_v to_o be_v more_o safe_a and_o commodious_a to_o transfer_v to_o milan_n where_o again_o these_o good_a cardinal_n get_v no_o better_a reputation_n than_o julius_n at_o rome_n at_o length_n julius_n with_o his_o confederate_n raise_v a_o army_n which_o doubtless_o will_v daily_o increase_v great_a by_o reason_n of_o the_o jealousy_n that_o many_o prince_n have_v of_o the_o greatness_n of_o france_n and_o above_o all_o the_o spaniard_n for_o fear_n of_o the_o realm_n of_o naples_n which_o the_o french_a pretend_v a_o right_a unto_o but_o king_n lewis_n see_v himself_o alone_a against_o so_o many_o enemy_n either_o open_a or_o ready_a short_o to_o declare_v themselves_o resolve_v to_o win_v time_n and_o command_v gaston_n de_fw-fr foix_n his_o lieutenant_n general_a in_o the_o duchy_n of_o milan_n to_o omit_v no_o occasion_n of_o fight_v with_o the_o pope_n army_n wherein_o if_o he_o get_v the_o victory_n he_o shall_v with_o all_o speed_n march_v to_o rome_n and_o there_o assail_v the_o pope_n without_o any_o reverence_n towards_o he_o yet_o notwithstanding_o that_o it_o may_v be_v esteem_v he_o do_v it_o lawful_o and_o by_o good_a right_n he_o do_v all_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o council_n which_o appoint_v their_o legate_n in_o the_o army_n who_o receive_v in_o the_o name_n thereof_o the_o city_n conquer_v in_o the_o war_n this_o be_v the_o cardinal_n of_o s._n severin_n ordain_v by_o the_o cardinal_n legate_n of_o bononia_n a_o man_n say_v our_o author_n more_o addict_v to_o war_n 10_o guicciard_n l._n 10_o than_o religion_n therefore_o gaston_n after_o some_o notable_a exploit_n of_o arm_n for_o to_o draw_v the_o pope_n army_n to_o battle_n besiege_v ravenna_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n julius_n army_n come_v to_o succour_v it_o under_o the_o conduct_n of_o john_n de_fw-fr medicis_n after_o leo_n the_o ten_o exile_a from_o florence_n who_o he_o have_v advance_v chief_o in_o hatred_n of_o the_o florentine_n but_o gaston_n march_v against_o they_o and_o upon_o a_o easter_n day_n give_v they_o battle_n wherein_o he_o obtain_v that_o so_o renown_a victory_n of_o ravenna_n the_o legate_n take_v and_o the_o most_o part_n of_o the_o commander_n of_o the_o army_n upon_o the_o first_o news_n thereof_o julius_n despair_v be_v ready_a to_o forsake_v rome_n but_o the_o death_n of_o gaston_n interrupt_v the_o course_n of_o the_o victory_n and_o so_o give_v he_o time_n to_o breath_n and_o settle_v himself_o in_o his_o seat_n and_o that_o so_o much_o the_o more_o for_o that_o the_o marshal_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr palice_n with_o the_o french_a force_n which_o he_o command_v after_o the_o death_n of_o gaston_n be_v call_v back_o into_o france_n to_o oppose_v themselves_o against_o the_o swisser_n who_o partly_o in_o favour_n of_o julius_n partly_o move_v by_o their_o own_o commodity_n have_v spread_v themselves_o over_o bourgundie_n now_o he_o turn_v this_o victory_n obtain_v by_o the_o french_a man_n to_o his_o own_o commodity_n by_o set_v before_o the_o eye_n of_o all_o prince_n of_o how_o great_a moment_n it_o be_v that_o the_o power_n of_o the_o french_a man_n shall_v be_v repress_v this_o he_o do_v with_o the_o state_n of_o italy_n chief_o the_o duke_n of_o ferrara_n and_o the_o florentine_n to_o withdraw_v they_o from_o their_o league_n with_o france_n he_o blame_v the_o king_n indiscretion_n who_o not_o know_v how_o to_o use_v his_o good_a fortune_n have_v withdraw_v his_o succour_n and_o abandon_v his_o confederate_n to_o his_o discretion_n and_o now_o he_o only_o speak_v of_o shake_v off_o the_o arragonois_n and_o of_o drive_v the_o spanish_a force_n out_o of_o italy_n or_o defeat_v they_o by_o who_o help_n notwithstanding_o he_o have_v be_v maintain_v in_o his_o adversity_n for_o to_o procure_v to_o himself_o the_o kingdom_n of_o naples_n last_o he_o think_v himself_o in_o sufficient_a safety_n by_o the_o friendship_n and_o confederacy_n of_o the_o swisser_n moreover_o he_o now_o open_o despise_v the_o council_n of_o pisa_n which_o have_v be_v translate_v to_o milan_n because_o it_o be_v only_o maintain_v by_o the_o french_a force_n who_o have_v now_o enough_o to_o do_v to_o defend_v their_o own_o and_o take_v again_o courage_n oppose_v unto_o it_o another_o council_n at_o lateran_n excommunicate_v all_o they_o that_o adhere_v to_o that_o of_o pisa_n and_o king_n lewis_n by_o name_n from_o who_o by_o his_o bull_n set_v forth_o be_v take_v away_o the_o title_n of_o most-christian_a transfer_v it_o to_o the_o king_n of_o england_n who_o he_o solicit_v to_o make_v war_n against_o france_n the_o kingdom_n whereof_o by_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n and_o in_o a_o express_a bull_n he_o expose_v to_o he_o that_o will_v first_o invade_v it_o but_o amid_o such_o and_o so_o great_a thought_n say_v guicciardine_n and_o other_o perhaps_o great_a &_o more_o secret_a for_o nothing_o so_o
who_o have_v leave_v their_o dwelling_n be_v constrain_v to_o fly_v into_o the_o desert_n and_o moreover_o with_o bitter_a &_o deep-fetched_a sigh_n he_o exhort_v leo_n to_o provide_v especial_o for_o three_o thing_n the_o peace_n of_o italy_n the_o discipline_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o reformation_n of_o faith_n sick_a even_o to_o death_n which_o he_o better_o express_v in_o these_o verse_n led_n tria_fw-la praesertim_fw-la restant_n cura_fw-la atque_fw-la labour_v digna_fw-la tuo_fw-la bellum_fw-la est_fw-la primum_fw-la quo_fw-la fessa_fw-la laborat_fw-la italia_n &_o pleni_fw-la humano_fw-la iam_fw-la sanguine_fw-la campi_fw-la est_fw-la aliud_fw-la romana_fw-la gravi_fw-la maculata_fw-la veneno_fw-la curia_fw-la quae_fw-la spargit_fw-la terras_fw-la contagia_fw-la in_o omnes_fw-la postremum_fw-la est_fw-la oppressa_fw-la fides_fw-la exposta_fw-la rapinis_fw-la vndique_fw-la &_o in_o praedam_fw-la populis_fw-la proiecta_fw-la cruentis_fw-la a_o te_fw-la haec_fw-la subsidium_fw-la magnis_fw-la clamoribus_fw-la orant_fw-la sancte_fw-la pater_fw-la succurre_fw-la leo_fw-la respublica_fw-la christi_fw-la labitur_fw-la aegrotatquè_fw-fr fides_fw-la iam_fw-la proxima_fw-la morti_fw-la three_o chief_a thing_n rest_v worthy_a thy_o pain_n and_o care_n the_o war_n be_v first_o wherewith_o italian_n be_v all_o tire_v and_o field_n with_o humane_a blood_n be_v fill_v another_o be_v the_o court_n of_o rome_n defile_v with_o venom_n which_o to_o all_o land_n be_v convay_v last_o be_v the_o faith_n oppress_v and_o open_v lay_v to_o rapine_n make_v to_o bloudsuccour_n a_o prey_n these_o of_o thou_o with_o loud_a cry_n for_o help_n do_v pray_v help_v holy_a father_n leo_n christ_n estate_n do_v fall_v and_o faith_n lie_v sick_a now_o at_o death_n gate_n and_o in_o all_o these_o thing_n we_o have_v see_v that_o leo_n follow_v a_o quite_o contrary_a course_n as_o appeareth_z by_o the_o judgement_n of_o many_o great_a man_n that_o live_v under_o the_o popedom_n at_o that_o time_n but_o now_o we_o come_v to_o that_o which_o be_v do_v by_o whole_a corporation_n germanicae_fw-la gravamina_fw-la nationis_fw-la germanicae_fw-la there_o be_v not_o any_o nation_n under_o leo_n which_o present_v not_o up_o their_o grievance_n against_o the_o unlawful_a proceed_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n which_o violate_v all_o concordat_n refuse_v election_n reserve_v the_o principal_a dignity_n for_o the_o cardinal_n unmeasurable_a in_o distribute_v expectative_a grace_n unmerciful_a in_o exact_v annuity_n which_o measure_v indulgence_n according_a to_o the_o quantity_n of_o money_n redouble_v the_o tenthes_o under_o pretence_n of_o make_v war_n against_o the_o turk_n bestow_v benefice_n and_o ecclesiastical_a office_n to_o the_o unworthy_a yea_o to_o mule-keeper_n and_o draw_v all_o cause_n without_o difference_n to_o rome_n of_o which_o thing_n be_v extant_a whole_a book_n present_v to_o emperor_n and_o king_n together_o with_o their_o necessary_a remedy_n especial_o in_o the_o year_n 1516_o and_o 1517_o which_o be_v our_o bound_n at_o which_o very_a time_n also_o flourish_v at_o paris_n john_n majoris_fw-la a_o excellent_a professor_n of_o divinity_n who_o thesis_n we_o have_v of_o the_o power_n royal_a and_o papal_a 3._o remedium_fw-la contra_fw-la gravamina_fw-la nationis_fw-la germanicae_fw-la joh._n majoris_fw-la do_v 24._o q._n 3._o handle_v at_o large_a dist_n 24._o q._n 3._o first_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o any_o temporal_a domination_n over_o king_n etc._n etc._n 2._o for_o if_o thou_o say_v he_o succeed_v christ_n &_o christ_n be_v lord_n of_o all_o on_o the_o contrary_a thou_o can_v not_o prove_v that_o christ_n according_a to_o his_o humanity_n be_v lord_n of_o all_o see_v he_o say_v to_o pylat_fw-la my_o kingdom_n be_v not_o of_o this_o world_n and_o that_o be_v grant_v yet_o the_o consequence_n be_v of_o no_o force_n &_o impossible_a to_o be_v prove_v for_o oftentimes_o the_o lieutenant_n have_v not_o so_o great_a authority_n as_o his_o superior_a who_o lieutenant_n he_o be_v for_o christ_n institute_v the_o sacrament_n give_v the_o law_n of_o grace_n and_o may_v revoke_v all_o divine_a positive_a law_n yet_o this_o can_v the_o pope_n do_v 3._o if_o the_o contrary_n shall_v be_v grant_v then_o will_v follow_v this_o conclusion_n constantine_n give_v nothing_o to_o sylvester_n but_o only_o restore_v unto_o he_o his_o due_n the_o contrary_a whereof_o be_v say_v 96_o d._n c._n constantinus_n &_o 12._o q._n 1._o c._n futurum_fw-la 4._o the_o pope_n themselves_o confess_v that_o temporal_a jurisdiction_n pertain_v not_o unto_o they_o &_o that_o they_o will_v take_v nothing_o from_o the_o right_n of_o king_n innoc._n 3._o in_o c._n novit_fw-la de_fw-la judicijs_fw-la &_o alexand._n in_o c._n causam_fw-la qui_fw-la silij_fw-la sint_fw-la legitimi_fw-la and_o in_o that_o famous_a chapter_n per_fw-la venerabilem_fw-la in_o the_o same_o title_n where_o innocent_a the_o three_o say_v that_o the_o king_n of_o france_n acknowledge_v not_o any_o superior_a in_o temporal_a thing_n and_o therefore_o may_v dispense_v with_o his_o son_n as_o with_o his_o inferior_a but_o if_o thou_o say_v with_o the_o gloss_n he_o acknowledge_v not_o any_o de_fw-la facto_fw-la in_o deed_n but_o yet_o he_o ought_v the_o jure_v by_o right_a i_o hold_v this_o to_o be_v a_o gloss_n of_o orleans_n which_o corrupt_v the_o text_n because_o if_o it_o be_v so_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o sufficient_o answer_v to_o that_o gentleman_n of_o mont-pelly_a require_v a_o dispensation_n for_o his_o bastard_n that_o thereby_o the_o king_n may_v dispense_v with_o he_o for_o the_o pope_n say_v the_o king_n of_o france_n be_v a_o supreme_a sovereign_n in_o his_o kingdom_n in_o temporal_a thing_n if_o he_o have_v speak_v de_fw-la facto_fw-la his_o answer_n have_v be_v none_o for_o the_o gentleman_n may_v have_v answer_v he_o i_o acknowledge_v not_o or_o will_v not_o acknowledge_v a_o superior_a de_fw-fr facto_fw-la 5._o many_o devout_a king_n have_v be_v canonize_v by_o pope_n that_o never_o acknowledge_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v above_o they_o in_o temporal_a thing_n and_o in_o this_o have_v die_v therefore_o it_o be_v a_o sign_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v not_o domination_n over_o all_o in_o temporal_a thing_n item_n king_n have_v not_o their_o power_n immediate_o from_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n neither_o do_v they_o take_v any_o influence_n from_o he_o in_o temporal_a thing_n but_o have_v their_o kingdom_n by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o people_n by_o succession_n by_o purchase_n by_o donation_n or_o by_o some_o other_o title_n for_o earthly_a power_n depend_v not_o of_o the_o spiritual_a power_n of_o the_o pope_n as_o the_o captain_n depend_v of_o his_o general_n but_o as_o two_o power_n not_o subordinat_a of_o which_o neither_o depend_v of_o the_o other_o for_o he_o that_o possess_v a_o kingdom_n be_v not_o vassal_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n neither_o be_v the_o emperor_n his_o subject_n in_o any_o manner_n and_o these_o be_v the_o maxim_n of_o the_o french_a church_n at_o that_o time_n but_o of_o the_o same_o time_n we_o have_v two_o notable_a instrument_n one_o of_o germany_n the_o other_o of_o france_n as_o for_o the_o first_o leo_n have_v send_v his_o legate_n into_o germany_n to_o exact_v tenthes_o under_o colour_n of_o make_v war_n against_o the_o turk_n and_o they_o have_v prepare_v a_o eloquent_a oration_n to_o induce_v the_o prince_n thereto_o but_o they_o consult_v about_o that_o matter_n with_o a_o notable_a personage_n he_o declare_v unto_o they_o that_o germany_n have_v already_o be_v enough_o and_o more_o than_o enough_o tax_v that_o after_o peace_n be_v make_v among_o christian_a prince_n and_o that_o they_o be_v well_o dispose_v to_o that_o holy_a war_n it_o will_v then_o be_v time_n enough_o to_o think_v on_o tenthes_o that_o since_o the_o time_n that_o pope_n have_v mix_v sacred_a thing_n with_o profane_a or_o rather_o forsake_v the_o sacred_a to_o busy_v themselves_o only_o in_o civil_a matter_n there_o have_v be_v no_o mean_a nor_o end_n of_o misery_n and_o calamity_n there_o have_v be_v no_o care_n have_v of_o the_o flock_n of_o christ_n and_o contempt_n of_o divine_a thing_n have_v abundant_o grow_v christ_n sell_v and_o the_o whole_a world_n pollute_v under_o pretence_n of_o religion_n and_o bring_v to_o extreme_a ruin_n with_o this_o filthiness_n and_o contagion_n consentiant_fw-la exhortatio_fw-la viri_fw-la cuiusd_v doctissimi_fw-la ad_fw-la principes_fw-la ne_fw-la in_o decimae_fw-la praestationem_fw-la consentiant_fw-la will_v you_o say_v he_o destroy_v the_o turk_n i_o praise_v your_o purpose_n but_o i_o great_o fear_v lest_o you_o err_v in_o the_o name_n seek_v he_o in_o italy_n not_o in_o asia_n against_o he_o of_o asia_n every_o of_o our_o king_n be_v strong_a enough_o of_o himself_o to_o defend_v his_o own_o limit_n but_o for_o to_o tame_v the_o other_o all_o christendom_n be_v not_o sufficient_a that_o other_o who_o have_v elsewhere_o enough_o to_o do_v with_o his_o border_a neighbour_n have_v yet_o do_v we_o no_o harm_n but_o this_o man_n
alone_o to_o the_o lamb_n 8._o 2._o thess_n 2._o v._n 8._o to_o the_o spirit_n of_o his_o mouth_n to_o the_o brightness_n of_o his_o come_n which_o thing_n be_v of_o so_o much_o the_o more_o great_a weight_n in_o as_o much_o as_o our_o adversary_n the_o minister_n of_o antichrist_n have_v get_v the_o upper_a hand_n of_o all_o have_v with_o all_o diligence_n and_o industry_n leave_v nothing_o undo_v whereby_o they_o may_v with_o continual_a care_n and_o craft_n extinguish_v and_o deface_v our_o proof_n by_o abolish_n withhold_v or_o corrupt_v the_o instrument_n and_o writing_n of_o good_a man_n from_o time_n to_o time_n in_o all_o age_n by_o which_o mean_v we_o be_v force_v to_o seek_v right_a out_o of_o the_o instrument_n of_o their_o own_o plead_n out_o of_o their_o own_o writing_n for_o to_o decide_v and_o defend_v our_o cause_n to_o produce_v witness_n out_o of_o their_o bosom_n and_o testimony_n from_o their_o own_o mouth_n to_o make_v see_v god_n will_v be_v so_o even_o balaams_n ass_n to_o speak_v the_o very_a beast_n that_o carry_v they_o to_o utter_v their_o history_n counsel_n and_o decree_n to_o the_o rebuke_n and_o reproof_n of_o themselves_o and_o their_o do_n but_o it_o remain_v for_o recapitulation_n to_o set_v before_o our_o eye_n in_o what_o state_n we_o find_v both_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n and_o roman_a bishop_n at_o first_o and_o unto_o what_o state_n from_o that_o by_o degree_n at_o length_n we_o have_v bring_v he_o and_o now_o see_v he_o bring_v as_o touch_v therefore_o their_o spiritual_a function_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o those_o first_o age_n as_o we_o have_v see_v be_v indifferent_o call_v bishop_n and_o priest_n behave_v themselves_o as_o brethren_n towards_o other_o yea_o by_o their_o near_a neighbour_n be_v name_v brethren_n and_o colleague_n they_o be_v consult_v withal_o and_o do_v themselves_o also_o consult_v with_o other_o about_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o church_n controversy_n schism_n and_o heresy_n live_v simple_o in_o their_o profession_n and_o die_v virtuous_o in_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n they_o glitter_v not_o in_o any_o other_o purple_a or_o scarlet_n than_o with_o their_o own_o blood_n the_o cross_n be_v their_o only_a glory_n but_o not_o long_o after_o we_o may_v perceive_v in_o some_o that_o spirit_n which_o from_o saint_n paul_n time_n wrought_v which_o under_o pretence_n of_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o city_n draw_v unto_o itself_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o neighbour_n will_v have_v their_o counsel_n account_v for_o decree_n and_o turn_v the_o honour_n voluntary_o offer_v they_o into_o right_n of_o homage_n seemelinesse_n into_o servitude_n that_o sting_n notwithstanding_o of_o ambition_n be_v oftentimes_o beat_v back_o by_o the_o persecution_n and_o many_o time_n also_o blunt_v by_o the_o virtuous_a opposition_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n but_o when_o after_o that_o by_o constantine_n peace_n be_v restore_v to_o the_o church_n through_o the_o favour_n of_o prince_n they_o increase_v in_o honour_n and_o riches_n behold_v this_o spirit_n continual_o watch_v over_o the_o work_n and_o not_o lose_v any_o moment_n of_o time_n gather_v heart_n and_o strength_n to_o itself_o by_o degree_n and_o because_o that_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o city_n the_o first_o seat_n be_v willing_o grant_v unto_o it_o they_o contend_v that_o their_o church_n ought_v to_o have_v dominion_n over_o other_o church_n that_o like_a as_o rome_n i_o mean_v the_o commonwealth_n thereof_o rule_v over_o other_o city_n and_o province_n so_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n like_v as_o a_o monarch_n over_o other_o bishop_n that_o therefore_o from_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world_n they_o shall_v appeal_v unto_o he_o from_o he_o expect_v commandment_n which_o all_o man_n be_v hold_v absolute_o to_o obey_v whereas_o he_o on_o the_o contrary_a aught_o to_o depend_v of_o none_o may_v be_v judge_v of_o none_o neither_o yet_o of_o all_o together_o and_o hereof_o come_v those_o falsification_n that_o we_o have_v see_v of_o counsel_n and_o decree_n those_o supposition_n of_o act_n and_o history_n those_o profanation_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o shameless_a wrest_n of_o they_o to_o a_o contrary_a sense_n hence_o be_v also_o those_o contestation_n and_o protestation_n of_o some_o of_o the_o great_a man_n in_o all_o age_n against_o that_o domination_n which_o they_o arrogat_fw-la to_o themselves_o over_o other_o church_n and_o bishop_n which_o they_o on_o the_o other_o side_n beside_o and_o against_o all_o right_n divine_a and_o humane_a either_o by_o none_o or_o by_o a_o false_a title_n complain_v to_o be_v usurp_v not_o stick_v to_o pronounce_v that_o it_o proceed_v from_o none_o other_o and_o pertain_v to_o none_o other_o than_o the_o forerunner_n of_o antichrist_n or_o antichrist_n himself_o yet_o think_v not_o for_o all_o this_o that_o they_o any_o thing_n slack_v in_o their_o purpose_n by_o phocas_n the_o murderer_n of_o the_o emperor_n mauritius_n his_o lord_n be_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n declare_v universal_a bishop_n he_o labour_v to_o be_v so_o declare_v so_o far_o be_v he_o off_o from_o blush_v at_o it_o now_o from_o thenceforth_o carry_v with_o full_a sail_n he_o make_v no_o difficulty_n of_o any_o thing_n as_o emperor_n and_o king_n in_o a_o confuse_a trouble_a world_n have_v need_n of_o his_o help_n or_o endeavour_n he_o get_v authority_n in_o their_o dominion_n he_o win_v the_o archbishop_n to_o his_o side_n by_o allure_a the_o most_o ambitious_a with_o commission_n and_o office_n and_o have_v win_v they_o he_o bind_v they_o unto_o he_o by_o a_o pall_n and_o that_o at_o first_o be_v send_v they_o free_o and_o only_o as_o a_o token_n of_o goodwill_n towards_o they_o afterward_o by_o ordinance_n make_v necessary_a and_o a_o badge_n of_o subjection_n at_o length_n by_o degree_n it_o grow_v to_o be_v sell_v tax_v exact_v the_o price_n thereof_o every_o day_n increase_a of_o which_o the_o archbishop_n from_o time_n to_o time_n complain_v after_o that_o he_o obtain_v of_o the_o prince_n that_o the_o clergy_n the_o lord_n lot_n say_v he_o and_o inheritance_n shall_v be_v exempt_a and_o free_a from_o all_o temporal_a jurisdiction_n whereupon_o follow_v licence_n of_o all_o vice_n impunity_n of_o all_o crime_n and_o so_o by_o little_a and_o little_o withdraw_v from_o their_o lawful_a and_o natural_a lord_n they_o who_o he_o have_v mark_v with_o his_o character_n by_o voluntary_a servitude_n yea_o and_o liege_n homage_n bind_v they_o unto_o himself_o by_o their_o ministry_n and_o mean_n and_o not_o without_o mystery_n he_o sit_v and_o preside_v in_o the_o counsel_n of_o king_n exercise_v his_o kingdom_n in_o their_o realm_n and_o his_o tyranny_n in_o the_o conscience_n of_o king_n and_o their_o people_n while_o he_o bind_v they_o to_o his_o pleasure_n by_o his_o censure_n and_o excommunication_n and_o as_o he_o will_v lose_v they_o from_o all_o duty_n and_o obedience_n he_o set_v prince_n one_o against_o the_o other_o or_o else_o band_v their_o noble_n and_o people_n against_o they_o and_o make_v many_o to_o sheathe_v their_o sword_n in_o their_o own_o bowel_n by_o which_o and_o by_o such_o like_a mean_n he_o obtain_v at_o length_n a_o sovereign_a empire_n in_o spiritual_a thing_n throughout_o the_o west_n and_o because_o the_o east_n yield_v not_o unto_o he_o he_o excommunicate_v those_o church_n and_o choose_v to_o himself_o from_o among_o his_o own_o patriarch_n of_o the_o eastern_a church_n imaginary_a indeed_o but_o yet_o future_a image_n of_o his_o universal_a monarchy_n which_o he_o arrogate_v to_o himself_o who_o be_v resident_a with_o he_o represent_v the_o person_n or_o vizor_n rather_o of_o the_o oriental_a church_n yea_o when_o he_o celebrate_v the_o mass_n 7._o cerem_fw-la roman_n l._n 3._o charta_fw-la 6._o &_o 7._o he_o command_v the_o epistle_n and_o gospel_n to_o be_v read_v in_o latin_a and_o in_o greek_a signify_v both_o church_n but_o in_o latin_a first_fw-mi and_o with_o seven_o candle_n light_v in_o greek_a afterward_o with_o two_o only_o light_v for_o to_o show_v the_o supereminencie_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n yet_o who_o know_v not_o that_o the_o greek_a testament_n be_v the_o original_n and_o the_o latin_a but_o a_o translation_n take_v out_o of_o the_o greek_a at_o last_o he_o pardon_v all_o sin_n out_o of_o his_o fullness_n of_o power_n thereby_o affect_v the_o majesty_n of_o god_n who_o alone_o pardon_v and_o of_o christ_n the_o lamb_n of_o god_n who_o alone_o take_v away_o sin_n yet_o true_o he_o give_v not_o those_o pardon_n but_o sell_v and_o make_v merchandise_n of_o they_o and_o under_o that_o pretext_n waste_v and_o despoyl_v the_o whole_a world_n then_o he_o institute_v jubily_n at_o certain_a set_v time_n which_o by_o degree_n he_o shorten_v be_v true_o his_o general_a mart_n and_o fair_n in_o which_o he_o
on_o the_o right_n to_o be_v grant_v to_o such_o as_o die_v excommunicate_a or_o desperate_a the_o continual_a and_o ordinary_a traffic_n of_o all_o benefice_n with_o cure_n or_o without_o cure_n of_o compatible_a of_o incompatible_a vancancy_n prevention_n resignation_n commenda_n expectative_a case_n reserve_v expedition_n according_a to_o certain_a clause_n and_o form_n infinite_a far_o surpass_v they_o of_o the_o ancient_a law_n so_o that_o hardly_o will_v the_o volume_n of_o a_o calepine_n suffice_v to_o contain_v but_o the_o name_n only_o and_o true_o how_o laborious_a a_o work_n it_o be_v to_o be_v able_a to_o know_v those_o intricate_a turn_n and_o wind_n and_o so_o many_o cunning_a subtlety_n sure_o it_o be_v needful_a to_o bistow_v more_o time_n in_o they_o than_o in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o all_o the_o liberal_a science_n than_o in_o philosophy_n or_o in_o the_o whole_a law_n and_o with_o these_o be_v employ_v all_o the_o bank_n of_o the_o money-changer_n and_o usurer_n in_o europe_n with_o the_o trot_n up_o and_o down_o of_o these_o the_o post-horse_n of_o all_o place_n be_v weary_v hence_o be_v so_o many_o officer_n so_o many_o broker_n both_o in_o the_o court_n and_o disperse_v all_o the_o world_n over_o more_o in_o number_n and_o of_o more_o kind_n than_o have_v be_v ever_o know_v in_o the_o west_n and_o east_n empire_n yet_o out_o of_o simony_n alone_o have_v these_o man_n not_o only_o their_o maintenance_n but_o excess_n and_o pride_n insomuch_o that_o they_o have_v bring_v the_o mamelukes_n and_o janissary_n into_o the_o pope_n court_n and_o think_v it_o not_o sufficient_a to_o have_v draw_v to_o themselves_o all_o the_o roman_a title_n but_o they_o must_v borrow_v also_o from_o souldan_n and_o infidel_n both_o office_n and_o mark_n of_o office_n and_o therefore_o when_o we_o consider_v this_o traffic_n of_o sin_n how_o great_a a_o facility_n or_o faculty_n of_o sin_v the_o pope_n have_v bring_v in_o by_o his_o dispensation_n and_o absolution_n for_o sin_n either_o already_o commit_v or_o to_o be_v commit_v even_o the_o most_o execrable_a for_o money_n shall_v we_o not_o say_v that_o he_o be_v true_o that_o man_n of_o sin_n who_o at_o so_o easy_a a_o rate_n and_o so_o light_o give_v leave_v and_o indulgence_n for_o all_o sin_n and_o also_o give_v way_n to_o all_o crime_n without_o difference_n against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o against_o nature_n see_v it_o be_v manifest_a by_o the_o table_n of_o his_o mart_n to_o every_o man_n how_o much_o each_o sin_n will_v cost_v that_o he_o may_v know_v at_o what_o rate_n to_o free_v himself_o from_o punishment_n see_v he_o will_v persuade_v the_o world_n that_o whosoever_o have_v satisfy_v this_o his_o table_n of_o rate_n have_v sufficient_o satisfy_v god_n and_o need_v no_o more_o care_n for_o god_n justice_n i_o pray_v thou_o reader_n if_o satan_n himself_o be_v there_o in_o person_n for_o to_o open_v the_o floodgate_n and_o sluice_n of_o sin_n that_o it_o may_v as_o a_o deluge_n overflow_v the_o whole_a world_n can_v he_o find_v any_o more_o fit_a invention_n than_o this_o this_o be_v not_o the_o meaning_n of_o saint_n paul_n when_o he_o say_v that_o sin_n have_v abound_v that_o grace_n may_v superabound_v who_o by_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n and_o by_o the_o holiness_n of_o the_o law_n represent_v unto_o we_o the_o horror_n and_o filthiness_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n kindle_v against_o it_o yea_o against_o those_o sin_n that_o seem_v unto_o we_o more_o light_a which_o wrath_n can_v be_v quench_v and_o be_v not_o to_o be_v appease_v by_o any_o humane_a merit_n by_o any_o price_n but_o by_o the_o blood_n alone_o of_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n shed_v for_o sinner_n unto_o who_o alone_o by_o a_o right_n and_o perfect_a faith_n and_o earnest_a repentance_n we_o ought_v to_o have_v recourse_n how_o then_o from_o one_o and_o the_o same_o fountain_n can_v there_o proceed_v doctrine_n so_o contrary_a and_o see_v the_o one_o be_v true_o of_o christ_n and_o the_o other_o under_o his_o name_n who_o can_v this_o be_v but_o the_o doctrine_n of_o antichrist_n 5.6_o dan._n 7._o v._n 20._o apocal._n 13._o v._o 5.6_o of_o who_o it_o be_v say_v os_fw-la loquens_fw-la grandia_fw-la a_o mouth_n speak_v presumptuous_a thing_n etc._n etc._n a_o mouth_n open_v unto_o blasphemy_n against_o god_n etc._n etc._n in_o this_o shameful_a traffic_n i_o say_v in_o this_o infamous_a sell_v of_o sin_n whereby_o the_o harlot_n prostitute_v under_o every_o green_a tree_n have_v engage_v all_o sort_n of_o man_n 16.17_o apocal._n 13._o v._o 16.17_o do_v we_o not_o perceive_v it_o by_o these_o word_n of_o saint_n john_n he_o make_v all_o both_o small_a and_o great_a rich_a and_o poor_a free_a and_o bond_n to_o receive_v a_o mark_n in_o their_o right_a hand_n or_o in_o their_o forehead_n and_o that_o no_o man_n may_v buy_v and_o sell_v save_v he_o that_o have_v the_o mark_n for_o indeed_o what_o condition_n of_o man_n be_v exempt_v therefrom_o for_o dispensation_n for_o absolution_n for_o benefit_n office_n warfare_n fraternity_n for_o all_o occupation_n of_o great_a or_o of_o base_a esteem_n for_o have_v do_v evil_a or_o for_o to_o do_v evil_a can_v free_v himself_o from_o this_o buy_n and_o sell_v be_v not_o these_o therefore_o those_o merchant_n of_o which_o saint_n john_n speak_v 18.3_o apoc._n 18.3_o the_o merchant_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v wax_v rich_a of_o the_o abundance_n of_o her_o pleasure_n which_o distil_v from_o the_o gulf_n of_o her_o excess_n and_o from_o her_o sacrilege_n and_o when_o we_o more_o near_o consider_v that_o this_o babylon_n this_o heap_n of_o confusion_n this_o lofty_a building_n have_v none_o other_o foundation_n than_o absurdity_n none_o other_o matter_n than_o iniquity_n none_o other_o mortar_n than_o impiety_n may_v we_o not_o necessary_o conclude_v with_o the_o apostle_n that_o god_n have_v send_v unto_o man_n a_o strong_a delusion_n 2.10.11_o 2._o thess_n 2.10.11_o that_o they_o shall_v receive_v that_o man_n of_o sin_n that_o antichrist_n that_o they_o shall_v believe_v lie_n because_o they_o will_v not_o receive_v the_o love_n of_o the_o truth_n that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v whilst_o that_o man_n of_o sin_n therein_o applaud_v they_o apply_v as_o it_o be_v narcoticke_n unto_o they_o whereby_o his_o please_a allurement_n stupefie_v they_o without_o all_o sense_n or_o feel_n of_o conscience_n or_o remorse_n of_o sin_n i_o omit_v his_o other_o doctrine_n of_o the_o merit_n of_o man_n whereby_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n passion_n be_v bring_v to_o nothing_o his_o daily_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o altar_n whereby_o that_o only_a and_o perpetual_a sacrifice_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n on_o the_o cross_n be_v abolish_v christian_a religion_n swallow_v up_o and_o convert_v into_o ceremony_n into_o superstition_n into_o idolatry_n station_n relic_n agnus_n dei_fw-la little_a image_n bless_a grain_n new_a law_n new_a sacrament_n new_a gospel_n and_o if_o god_n have_v not_o hinder_v it_o a_o new_a christ_n and_o a_o mere_a alcoran_n obtrude_v in_o stead_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o of_o these_o thing_n have_v we_o speak_v in_o their_o place_n more_o large_o 150._o cerem_fw-la roman_a chart._n 140._o 141._o &_o 150._o but_o sure_o if_o we_o listen_v to_o observe_v his_o seat_n and_o his_o furniture_n he_o sit_v at_o rome_n on_o the_o city_n of_o seven_o hill_n there_o you_o may_v see_v he_o ride_v in_o solemn_a manner_n about_o the_o city_n mount_v on_o a_o white_a horse_n sumptuous_o caparasson_v the_o horse_n lead_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o a_o emperor_n or_o a_o king_n if_o any_o be_v present_a if_o not_o by_o the_o great_a person_n there_o he_o himself_o gorgeous_o apparel_v in_o scarlet_a wear_v a_o tiara_n or_o diadem_n on_o his_o head_n adorn_v with_o a_o triple_a crown_n which_o they_o common_o call_v regnum_fw-la kingdom_n in_o token_n say_v they_o of_o supreme_a dignity_n both_o sacerdotal_a and_o imperial_a enrich_v with_o most_o rare_a gem_n and_o precious_a stone_n there_o follow_v he_o a_o troop_n of_o cardinal_n glitter_v also_o in_o scarlet_a but_o if_o he_o go_v forth_o of_o the_o city_n he_o have_v his_o portmanteaus_a ladder_n cover_v with_o red_a cloth_n twelve_o red_a standard_n then_o follow_v nobleman_n carry_v the_o standard_n of_o the_o city_n a_o barber_n and_o a_o tailor_n then_o four_o nobleman_n carry_v four_o cap_n of_o crimson_a velvet_n on_o the_o end_n of_o staff_n some_o of_o the_o measure_n of_o three_o or_o four_o hand-breadth_n who_o be_v call_v scutiferi_fw-la honoris_fw-la thus_o this_o whole_a furniture_n be_v of_o scarlet_a colour_n when_o therefore_o s._n john_n say_v in_o the_o apocalyps_n come_v i_o will_v show_v thou_o the_o damnation_n of_o the_o great_a whore_n with_o who_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n have_v commit_v fornication_n then_o present_o after_o
any_o proportion_n which_o yet_o have_v be_v too_o much_o but_o simple_o proper_o absolute_o but_o if_o bellarmine_n here_o say_v eugenium_fw-la bellarm._n de_fw-fr romano_n pontific_n l._n 2._o c._n 31._o bern._n epist_n 237._o ad_fw-la eugenium_fw-la that_o gregory_n do_v this_o but_o as_o he_o be_v christ_n vicar_n i_o ask_v he_o whether_o he_o ever_o so_o much_o as_o hear_v that_o if_o a_o prince_n ambassador_n contract_v any_o matrimony_n in_o his_o master_n name_n he_o call_v himself_o the_o bridegroom_n or_o if_o he_o can_v do_v this_o without_o commit_v a_o heinous_a offence_n or_o how_o can_v he_o in_o thus_o do_v avoid_v s._n bernard_n reprehension_n who_o forbid_v pope_n eugenius_n this_o title_n but_o rather_o that_o he_o shall_v take_v heed_n of_o s._n johns_n prophecy_n in_o assume_v to_o himself_o such_o blasphemous_a title_n basilian_n thomas_n de_fw-fr corsellis_n apud_fw-la aenean_n sy●uium_fw-la 7_o comentar_n de_fw-fr council_n basilian_n questionless_a thomas_n de_fw-fr corsellis_n speak_v not_o so_o in_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n we_o say_v say_v he_o that_o the_o church_n be_v christ_n spouse_n and_o the_o pope_n we_o know_v be_v his_o vicar_n but_o no_o body_n substitute_n a_o vicar_n in_o such_o a_o sort_n as_o that_o he_o will_v submit_v his_o spouse_n unto_o he_o nay_o the_o spouse_n in_o matter_n very_o important_a may_v be_v think_v to_o have_v more_o authority_n than_o the_o vicar_n whereas_o she_o and_o her_o husband_n have_v but_o one_o body_n but_o so_o it_o stand_v not_o between_o the_o vicar_n and_o his_o lord_n this_o gregory_n die_v about_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o year_n 1276_o who_o peter_n of_o tarento_n succeed_v that_o be_v bishop_n of_o ostia_n of_o the_o order_n of_o predicant_o be_v nominate_v innocent_a the_o five_o and_o about_o five_o month_n after_o otho_n fliscus_fw-la a_o genoese_a come_v to_o the_o papacy_n after_o this_o man_n also_o who_o be_v call_v adrian_n the_o five_o he_o be_v choose_v at_o rome_n in_o king_n charles_n his_o presence_n who_o be_v create_v and_o choose_a senator_n of_o that_o city_n this_o manner_n of_o election_n be_v no_o way_n please_v to_o the_o cardinal_n because_o their_o authority_n herein_o seem_v to_o be_v somewhat_o impair_v present_o after_o his_o come_n to_o the_o papacy_n he_o depart_v to_o viterbe_n the_o better_a to_o abate_v charles_n his_o power_n and_o greatness_n for_o extenuation_n whereof_o he_o send_v for_o the_o emperor_n rodulphus_fw-la into_o italy_n to_o oppugn_v and_o make_v head_n against_o charles_n who_o be_v former_o solicit_v by_o gregory_n have_v promise_v to_o come_v and_o here_o the_o reader_n may_v easy_o judge_v whether_o he_o be_v not_o wonderful_o transport_v with_o this_o affair_n that_o have_v occupy_v the_o chair_n pontifical_a but_o eleven_o day_n only_o and_o not_o yet_o be_v full_o consecrate_v he_o study_v and_o devise_v how_o to_o supplant_v charles_n 5._o platina_n in_o adriano_n 5._o neither_o be_v the_o cardinal_n satisfy_v with_o that_o form_n of_o conclave_n institute_v by_o gregory_n the_o which_o be_v not_o observe_v in_o the_o election_n of_o his_o successor_n nor_o likewise_o of_o this_o present_a pope_n but_o contrariwise_o it_o be_v revoke_v by_o adrian_n in_o the_o small_a time_n he_o live_v by_o a_o express_a bull_n publish_v to_o that_o end_n that_o so_o by_o this_o mean_v all_o ambition_n and_o practice_n may_v be_v cut_v off_o and_o all_o mean_n of_o attain_v to_o the_o place_n by_o bribe_n &_o gift_n that_o so_o they_o may_v rather_o choose_v to_o create_v the_o pope_n by_o bandy_n and_o partiality_n when_o therefore_o this_o bull_n can_v not_o stand_v in_o force_n and_o vigour_n by_o reason_n it_o be_v make_v before_o his_o consecration_n john_n the_o 22_o who_o succeed_v he_o present_o confirm_v the_o same_o and_o hereupon_o nicholas_n the_o three_o martin_n the_o four_o honorius_n the_o four_o nicholas_z the_o four_o and_o celestinus_fw-la the_o five_o be_v elect_v without_o conclave_n whereby_o you_o may_v plain_o discern_v how_o inconstant_a the_o spirit_n be_v that_o lead_v and_o direct_v they_o john_n tread_v his_o predecessor_n footstep_n though_o he_o be_v but_o a_o foolish_a and_o unworthy_a man_n 22._o platina_n in_o johan_n 22._o bring_v as_o they_o say_v more_o detriment_n than_o either_o honour_n or_o profit_n to_o the_o papacy_n and_o therefore_o he_o importune_v rodulphus_fw-la to_o come_v into_o italy_n but_o he_o excuse_v himself_o through_o the_o war_n he_o have_v in_o hand_n with_o the_o king_n of_o bohemia_n and_o john_n in_o the_o second_o year_n of_o his_o papacy_n die_v at_o viterbe_n be_v by_o the_o fall_n of_o a_o vault_n crush_v to_o death_n upon_o this_o occasion_n the_o cardinal_n return_v to_o rome_n and_o now_o likewise_o charles_n discharge_v the_o senator_n place_n of_o the_o city_n carry_v great_a sway_n in_o the_o election_n who_o labour_v but_o in_o vain_a that_o some_o french_a man_n may_v be_v nominate_v after_o much_o altercation_n 3._o platina_n &_o stella_n in_o nichol._n 3._o machiavelli_n hist._n flor._n l._n 3._o the_o sixth_o month_n after_o john_n vrsinus_n be_v choose_v be_v afterward_o call_v nicholas_n the_o three_o who_o be_v a_o man_n full_a of_o ambition_n and_o insolency_n for_o so_o he_o be_v decipher_v by_o machiavelli_n and_o he_o impatient_o support_v charles_n his_o so_o great_a power_n he_o instant_o propound_v to_o he_o how_o behooveful_a it_o be_v that_o rodulph_n shall_v come_v into_o italy_n and_o so_o from_o thence_o to_o pass_v by_o sea_n into_o palestina_n which_o otherwise_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n be_v succour_v and_o relieve_v also_o that_o tuscan_n be_v under_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o except_o it_o be_v restore_v again_o to_o rodulphus_fw-la he_o will_v make_v this_o serve_v for_o he_o as_o a_o just_a excuse_n under_o this_o pretext_n therefore_o he_o take_v away_o from_o he_o tuscan_a which_o his_o predecessor_n have_v confer_v upon_o he_o by_o way_n of_o vicariate_a as_o also_o at_o rome_n in_o that_o he_o can_v not_o endure_v to_o see_v he_o a_o senator_n of_o such_o sovereign_a authority_n he_o excite_v his_o favoury_n against_o he_o labour_v to_o be_v choose_v senator_n himself_o and_o thus_o depose_v charles_n he_o alone_o discharge_v both_o the_o pontifical_a and_o senatorian_a dignity_n 8._o blondus_n decad._n 2._o l._n 8._o he_o furthermore_o ordain_v that_o no_o king_n prince_n or_o any_o other_o bear_v of_o royal_a stock_n or_o otherwise_o of_o any_o high_a &_o eminent_a dignity_n shall_v be_v prefer_v to_o the_o senatorship_n and_o that_o the_o city_n under_o no_o title_n or_o office_n whatsoever_o may_v not_o be_v govern_v by_o any_o one_o for_o above_o the_o term_n of_o a_o year_n without_o his_o special_a favour_n and_o permission_n and_o thus_o the_o suevian_a family_n be_v whole_o extinct_a in_o that_o he_o can_v the_o more_o easy_o forbear_v his_o amity_n he_o now_o begin_v to_o tread_v charles_n under_o foot_n for_o rodulph_n he_o hear_v that_o he_o have_v business_n enough_o in_o germany_n without_o attempt_v any_o thing_n in_o italy_n in_o who_o mouth_n the_o say_n be_v very_o frequent_a vestigia_fw-la italiam_fw-la adeuntium_fw-la videre_fw-la se_fw-la non_fw-la cernere_fw-la redeuntium_fw-la he_o see_v the_o step_n of_o those_o that_o enter_v into_o italy_n but_o not_o of_o such_o as_o come_v well_o out_o again_o wherefore_o out_o of_o this_o confidence_n he_o so_o much_o the_o more_o urge_v he_o seem_v to_o be_v very_o angry_a with_o his_o delay_n but_o especial_o in_o that_o he_o prepare_v not_o himself_o for_o a_o voyage_n to_o jerusalem_n the_o which_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v a_o common_a pretext_n for_o excommunicate_v of_o the_o emperor_n rodulph_n therefore_o not_o mind_v to_o loose_v a_o certain_a substance_n for_o a_o great_a shadow_n ibid._n martinus_n polonus_n in_o chron._n ad_fw-la a_o 1277._o platina_n in_o nichol_n 3._o blondus_n decad._n 2._o l._n 8._o stella_fw-la ibid._n that_o he_o may_v be_v free_v from_o this_o burden_n he_o peaceable_o surrender_v and_o confirm_v unto_o nicholas_n the_o possession_n of_o all_o romania_n upon_o this_o condition_n that_o take_v tuscan_a out_o of_o charles_n his_o hand_n he_o shall_v restore_v it_o unto_o he_o which_o be_v do_v nicholas_n create_v bertold_v vrsine_n his_o brother_n count_n of_o romania_n furnish_v he_o with_o a_o army_n wherewith_o to_o recover_v those_o town_n that_o be_v hold_v by_o the_o gibelline_n he_o also_o allot_v another_o army_n to_o franciscus_n latinus_n his_o sister_n son_n be_v bishop_n of_o ostia_n with_o the_o same_o to_o scour_v over_o all_o tuscan_a the_o marquisat_n and_o lombardie_n and_o thus_o he_o dispose_v of_o the_o great_a part_n of_o italy_n martinus_n and_o platina_n say_v that_o if_o death_n have_v not_o prevent_v he_o he_o be_v mind_v to_o have_v make_v two_o king_n of_o his_o name_n one_o of_o tuscan_a
and_o the_o other_o of_o lombardie_n that_o the_o one_o with_o his_o power_n may_v ever_o be_v ready_a to_o suppress_v the_o german_n beyond_o the_o alps_n and_o the_o other_o to_o over_o awe_v the_o french_a within_o the_o kingdom_n of_o naples_n but_o against_o these_o principal_o he_o stir_v up_o peter_n king_n of_o arragon_n who_o he_o persuade_v that_o enjoy_v his_o favour_n and_o assistance_n he_o will_v set_v afoot_o again_o his_o title_n that_o grow_v from_o his_o marriage_n with_o constantia_n manfreds_n daughter_n although_o former_o both_o by_o very_a many_o bull_n of_o his_o predecessor_n as_o also_o by_o the_o decree_n of_o two_o counsel_n at_o lion_n all_o frederick_n posterity_n be_v exclude_v and_o doubtless_o some_o two_o year_n after_o this_o peter_n by_o he_o incite_v plot_v the_o sicilian_a vesper_n or_o evensong_n so_o by_o writer_n term_v on_o a_o easter_n monday_n every_o one_o kill_v his_o lodger_n and_o guest_n and_o so_o by_o this_o mean_v peter_n be_v reduce_v into_o his_o kingdom_n by_o the_o inhabitant_n here_o we_o must_v note_v that_o after_o he_o have_v take_v from_o charles_n the_o vicariate_a of_o tuscan_a and_o the_o dignity_n senatoriall_a by_o some_o privy_a intelligencer_n of_o his_o he_o dive_v into_o his_o mind_n to_o see_v whether_o he_o now_o ought_v any_o rancour_n or_o revenge_n against_o he_o who_o affirm_v that_o they_o find_v he_o no_o other_o way_n affect_v to_o the_o church_n than_o before_o yea_o yea_o say_v he_o measure_v the_o prince_n nature_n and_o disposition_n by_o his_o own_o his_o fidelity_n he_o have_v from_o the_o house_n and_o race_n of_o france_n his_o pregnancy_n of_o wit_n from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o spain_n but_o the_o gravity_n and_o weight_n of_o his_o word_n from_o his_o often_o frequent_v the_o court_n well_o we_o may_v tollerat_v other_o but_o this_o man_n be_v no_o way_n to_o be_v endure_v furthermore_o this_o good_a nicholas_n be_v author_n of_o that_o famous_a decretal_a which_o be_v extant_a in_o the_o chapter_n fundamenta_fw-la de_fw-fr electione_n &_o electi_fw-la potestate_fw-la in_o sexto_fw-la potestate_fw-la ca._n fundamenta_fw-la de_fw-fr electione_n &_o electi_fw-la potestate_fw-la who_o word_n run_v thus_o peter_n say_v he_o god_n call_v into_o the_o society_n of_o the_o individual_a trinity_n to_o be_v call_v as_o he_o be_v the_o lord_n say_v thou_o be_v peter_n etc._n etc._n that_o from_o he_o as_o from_o a_o certain_a head_n he_o may_v derive_v and_o pour_v forth_o all_o his_o gift_n throughout_o the_o body_n mean_v the_o church_n that_o the_o worse_a man_n they_o be_v and_o the_o wickede_a action_n they_o enter_v into_o 1282._o ca._n fundamenta_fw-la de_fw-fr electione_n &_o electi_fw-la potestate_fw-la an._n 1282._o so_o much_o the_o more_o they_o may_v continual_o and_o impudent_o arrogat_fw-la and_o assume_v to_o themselves_o nicholas_n die_v in_o the_o year_n 1282_o simon_n of_o tours_n succeed_v he_o who_o be_v call_v martin_n the_o four_o the_o french_a gardinal_n prevayl_v in_o number_n and_o he_o be_v consecrate_v at_o oruetto_n he_o prosecute_v the_o same_o design_n which_o his_o predecessor_n begin_v of_o get_v all_o italy_n into_o his_o hand_n but_o by_o contrary_a mean_n for_o he_o restore_v the_o senatorian_a dignity_n to_o charles_n and_o in_o favour_n of_o he_o excommunicate_v peter_n of_o arragon_n publish_v the_o croisado_n against_o he_o and_o all_o his_o abettor_n as_o if_o the_o spirit_n that_o govern_v they_o have_v be_v quite_o contrary_a in_o himself_o beatae_fw-la johannes_n novio_n dunensis_fw-la in_o illustrationibus_fw-la beatae_fw-la concur_v only_o with_o his_o predecessor_n in_o this_o that_o he_o retain_v his_o concubine_n and_o because_o she_o bring_v forth_o to_o he_o a_o bear_n to_o avoid_v the_o like_a inconvenience_n he_o cause_v all_o the_o arm_n of_o the_o vrsin_n within_o the_o court_n to_o be_v raze_v out_o least_o by_o continual_a behold_v the_o same_o she_o may_v again_o conceive_v such_o a_o form_n historiographer_n here_o report_v that_o peter_n of_o arragon_n be_v mighty_o press_v by_o charles_n his_o force_n who_o intend_v a_o revenge_n of_o the_o sicilian_a butchery_n he_o take_v occasion_n out_o of_o this_o man_n letter_n to_o turn_v the_o war_n into_o a_o duel_n and_o therefore_o he_o offer_v to_o decide_v the_o quarrel_n of_o the_o kingdom_n in_o a_o battle_n of_o a_o thousand_o to_o a_o thousand_o a_o hundred_o to_o a_o hundred_o or_o in_o single_a fight_n charles_n cheerful_o embrace_v the_o condition_n of_o single_a combat_n a_o day_n be_v constitute_v and_o the_o field_n appoint_v at_o bordeaux_n in_o aquitane_n and_o the_o king_n of_o england_n as_o a_o kinsman_n to_o they_o both_o be_v to_o be_v judge_n of_o the_o field_n 4._o blondus_n decad_a 2._o l._n 8._o collenu_fw-fr l._n 4._o they_o relate_v also_o that_o martin_n though_o this_o seem_v very_o absurd_a consent_v thereunto_o and_o send_v thither_o gerard_n cardinal_n of_o parma_n to_o observe_v both_o the_o progress_n and_o event_n of_o this_o matter_n charles_n appear_v attend_v there_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o day_n which_o the_o judge_n of_o the_o field_n do_v testify_v but_o peter_n of_o arragon_n fail_v of_o his_o presence_n he_o depart_v and_o leave_v the_o field_n the_o pope_n for_o this_o cause_n excommunicate_v peter_n and_o denounce_v he_o unworthy_a and_o incapable_a of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o naples_n as_o also_o he_o depose_v he_o from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o catalogna_n which_o then_o be_v confer_v upon_o charles_n second_o son_n to_o philip_n king_n of_o france_n not_o long_o after_o he_o turn_v likewise_o the_o croisado_n against_o he_o and_o in_o the_o assistance_n and_o favour_n of_o charles_n he_o promise_v plenary_a remission_n of_o sin_n to_o all_o those_o that_o will_v assume_v this_o conscription_n military_a upon_o they_o genle_n reader_n do_v but_o observe_v what_o manner_n of_o christ_n vicar_n this_o be_v who_o permit_v two_o such_o mighty_a prince_n to_o entertain_v a_o duel_n make_v you_o any_o doubt_n but_o christ_n do_v abjure_v he_o all_o the_o sicilian_n be_v likewise_o include_v in_o the_o same_o excommunication_n &_o peter_n affair_n obtain_v hard_a success_n in_o most_o submissive_a manner_n they_o have_v recourse_n to_o martin_n and_o so_o prostrate_a on_o the_o earth_n they_o be_v enjoin_v to_o cry_v out_o aloud_o far_o off_o from_o he_o agnus_n dei_fw-la qui_fw-la tollis_fw-la peccata_fw-la mundi_fw-la dona_fw-la nobis_fw-la pacem_fw-la lamb_n of_o god_n that_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n grant_v we_o thy_o peace_n which_o blalphemie_n he_o no_o way_n refuse_v to_o but_o back_o neither_o do_v these_o miserable_a soul_n discern_v that_o while_n he_o show_v the_o horn_n of_o the_o lamb_n a_o dragon_n speak_v out_o of_o his_o mouth_n nicholas_n de_fw-fr biberach_n tertio_fw-la pul._n aemilius_n in_o histor_n francorum_n in_o philip._n tertio_fw-la a_o divine_a of_o erford_n complain_v of_o this_o selfsame_o pope_n that_o in_o his_o young_a year_n at_o rome_n he_o will_v prostitute_v himself_o in_o the_o detestable_a office_n of_o a_o ganymed_n these_o be_v his_o word_n that_o he_o mortal_o hate_a germany_n that_o he_o often_o wish_v it_o be_v turn_v into_o a_o stand_a mere_a whereupon_o also_o he_o frame_v unto_o he_o this_o epitaph_n hic_fw-la iacet_fw-la ante_fw-la chorum_fw-la submersor_fw-la teutonicorum_fw-la pastor_n martinus_n extra_fw-la qui_fw-la totus_fw-la ovinus_fw-la occultius_fw-la nicholaus_fw-la de_fw-la biberachin_n l._n qui_fw-la in_o scribitur_fw-la occultius_fw-la et_fw-la lupus_fw-la introrsus_fw-la cvi_fw-la nulla_fw-la redemptio_fw-la prorsus_fw-la sed_fw-la sit_fw-la ad_fw-la inferna_fw-la detrusus_fw-la ab_fw-la arce_fw-la superna_fw-la before_o the_o choir_n a_o restless_a enemy_n to_o german_a name_n pope_n martin_n here_o do_v lie_v without_o a_o sheep_n within_o a_o raven_a wolf_n from_o heaven_n thrust_v down_o into_o the_o infernal_a gulf_n and_o hereupon_o many_o instile_n he_o teutenicorum_fw-la inimicum_fw-la the_o german_n enemy_n but_o especial_o the_o author_n of_o the_o history_n of_o the_o south_n there_o succeed_v he_o about_o two_o year_n after_o jacobus_n savellus_n a_o roman_a who_o be_v call_v honorius_n the_o four_o who_o proceed_v in_o the_o reduction_n of_o romania_n under_o the_o obedience_n of_o his_o see_n and_o at_o last_o obtain_v his_o desire_n partly_o by_o subjugate_a in_o a_o war_n guido_n of_o montefeltro_n head_n of_o the_o gibelline_n faction_n that_o principal_o withstand_v it_o and_o partly_o urge_v he_o to_o come_v to_o a_o accord_n who_o be_v fain_o to_o retire_v himself_o into_o the_o county_n of_o ast_n and_o so_o upon_o this_o condition_n be_v receive_v into_o grace_n and_o favour_n but_o that_o which_o principal_o then_o set_v the_o pope_n agog_o in_o italy_n be_v rodulphe_n either_o too_o great_a simplicity_n or_o too_o great_a wisdom_n from_o the_o one_o side_n he_o fear_v the_o powerful_a opposition_n which_o the_o pope_n have_v raise_v against_o his_o